58 0 13MB
INFORMATION TO USERS The most advanced technology has been used to photo graph and reproduce this manuscript from the microfilm master. UMI film s the text directly from the original or copy submitted. Thus, some thesis and dissertation copies are in typewriter face, while others may be from any type of computer printer. The quality of this reproduction is dependent upon the quality of the copy submitted. Broken or indistinct print, colored or poor quality illustrations and photographs, print bleedthrough, substandard margins, and improper alignment can adversely affect reproduction. In the unlikely event that the author did not send UMI a complete manuscript and there are missing pages, these will be noted. Also, if unauthorized copyright material had to be removed, a note will indicate the deletion. Oversize materials (e.g., maps, drawings, charts) are re produced by sectioning the original, beginning at the upper left-hand corner and continuing from left to right in equal sections with small overlaps. Each original is also photographed in one exposure and is included in reduced form at the back of the book. These are also available as one exposure on a standard 35mm slide or as a 17" x 23" black and w hite photographic print for an additional charge. Photographs included in the original manuscript have been reproduced xerographically in this copy. Higher quality 6" x 9" black and white photographic prints are available for any photographs or illustrations appearing in this copy for an additional charge. Contact UMI directly to order.
University Microfilms International A Bell & Howell Information Company 300 North Zeeb Road, Ann Arbor, Ml 48106-1346 USA 313/761-4700 800/521-0600
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
O rder N u m b er 9008958
T he extra-liturgical Geistliehes Lied, 1800—1915: A survey w ith m usical and theological analyses of fifty selected works Davidson, Paul Odgers, D.M.A. The Southern Baptist Theological Seminary, 1989
Copyright © 1989 by Davidson, Paul Odgers. A ll rights reserved.
U
M
I
300 N. Zeeb R& Ann Arbor, MI 48106
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
THE EXTRA-LITURGICAL GEI STLI CHES LI ED 1 8 0 0 - 1 9 1 5 : A SURVEY WITH MUSICAL AND THEOLOGICAL ANALYSES OF FI FTY SELECTED WORKS
A Dissertation Presented the The S o u t h e r n
of
the
to
Faculty
of
Baptist
Theological
In P a r t i a l
Fulfillment
Requirements Doctor
for
the
Seminary
Degree
of Mu si ca l A r t s
by Paul
Odgers Davidson
December
19 89
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
APPROVAL SHEET
THE EXTRA-LITURGICAL GEI STLI CHES LI ED 1 8 0 0 - 1 9 1 5 : A SURVEY WITH MUSICAL AND THEOLOGICAL ANALYSES OF FI FTY SELECTED WORKS
Paul
Re a d a n d A p p r o v e d
0.
Davidson
by: A
(Chairpers
Date
2 t .
"\
V5. iM.A. ' b ~ i Ll -A t j U
O
S’ i\r/\1.-J
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
(0 Paul
Copyright
by
Odgers Davidson 1989
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
TABLE OF CONTENTS
Page
LI S T OF T A B L E S ................................................................................................. ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
ix
...........................................................................................
x
INTRODUCTION .................................................................................
1
...........................................................
1
Chapter 1.
Specific
Problems
Definition
o f T e r ms
Delimitations
.................................................
2
.................................................................
3
Basic
Assumptions
......................................................
5
Basic
H y p o t h e s e s ...........................................................
5
Th e Ne e d f o r
the
S t u d y .................................................
A Review of R e l a t e d
...........................
7
A n n o ta t e d Guides t o Vocal Solo L i t e r a t u r e ......................................................................
7
Histories Textual
the
L i e d ...........................................
Anthologies
10
.................................................
13
S t u d i e s .................................................................
14
M e t h o d o l o g y ...........................................................................
16
Other
2.
of
Literature
6
THE SOLO GEI STLI CHES LI ED BEFORE 1 8 0 0 Th e S o l o G e i s t l i c h e s A. D. 1 4 5 0 The E a r l i e s t
Lied
Evidence
. . .
20
before 21 ...........................................
21
The M i n n e s i n g e r s ...........................................................
22
The G e i s s l e r l i e d e r ...................................................... iii
24
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
iv
Chapter
Page
C o n c l u s i o n ........................................................................... The
Solo G e i s t l i c h e s Lied
Liturgical
4.
5.
. . .
Mo n o p h o n y ...... .............................................
Mi x e d S t y l e M o n o p h o n i e s
3.
1450-1600
......................................
24 25 26 27
The
Solo G e i s t l i c h e s Lied
1600-1750
. . .
29
The
Solo G e i s t l i c h e s Lied
1750-1800
. . .
35
THE THEOLOGICAL SETTING OF THE GEI STLI CHES LI ED FROM 1 8 0 0 THROUGH1 9 1 5 ....................................
40
Th e B a c k g r o u n d o f N i n e t e e n t h - C e n t u r y T h e o l o g y ................................................................................
40
P i e t i s m ................................................................................
40
R a t i o n a l i s m ......................................................................
42
R o m a n t i c i s m ......................................................................
47
Basic Approaches to Theology in the N i n e t e e n t h C e n t u r y ......................................................
50
S c h l e i e r m a c h e r and t h e E x p e r i e n c e o f " F e e l i n g " ( G e f i i h l ) ................................................
51
Hegel
56
and
the R e l i g i o n of Phil os oph y
.
.
R i t s c h l and t h e R e l i g i o n o f P r a g m a t i c M o r a l i t y ...........................................................................
60
Summar y
64
...........................
LUDWIG VAN BEETHOVEN ( 1 7 7 0 - 1 8 2 7 )
.............................
66
" D i e L i e b e d e s N a c h s t e n " ( Op . 4 8 , No. 2; 1 8 0 3 ) ......................................................................................
66
" A b e n d l i e d u n t e r m g e s t i r n t e n Hi mme l " (WoO 1 5 0 , 1 8 2 0 ) ...........................................................
69
AUGUST H A R D E R .............................................................................
73
" D a s Wo r t "
( 1 8 0 7 ) .............................................................
" Di e Ahnung"
( 1 8 1 1 ) .......................................................
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
74 79
V
Chapter
6.
Page
FRANZ XAVER SCHNYDER VON WARTENSEE ( 1 7 8 6 - 1 8 6 8 ) .................................................................. " Da s h o c h s t e
7.
8.
G u t " ..................................................
83
" H y m n e " ............................................................................
87
MAXIMILIAN JOSEPH LEIDESDORF ( 1 7 8 7 - 1 8 4 0 )
.
. 92
"Wenn a l l e u n t r e u w e r d e n " ( Op . 1 2 9 , No. 6 ) ..................................................
95
BERNHARD JOSEPH KLEIN ( 1 7 9 3 - 1 8 3 2 ) ist
unsre Zuversicht
"Wandrers N a c h t l i e d "
99
und S t a r k e "
( F r o m Op.
.
15, 1827)
.
99
.
102
CARL LOEWE ( 1 7 9 6 - 1 8 6 9 ) ............................................... "Gross
ist
der
Herr"
106
( 1 8 2 0 ) ........................
107
" K a i s e r O t t o ' s W e i h n a c h t s f e i e r " ( Op . 1 2 1 , No. 1; 1 8 5 3 ) ............................................................. 10.
FRANZ PETER SCHUBERT ( 1 7 9 7 - 1 8 2 8 ) "Abendlied"
( D.
499;
" De r W a c h t e l s c h l a g " 1822) 11.
Ill
.............................
1 8 1 6 ) ............................. ( Op .
68;
D.
117 117
742; 122
KARL GOTTLIEB REI SSI GER ( 1 7 9 8 - 1 8 5 9 ) . . . . " No a h "
( Op .
14,
No.
" We i n a u s W a s s e r " 12.
92
"Wenn i n b a n g e n , t r i i b e n S t u n d e n " ( Op . 1 2 9 , No. 1 ) ..................................................
"Gott
9.
82
2;
125
1 8 2 7 ) ........................
( Op .
121,
No.
3)
.
. .
126 .
129
FELI X MENDELSSOHN ( 1 8 0 9 - 1 8 4 7 ) "Morgenlied" "Trostung"
( Op .
( Op .
86,
71,
No.
No.
1;
132 2;
1828). . . .
1 8 4 5 ) ..............
133 136
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
vi Chapter
13.
14.
Page
ROBERT SCHUMANN ( 1 8 1 0 - 1 8 5 6 ) " D e r f r o h e W a n d e r s m a n n " ( Op . 7 7 , No. 1; 1 8 4 0 ) ......................................................................................
139
"Requiem"
143
( Op .
90,
"Sei
still"
150 154
No. 6 ) .........................
155
" D i e H e r r l i c h k e i t d e r E r d e " ( Op . 1 4 2 b , No. 3 ; 1 8 6 0 - 1 8 6 7 ) ......................................................
157
( Op .
88,
FRANZ C0MMER ( 1 8 1 3 - 1 8 8 7 ) 65,
7 6 , No.
.
164
FRANZ ABT ( 1 8 1 9 - 1 8 8 5 ) .......................................................
167
du r u f s t "
( Op .
( Op .
No.
161 161
der
( Op .
.................................................. 1 ) .................................
" Av e M a r i a "
( Op .
211,
No.
"Arie"
( Op .
50,
1)
.
.
3 ) ............................
168
4 3 8 a ) .................................................
171
JOHANN GEORG HERZOG ( 1 8 2 2 - 1 9 0 9 ) "Passionsgesang"
20.
147
.
"Waldandacht"
19.
147
CARL GOTTLIEB WILHELM TAUBERT ( 1 8 1 1 - 1 8 9 1 )
"Herr,
18.
1 8 5 0 ) ......................
( 1 8 7 7 ) ............................................................
"Kreuz-Lied"
17.
7;
(1857)
"Christkindlein"
16.
No.
FRANZ LI S ZT ( 1 8 1 1 - 1 8 8 6 ) " Das V e i l c h e n "
15.
139
( Op . No.
50,
9;
No. 5 ;
............................. 1879)
.
.
1 8 7 9 ) .................................
PETER CORNELIUS ( 1 8 2 4 - 1 8 7 4 )
174 17 4 178 182
" E r l o s e u n s vom U b e l " ( Op . 2, No. 9 ; 1 8 5 4 ) .......................................................................
183
"Die
187
Konige"
( Op .
8,
No.
3;
1870)
. . . .
CARL REINECKE ( 1 8 2 4 - 1 9 1 0 ) ............................................
191
" W e i h n a c h t s l i e d " ..........................
192
"De r
194
liebe
Gott
i m H i m m e l " ......................................
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
v ii C h a p te r
21.
Page
JOHANNES BRAHMS ( 1 8 3 3 - 1 8 9 7 ) "Die h e i l i g e
22.
Elisabeth"
...........................
197
"Wenn i c h m i t M e n s c h e n - u n d E n g e l s z u n g e n r e d e t e " ( Op . 1 2 1 , No. 4 ; 1 8 9 6 ) ......................
201
24.
( Op .
2 06
" Du , H e r r , b i s t u n s e r V a t e r " ( Op . 5 1 , No. 4 ) ......................................................................................
20 9
No.
.......................
213
" Da s Wo r t G o t t e s " ( Op . 5 6 , H e f t I , No. 1; 1 8 7 6 ) ......................................................................................
21 4
"Todessehnsucht"
.
216
.............................................
22 0
1 8 8 5 ) ......................
221
( Op .
138,
MICHAEL HALLER ( 1 8 4 0 - 1 9 1 5 ) ( Op .
32,
No.
6;
( Op .
32,
No.
No.
11;
1;
1909)
.
225
HUGO WOLF ( 1 8 6 0 - 1 9 0 3 ) .......................................................
2 30
"Zum n e u e n J a h r "
1885)
.
.
(1888)
" D i e du G o t t g e b a r s t "
27.
11,
ALEXANDER WINTERBERGER ( 1 8 3 4 - 1 9 1 4 )
"Meeresstern"
26.
20 5 2 ) ......................
" He i mwe h "
25.
(1858)
ALBERT BECKER ( 1 8 3 4 - 1 8 9 9 ) "Weihnachtslied"
23.
197
230
( 1 8 8 9 ) .................................
23 4
MAX GULBINS ( 1 8 6 2 - 1 9 3 2 ) ..................................................
23 8
" D e r du d i e e w ' g e L i e b e b i s t " ( Op . 2 9 , No. 3 ; 1 9 0 5 ) ......................................................................
23 8
" H e r r , u n s r e Z u v e r s i c h t " ( Op . 2 9 , No. 7; 1 9 0 5 ) ......................................................................................
241
MAX REGER ( 1 8 7 3 - 1 9 1 6 ) .......................................................
2 43
" V e r l a s s e n h a b ' i c h m e i n L i e b " ( Op . 1 5 , No. 9 ; 1 8 9 4 ) ......................................................................
24 4
" B i t t e um e i n e n s e l i g e n T o d " ( Op . 1 3 7 , No. 1; 1 9 1 4 ) ......................................................................
24 6
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
viii Chapter
28.
Page
OTHMAR SCHOECK ( 1 8 8 6 - 1 9 5 7 ) "Marienlied"
( Op .
"Die V e r k l a r e n d e " 29.
6,
No.
( Op .
9,
............................................
250
5;
251
1907)
No.
1;
. . . . 1907)
.
.
25 3
C O N C L U S I O N S ..................................................................................
256
APPENDIXES A. B.
THE EXTRA- LI TURGI CAL GEI STLI CHES LIED 1800-1915: A LI STI NG BY COMPOSER . . . .
270
TEXTUAL SOURCES OF LIEDER DISCUSSED IN THIS S T U D Y ................................................................................
361
BIBLIOGRAPHY ..........................................................................................................
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
36 6
LI S T OF TABLES
Table
1. 2.
Page
Number o f G e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r by C o m p o s e r s D i s c u s s e d i n T h i s S t u d y ................................................
257
Number o f G e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r by C o m p o s e r s P o te n tia lly E lig ib le for Inclusion in T h i s S t u d y ...............................................................................
258
ix
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
The c o m p l e t i o n o f litated first
by
the
a mo n g
work i s
define
the
those
Dr . J a y
type
of
study
to
work w i t h e n t h u s i a s t i c
not
too
to
say
of
that
ma n y
in
be u n d e r t a k e n
the
throughout th is
Southern Seminary
dissertation
written.
Special recognition
M c E l r a t h wh o g a v e c l o s e study
and
ma d e
A particular Alan
ma ny
and
wh o
agreed
to
although
work
a
areas
of
of the s t a f f s
at
Southern
also
the
was u n d e r t a k e n :
field
the
not
is and
years at have
details
on
been
of
the
suggestions.
this
this
student's
dissertation,
unrelated
benefited
following
from
to
his
main
Library
where t h e
research
t h e J a m e s P. B o y c e C e n t e n n i a l L i b r a r y a t
Baptist
of
the able a s s is ta n c e
libraries
Theological
Seminary;
L ibrary a t the Boston P u b lic L ib ra ry ; of
it
interest. The a u t h o r
The
the
serve
and to r e a d
in
guided
instruction w riter's
to
i s n e c e s s a r y f o r D r . R.
Instruction is
then
Indeed,
could
to
Committee of the
and
insightful
note of a p p r e c i a t i o n
Culpepper
completion
m u s t a l s o g o t o D r . Hu g h T.
attention
valuable
Of
the author
encouragement. without
been f a c i
the
who h e l p e d
g u i d a n c e o f Dr. W i l k e y this
has
individuals.
assisting
W. W i l k e y
the
muc h
dissertation
contributions
importance
of t h i s
this
Congress;
the
Musi c
the
Music
the Music D iv is io n Library
at
Harvard
x
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
xi
University; Library
at
and
the
Yale
Beinecke
University.
Rare
Book
and
He i s
also
grateful
S a r a H a d l e y a n d t o Mr . a n d M r s . C a r l D a v i d s o n their
homes
to
while
research
his
family
and
wa s u n d e r t a k e n
A final
word
of
assisted in
their
and u n d e r s t a n d i n g
the necessary
ma d e i t
ti m e and e n e rg y
the
Ms .
wh o o p e n e d
transportation
must
support,
possible to
to
geographical
appreciation
a u t h o r ’s w i f e D i a n e w h o s e u n f a i l i n g ment ,
in
Manuscript
go
areas. to
the
encourage
f o r him t o d e v o t e
completion
of
each
s t a g e o f t h e r e s e a r c h a n d w r i t i n g . T r u l y , " h e wh o f i n d s a wife
finds
(Prov.
a good
thing,
and
obtains
favor
from
the
Lord"
18:22).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
•.Chapter
1
INTRODUCTION The musical
purpose
forms
characterize published
and
of
the
the
this
theological
geistliche
b e t w e e n and
of
this
particular
study
musical
are
literature
litu rg ic a l
understand the
composer
the
be
Lieder
context
whose
to
English of
these
Christ, (nature)
supply
work i t
the
songs the
for
Virgin
which
are
composed
years
studied,
Liede r ; for
study
the
Ma r y,
or
first 1915.
body of
the
extra-
and
analysis;
Lied
course
the
to
select
fifty (3)
selected output
of
of the s e l e c t e d texts
(6) t o
analyze
understandings
humankind,
and
and
the
of
to
works
(4) to p r o v i d e
German and
the
(2)
entire
thereof;
in
namely,
represents;
their
the
which
1800 and
(1) to c a t a l o g
original
translations
understandings
of e a c h of t h e f i f t y of
identify
considered
a n a l y s e s of the m u s ic a l s e t t i n g s (5)
to
Problems
follows: to
place
the
problems
geistliche
representative
within
as
is
Lieder
including
Specific The
study
the
brief
Lieder; literal
the
texts
Go d ,
Jesus
created
world
represented.
1
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
2
Definition
o f Ter ms
Lied keyboard text
designates
accompaniment
has
been
accompaniment equally this to
set
with a l l
the
total
study
the
terms
be s y n o n y m o u s ,
hereafter
used as
For
as
the
connection, the
to
song"
and
"lied"
and i t s
proper to
to
that
secular,
this
the
study
are
plural,
content,
the English
or
Within
considered are
language.
is
temporal, this
nearly
"lieder,"
English which
and
or
term
sacred
or
profane. im plies
inspiration,
a to
O
t r a d i t i o n 0 and i s language.
ed. W e b s t e r ' s .3 r_d. _Ne_ w £.A _t j l £ AHiiJLiJLli L a n g u a g e Unabridged (S p r in g f ie ld , M assachusetts: M e r r i a m Co. , 1976). See a l s o R u f u s H a l l m a r k , " L i e d , " i n The N ew H a rv a rd D i c t i o n a r y of M u s i c , ed. Don M i c h a e l R a n d e l (Cambridge, M as s a c h u s e tts : B e l k n a p P r e s s , 1 9 8 6 ) , pp. 4 4 6 4 5 0 , wh o s t a t e d , a l o n g s i d e t h r e e o t h e r d e f i n i t i o n s , t h a t th e te rm " l i e d " i s "most commonly, a song f o r s o l o v o ic e and p ia n o a c c o m p a n i m e n t in G e r m a n - s p e a k i n g c o u n t r i e s d u r i n g t h e C l a s s i c a l and R o m a n t i c p e r i o d s " (p. 446) . p Deutsches
B.
contributing
composition.^
of the J u d e o - C h r is tia n
P h ilip
melody
the
"lied"
be a wo r d i n
German-language
of
refers
of
lyric
elements
effect
to
a
s o l o v o i c e and
w ell-considered
by d e s c r i p t i o n ,
religions
considered
which
three
words
opposed
purpose
a
"art
and
G eistliche religious
in
to
to
a composition for
Gove,
Ibid. S e e a l s o J a c o b Grimm and W i l h e l m Gr i mm, Worterbuch (Leipzig: S. H i r z e l , 1 8 5 4 - 1 9 2 2 ) .
^Richard Cole Piano Music: A H i s t o L i s t i n g " (D. M. A. d i s Theological Seminary,
S h a d i n g e r , "The S a c r e d E l e m e n t i n r i c a l B a c k g r o u n d and an A n n o t a t e d s e r t a t i o n , The S o u t h e r n B a p t i s t 1 9 7 4 ) , pp. 2 - 3 .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
3
"Extra-liturgical" conceived
or
composed
for
services.
This does not
be
s o me
used
at
literature
time
under
to
use
public
in
mean t h a t
in corporate
consideration
been used
in
h o me .
may a l s o
It
refers
private
or
a wor k
wa s
corporate
not
worship
such a work c o u l d public
here
family
which
worship,
would
have
devotional
have been p e r f o r m e d
not
but
the
primarily
life
within
in a public
the
recital.
Delimitations Within first
published
1915 a r e Ge r ma n, The
study
between
considered. Austrian,
Mew G r o v e
Musik
in
19.
and
those
D i c t i o n a r y of und
by H i l d e g a r d
Kunstliedes
£
Music
composed
the
years
18 00
only
those
songs
and
Jung,
listed
" Da s g e i s t l i c h e
Ein
Beitrag
are
discussed
^ The New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f ed. S t a n l e y S a d i e ( London:
^Die Musi k i n G e s c h i c h t e ed. F ried rich Blume et a 1. Barenreiter, 1949-1979).
zur
or and of
in
M u s i c i a n s , ^ Die
G e g e n w a r t , ^ or
T h i s wor k c o m p i l e s a c a t a l o g
20 v o l s . ,
lieder
including
A dditionally,
Jahrhundert:
deutschen
only
o r S w i s s c o m p o s e r s who a r e t r e a t e d
Geschichte
dissertation im
this
in
the
Sololied
Geschichte
des
here. of
the
geistliche
Musi c and M u s i c i a n s , M a c M i l l a n , 1980).
un d G e g e n w a r t , 16 v o l s . , (Kassel and Basel:
H i l d e g a r d J u n g , " Da s g e i s t l i c h e S o l o l i e d i m 1 9 . Jahrhundert: Ein B e i tr a g zur G e s c h ic h te des d e u tsc h e n Kunstliedes" ( Inaugural-D issertat io n , U niversitat-K oln, 1951).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
4
lieder
of
this
by c o m p o s e r . lieder of
From t h i s
period,
was
for and
forms
done
by
the
methodology
for
the
description.)
This s tu d y does not of
other tant
the
works,^ and
musical trace
nor
complex setting
the h isto ry
theological lieder
of
Rather,
for any this
does
their
include
lieder it
individual
theological described
detailed
such
concern
as
below.
musical
ma y
itself
contents.
with
be
(See
anal-
found
the
in
impor
r e l a t i o n s h i p b e t w e e n t h e t e x t and t h e O thereof. N e ith e r does i t a t t e m p t to of the
thought
between
evidence case
individual
in a l i s t i n g
mor e c o m p l e t e c o n s i d e r a t i o n
musical
"Methodology"
yses
culminating
compilation f ifty
have been s e l e c t e d
their
This
historical
on
influence
the
1800 and
particular study
composition
1915,
establishing
of v a ry in g
nor
are
a change
theological
concentrates
of
on
the
of
the
schools
geistliche
lieder
influence
system
of
or
delineating
used in
as the
school. the
^ F or s u c h a s t u d y s e e R o b e r t J a m e s S e e l e y , "The S o n g C y c l e s o f P e t e r C o r n e l i u s ( 1 9 2 4 - 7 4 ) w i t h E m p h a s i s on t h e Two S a c r e d C y c l e s : V a t e r u n s e r and W e i h n a c h t s l i e d e r " ( D. M. A. d i s s e r t a t i o n , S o u t h w e s t e r n B a p t i s t T h e o l o g i c a l Seminary, 1980). ®The s t u d i e s by B e t t y S m i t h C a m p b e l l , " T h e S a c r e d S o l o L i e d e r o f Hugo W o l f : Th e I n t e r r e l a t i o n s h i p o f M u s i c a n d T e x t " ( Ed. D. d i s s e r t a t i o n , C o l u m b i a U n i v e r s i t y , 1968) and E l l e n C a r o l e B r u n e r , "The R e l a t i o n s h i p o f T e x t and M u s i c i n t h e L i e d e r o f Hugo W o l f a n d G u s t a v M a h l e r " ( Ph. D. d i s s e r t a t i o n , S y r a c u s e U n i v e r s i t y , 1974) a r e s u c h t y p e s of studies.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
extent
of
the genre,
theological
the
viewpoints
texts
thereof.
Basic
Assumptions
geistliches
lied,
which
to
come
Th e f o r e m o s t a s s u m p t i o n is
that
the
poetry
lied
expresses
also
carries
the
musical
chosen
a variety with
it
setting
s o me way r e f l e c t
the
chosen
the
of
theological
assumption
the
this
views.
that
mindset
the
study
This
the
of
in
geistliches study
poetry
by t h e c o m p o s e r f o r
theological
various
expression
which u n d e r l i e s
by c o m p o s e r s of
and t h e
the
the
and
wor k i n
musician.
Basic Hypotheses It
wa s
hypothesized
liche
lieder
were
under
consideration.
that
w ritten It
a large
during
wa s
also
the
period
understandings
diversity
which a r e
lieder
expressions
w ritten
theological
viewpoints
understandings the that
Romantic the
sim ilar secular
between
which
to art
the
are
1915,
related
settings this
in
the
which same
to
held
Furthermore,
settings
song of
and
w e r e commonl y
period.
musical
1800
voiced
it
exist
in
historical
geist history
that
cer
within
the
in the g e i s t l i c h e and the and
that
these
theological taught
during
was h y p o t h e s i z e d
geistliche
are
of
of
hypothesized
t a i n common t h e o l o g i c a l of
numbe r
lieder
evidence
in
period.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
are the
6
Th e Need f o r There liches the
lied
it
plishes
all
logical which
the
as
Romantic
a whole,
these
it
points
secular
often
study
of
the
of
this
time
the
a form to
of
lied
which could
in o th e r
of
the
texts This
accom In
theo
literature
a
toward
basis
for
historical-
Conjointly,
the
of
solely
as
or
manner.
musical
be u s e d
catalogs
study
influence
within
geist
thereof,
as a p o t e n t i a l
framework.
influence
period
of
either
be o r i e n t e d
serving
geistliches
a
the
Q
in a r e p r e s e n t a t i v e
thereby
information
which
theologically.
within
provides
study
toward ex ten siv e
theological-literary
study
or
considered
concerns,
period
translates
tasks
ideologies
is
Study
no E n g l i s h - l a n g u a g e
musically
addition,
a
of
material
analyzes
is
the
this
the
theological
contemporaneous a rt
study
basis
for
systems
of
forms,
as
w ell as g iv in g evidence of the im pact of the t h e o l o g i c a l systems level,
within thus
the
forming
society the
basis
on
a
for
This study also encourages geistliche
lieder
in r e c i t a l
popular, further
grass
roots
investigation.
the p e r f o r m a n c e of
and w o r s h i p ,
as w e ll as
^ T h e G e r m a n - l a n g u a g e l i t e r a t u r e w h i c h f o c u s e s on the g e i s t l i c h e l i e d e r is very l i m i t e d . The o n l y m a j o r s t u d y a v a i l a b l e i s H i l d e g a r d J u n g ' s d i s s e r t a t i o n . On a muc h s m a l l e r s c a l e a n d w i t h a m o r e p o p u l a r o r i e n t a t i o n i s t h e a r t i c l e by J u r g e n K i n d e r m a n n , "D as g e i s t l i c h e K u n s t l i e d i m 19. J a h r h u n d e r t , " S c h a l l p l a t t e un d K i r c h e ( 1 9 6 8 ) , 1 1 2 -119.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
enlarges
the r e p e r to ir e
Sim ilarly,
it
both
available
indicates
resources for devotional the
translations
of
the
reading
selected
tative
to
this
collection
nineteenth
century
any l a n g u a g e
nor
of
has
the
theological
extant
lite ra tu re is
the
there
and
lieder
has
and
of
be
represen
texts
of
the
been a v a i l a b l e
these
related
will
or
systematic
affirmations
plentiful
through
Literature
translated
is
uses.
further
and m e d i t a t i o n
been any
which
supplies
no c o m p r e h e n s i v e
geistliche
examine
however,
study
pedagogical
texts.
A Review of Re la te d Prior
for
to
attempt poems.
such
a
considered
in to Th e
task,
here
by
categories. Annotated
Guides
t o Vocal
S o lo
Literature
Numerous a n n o t a t e d g u i d e s have
been
value in they
compiled.
specific
are
of
Most
of
consideration
some
help
in
to
these of
English-language
particular
note.
Katherine
to
songs
and
Repertory^ the
uses
gives
which
the works
Siebel's a brief
they
are
texts
isolating
Amo n g
vocal
works
the
analyzed.
Guide
solo
literature of
involved, lieder four
Sacred
in
^ K a th e rin e Siebel, Sacred Songs: Repertory (New Y o r k : H.W. G r a y , 1 9 6 6 ) .
a
but
to
be
are
of
Songs:
description
ma y h a v e
little
of
_A
the
liturgical
_A G u i d e
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
to
8
context. of
the
He r texts
literal songs
references which
translations.
which
will
Singer's work,
includes
listed ence
are
with
This
thirty-nine
volumes
V o i c e 19 a n d
give
brief
by
Vocal
musical
named.
The
texts
in
original
themes
or
in
the
versions
of
other the
Noni Solos
for
of
The
and e i g h t e e n
the
is
with
refer
for
the
C h u r c h e s , 13 each
of
concerned
without of
are
text.
Repertoire
volume
along two
These
concerning
both
five-volume
without
Christian
languages
volume,
study.
song
Espina,
function,
songs.
on f o r t y - f i v e
version
preparing
lieder.
each
versions
thirty-five
Coffin's
geistliche
first-nam ed
liturgical
the
Berton
for
in
contains
during
inform ation
songs
the
assistance
guide
remarks
t o an E n g l i s h - l a n g u a g e
English-language
some
R e p e r t o i r e , ^^
Solo
tion
of
to
be c a t a l o g u e d
cursory
Two
ered
are
the with
reference
which
are
to
consid
English-language
volumes
include
geistliche
informa
lieder,
respec
tively. Three Verzeichnis
vols.
G erm an-1anguage deutscher
Lieder
sources sei t
^ B e rto n Coffin, Singer's (New Y o r k : Scarecrow P ress, 19
(Metuchen,
should
Haydn
by
Repertoire, 1960).
Noni E s p in a , R e p e r t o i r e f. o.r. _t h. N.J.: Scarecrow P r e s s , 1977).
be
noted.
Franz
2nd Solo
13
3rd.
ed.
ed.,
A.
5
Vo i c e
Noni E s p i n a , V o c a l S o l o s f o r C h r i s t i a n C h u r c h e s , (Metuchen, N . J . : Scarecrow P re s s, 1984).
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Stein^ date,
lists
cycle
concerning
given,
text
Martin Breslauer's
Das d e u t s c h e
Lied
bis
to
zum
18.
1700. each
there
is
in
study
1800
Q u e l 1 en
and
collection
und
present the
w h i c h poems h a v e
is
Ha y d n
und
annotated
lieder
printed
given s o me
of
the
texts
are
theological
views
presented
for
the
period
L i e d jLm 1 8 . J a h r
S t u d i e n by Max F r i e d l a n d e r . the
most
examinations
im portant
been s e t
of
texts
these of
lieder. the
therefrom,
note
provide
This monumental
deutscher
^ M a r t i n B r e s l a u e r , Das d e u t s c h e L i e d b i s zum 18. J a h r h u n d e r t ( H i l d e s h e i m :
^M ax Friedlander, I) a js J a h r h u n d e r t : Q u e l l e n und S t u d i e n a n d New Y o r k : Ge or g 01m s, 1 9 7 0 ) .
and
theological
Verzeichnis 1967).
His
798 c o l l e c t i o n s
by w h i c h c o m p o s e r s ,
no d i s c u s s i o n
^ F r a n z A. S t e i n , (Bern: A. F r a n c k e ,
weltlich 1966) .
the
i n Das d e u t s c h e
m u s i c a l e x a m p l e s o f s o me o f work c o n t a i n s
of
geistlich an
is
and
given
songs.
1700 and
lieder
discussion
no i d e n t i f i c a t i o n
A sim ilar
of
of
is
to
poet.
gives
editions
some
individual
the
volumes
and
While
of
hundert :
Jahrhundert^
collections
according
No i n f o r m a t i o n the
presented
three
and t i t l e .
composers
t h e n a me o f
of
between
by m a j o r
except
listing
history
songs
or opus, the
w eltlich
prior
the
views
Lieder
of
seit
g e i s t l i c h und Ge o r g 0 1ms ,
d e u t s c h e JL i^ e^d^ jn 1 8 . (1902; r p t . Hildesheim
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
10
the g e is tlic h e the
lieder,
m ethodical
but
study
it
of
is
the
a valuable resource lied
in
the
for
eighteenth
century. Histories
of
t h e Lied
Among G e r ma n l i e d
very
than
passing
able
which
tions.
the
seemingly
innumerable
few s t u d i e s
attention
are,
to
however,
Her mann
given
Kretzschmar's
wor k
well
composers
of
the
set
texts
by R i s t .
Hi s
des
neuen
deutsches
Liedes. ^
deutsche
Lied:
text.
mo r e
as
Walter
c a n be f o u n d
the
examples
as
an
extensive
seventeenth
V e t t e r ’s
and
study
is
en K u n s t l i e d e s of
i m 17.
the d i f f i c u l t y
geistliche musical
Jahrhundert
purely
Texts
are
on also
of
to
textual
includes
avail
textual
of
those
centuries
be f o u n d
aus
mo r e
considera
s o me
discussion
the
give
Some w o r k s a r e
treatment der
in
in
who
Geschichte
Da s
friih-
Ent w i c l c l u n g s -
u nd m e h r s t i m m i g e n d e u t s c h 1 ft
in d is ti n g u is h in g
lieder
style.
to
Kapitel
g e s c h i c h t e un d A e s t h e t i k d e s e i n -
which
eighteenth
historical
Ausgewahlte
histories
the
includes
a discussion
b e t we e n " w e l t l i c h " and basis
included,
of but
language these
^H erm ann Kretzschm ar, (1 s^c. Jl .i c..h t__e d^e^s deutsches Liedes (Hildesheim: Geor g 01m s, 1 9 6 6 ) .
or
are
neuen
^ W a lte r V etter, J) j3 XlliiJliL Jl S. L.JL : A u s g e w a h l t e K a p i t e l a u s d e r E n t w i c k l u n g s g e s c h i c h t e und A e s t h e t i k d e s e i n - und m e h r s t i m m i g e n d e u t s c h e n K u n s t l i e d e s im 1 7 . J a h r h u n d e r t , 2 v o l s . ( M i i n s t e r : H e li o s, 1928).
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
11
not
theologically In the
analyzed.
introductory
deutsche
Lied s e i t
tory
the
of
analysis chapter
the
on
the
to
lyrics
there
is
texts
were
set.
of
up
texts
Mozart
analysis
Mozart, ^
genre
of
section H .J .
of
in
the
an e x t e n s i v e There
these
texts
book,
some
those
works.
lieder
since
however, in
the
In the
no
and
century g e istlic h e s
of
itself
is
H ildegard Jung, dert:
Ein
liedes."
Although
liches
lied
secular
lied,
geistliche
her
which
of
the
primary
lieder is
from
there
the
whether same
this
to her
in of
or
not
the
forms
this
as
aspect,
of
the
geist
listing
research.
no c o n s i d e r a t i o n
Kunst
work i s
an e x t e n s i v e In
entity
deutschen
musical
period.
indebted is
of the n i n e
im 19. J a h r h u n
f o c u s of
wor k c o n t a i n s
heavily
however,
the
des
whose
dissertation
Sololied
Geschichte
of
study.
inaugural
the question
Jung's
were used.
(Berlin:
zur
manifested
study
study,
1951
time
poets
as an a r t i s t i c
"Das g e i s t l i c h e
Beitrag
consideration
current
the
lied
a later
theological
The o n l y e x t a n t s t u d y o f t h e h i s t o r y teenth
the h i s
theological
of r e l i g i o u s
included
Da s
sketches
with
list
is,
his
Mo s e r
Mozart
used
of
the of the
Within the
texts
9D
^ H a n s J o a c h i m Moser, A t l a n t i s , 1937).
Das d e u t s c h e
lied
seit
Mozart
9n
H i l d e g a r d J u n g , " Da s g e i s t l i c h e S o l o l i e d i m 19. Jahrhundert: Ein B e i t r a g zur G e s c h ic h t e des d e u t s c h e n
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
12
Two o f as a l i t e r a r y the
text.
deutschen wart,^ with
Gunther Liedes
treats
which
M uller's
vom
the
particular
mor e
studies
Zeitalter
history
attention
of to
focused,
Romantic
appears Here
of the major Romantic
side
deeper
these
works
provide
of
the
writers some
valuable
of
as
zur
Gegen-
a literary
form
R a l p h Ty mms '
are
and
A sim ilar,
works,
considered
information
but Ger
thoughts,
works.
to des
rationalistic,
in
the
lied
attention
bis
text-types.
beliefs
analysis
lied
on t h e
Geschichte
Barock
pietistic,
study
Literature. ^
study,
des the
focused
pay c l o s e r
1925
and h u m a n i s t i c
narrowly
a
have
phenomenon n a t u r a l l y
naturalistic
man
the
and along
Both
against
of
which
K unstliedes" (In a u g u ra 1 -D iss e rta tio n , Universitat-Koln, 1951). J u n g 's s tu d y c o n s i d e r s the g e i s t l i c h e l i e d e r of t h e p e r i o d by d i v i d i n g t h e c o m p o s e r s i n t o t h r e e g r o u p s : t h o s e who d e t e r m i n e d t h e d e v e l o p m e n t a l h i s t o r y o f t h e l i e d w i t h r e g a r d t o i t s m u s i c a l f o r m ; t h o s e wh o w e r e n o t o f i m p o r t a n c e i n t h a t d e v e l o p m e n t ; a n d t h o s e who c h o s e t o compose i n a p r e - C l a s s i c a l l i t u r g i c a l s t y l e . W i t h i n t h i s framework she shows t h a t th e g e i s t l i c h e s l i e d e r did not d i f f e r in m u s ic a l s t y l e from the s e c u l a r l i e d e r . Her a t t e n t i o n t o " m i n o r " c o m p o s e r s and t h e i r p a r t i c i p a t i o n i n the p r o d u c t i o n of n i n e t e e n t h c e n t u r y g e i s t l i c h e s l i e d e r i s o f g r e a t v a l u e f o r s h e t r e a t s i n d i v i d u a l s wh o a r e c u r r e n t l y a b s e n t f r o m t h e New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c a n d Musicians and M u si k i n G e s c h i c h t e und G e g e n w a r t . W h i l e h e r l i s t i n g of l i e d e r i s e x t e n s i v e , i t l a c k s some of t h e songs which a r e under c o n s i d e r a t i o n in t h i s s t u d y owing to a d i f f e r e n t a p p l i c a t i o n of t h e t e rm " g e i s t l i c h . " ^Giinther Muller, G e s c h ic h t e des d e u tsc h e n vom Z e i t a l t e r d e s B a r o c k b i s z u r G e g e n w a r t ( Mi i n c h e n : Masken, 1 9 2 5 ) . Methuen,
^Ralph 1955).
Tymms ,
Ger man R o m a n t i c
Literature
Liedes Drei (London:
R eproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
13
textual
considerations
Textual
Anthologies In t e r m s
close
affinity
lieder
of
the focus
this
of
to
the
the
contents
various
period.
on t h e
accompanying
may be p u r s u e d .
of
textual
The c h i e f
geistliche
theological
this
study,
there
anthologies
differences
lieder
in
analyses
this of
for
and
a
the
reside
study
the
is
in the
translated
lieder. Maximilian the
texts
of
Schubert: und
the
is
is
o/
into
given.
lieder
for
together
all
i n F r a nz
einstimmig komponierten Lieder
each
complete
text,
bibliographic
no a n a l y s i s
or
trans
presented. work
which g iv e s
Schubert
text
Schochow have g a t h e r e d
Although
given
A sim ilar
the
Schubert
D ichter.
information
companion
Lilly
Di e T e x t e s e i n e r
ihr e
lation
and
is
John
Reed's
a w ea lt h of i n f o r m a t i o n
lieder,
including
a prose
English,
although
the
Infrequently,
The S c h u b e r t
comments
are
on e a c h o f
translation
original made
on
song
of
the
text
is
not
some
of
the
^ M a x i m i l i a n Schochow and L i l l y Schochow, F r a n z Schubert; Di e T e x t e s e i n e r e i n s t i m m i g k o m p o n i e r t e n L i e d e r und i h r e D i c h t e r , 2 vols. (Hildesheim: Georg 01ms, 1974). o/ Universe
J o h n R e e d , Th e S c h u b e r t Books, 1 9 8 5 ) .
song companion
( New Yo r k :
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
14
religious the
ideas
text.
each
either
Cursory
held
musical
by t h e
poet
analysis
is
or e x p r e s s e d
also
for
song.
George
Three
other
Bird's
and
Fischer-Dieskau
volumes
must
be
mentioned
Book o f
S t o k e s ' t r a n s l a t i o n o f The oc Lieder; The R i n g o f W o r d s : An by P h i l i p M i l l e r , ^
guin
edited
k_ o^f_ L i e d e r , 97
Prawer. selected
Each of
lieder
columns.
and
settings
of
which i s
very
Other
the
and
these
contains
their
literal
The l a t t e r
p o e t and t h e
here:
Richard
A n t h o l o g y of Song T e x t s
the
included
in
a n d The P e n
translated the
by
original
translations
S.S.
texts
in
of
parallel
two works g iv e i n f o r m a t i o n c o n c e r n i n g
composer. text
Th e f o r m e r
by v a r i o u s ,
helpful
for
this
t wo
often
works
minor,
list
the
composers
study.
Studies Among
individual geistliche
the
numerous
composers, lieder.
with the sacred a r t
Ev e n
studies
very
few
those
works
of
are
the
works
focused
which
are
s o n g s g e n e r a l l y f o c u s on t h e
on
of the
concerned musical
^ D i e t r i c h F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u , The F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u Bo o k o f L i e d e r , t r . G e o r g e B i r d a n d R i c h a r d S t o k e s ( Ne w Yor k: Limelight E d i t i o n , 1984). "^Philip L. M i l l e r , T h. *~L JL.1H.2. °.J. M.2.LiliL • A n t h o l o g y o f S o ng T e x t s (New Y o r k : W.W. N o r t o n , 1 9 6 3 ) . 97
Lieder
An
S.S. P r a w e r , e d. and t r a n s . , The P e n g u i n Book of (Baltimore: Penguin Books, 1964).
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
15
elements rather the of
texts two
fine
Sacred Music
and
than giving their
theological
studies:
Betty
Lieder and
mor e t h a n c u r s o r y
of
Hu g o
Text,"^
and
assertions.
Smith
Wolf:
attention
The
Robert
This
Campbell's
is
true
"The
Solo
Interrelationship
James
Seeley's
to
"The
of
Song
C y c l e s o f P e t e r C o r n e l i u s ( 1 8 2 4 - 7 4 ) w i t h E m p h a s i s on t h e Two S a c r e d C y c l e s : Minimal analysis
in
the
Vaterunser attention
essays
and W e i h n a c h t s l i e d e r .
is
which
also
comprise
nicht-liturgischen
Werken
although
e s s a y s 3 1 do g i v e
textual ing
and
two
of
content. analysis
the
Ev e n of
mo r e the
von
to
Religiose
Beethoven
important
literature
which dea l w it h th e r e l i g i o u s
given
some
29
textual Musi k
bis
Reger
attention
in 30 to
for
the
understand
are
the
two
m e n t a l i t y of
essays
the n in e teen th
B e t t y S m i t h C a m p b e l l , " Th e S a c r e d S o l o L i e d e r o f Hu g o W o l f : The I n t e r r e l a t i o n s h i p of M u si c and T e x t " (Ed.D. d i s s e r t a t i o n , Columbia U n i v e r s i t y , 1 968) . ^ R o b e r t J a m e s S e e l e y , "The Song C y c l e s o f P e t e r C o r n e l i u s ( 1 8 2 4 - 7 4 ) w i t h E m p h a s i s o n t h e Two S a c r e d Cycles: V a t e r u n s e r a n d We i h n a c h t s l i e d e r " (D.M.A. dissertation, Southwestern B a p t is t Theological Seminary, 1980). ^W alter Wiora, Giinther M a s s e n k e i l , and K la us W o l f g a n g N i e m o l l e r , e d s . , R e l i g i o s e Mu s i k i n n i c h t l i t u r g i s c h e n We r k e n v o n B e e t h o v e n zum R e g e r ( R e g e n s b u r g : Gust av Bosse, 1978). H e r e a f te r c i t e d as R e l ig io s e Musik. ^ G iin th er M assen k eil, "R e lig io se Aspekte der G e l l e r t - L i e d e r B e e t h o v e n s , " i n R e l i g i o s e M u s i k , p p. 8 3 - 9 6 ; and W i n f r i e d K i r s c h , " R e l i g i o s e und l i t u r g i s c h e A s p e k t e b e i J o h a n n e s B r a h m s und A n t o n B r u c k n e r , " i n R e l i g i o s e M u s i k , pp. 1 4 3 - 1 5 6 .
R eproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
c e n t u r y . 32 Methodology The i s o l a t i o n be s t u d i e d
of
began w i t h the
the
specific
geistliche
identification
of
those
wh o w r o t e l i e d e r d u r i n g t h e p e r i o d 1 8 0 0 t o 1 9 1 5 . accomplished New G r o v e in
im
Dictionary und
of
Music
and
Gegenwart;
and
" Da s
J a h r h u n d e r t . Ein B e i t r a g oc Kunstliedes."
Subsequently, which a r e
currently
America
were
catalogs
for
composers T h i s was
sources: The OO Musicians; Di e Mu s i k
19.
deutschen
to
t h r o u g h an e x a m i n a t i o n of t h r e e
Geschichte
lied
lieder
these
available
determined the
Library
geistliches
zur
composers' within
through
the
of C o n g r e s s ^
the
Solo
Geschichte
published United
use
of
the
des
songs
States
of
printed
a n d The New Yo r k
^ O s k a r S o h n g e n , " T h e o l o g i s c h e , g e i s t e s - und m u s i k g e s c h i c h t l i c h e Voraussetzungen der Entstehung der a u s s e r liturgisch religiosen M u s i k im 19. J a h r h u n d e r t," in R e l i g i o s e M u s i k , pp. 1 9 - 4 6 ; and A d o l f Nowak, " R e l i g i o s e B e g r i f f e i n d e r M u s i k a s t h e t i k d e s 19. J a h r h u n d e r t s , " i n R e l i g i o s e Musik, pp. 47-58. - ^ The New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c a n d 20 v o l s . , e d . S t a n l e y S a d i e ( L o n d o n : Macmillan,
Musicians, 1980).
^ S i e M u s i k i n G e s c h i c h t e u n d G e g e n w a r t , 16 v o l s . , ed. F r i e d r i c h Blume ( K a s s e l and B a s e l : Barenreiter, 1949-1979). ^~*J ung,
" Das g e i s t l i c h e s
Sololied."
^^The L i b r a r y of C o n g r e s s i s c a t a l o g u e d th r o u g h a s e r i e s o f p r i n t i n g s c a l l e d The N a t i o n a l U n i o n C a t a l o g w h i c h b e g a n w i t h t h e 7 54 v o l u m e s o f t h e p r e - 1 9 5 6 i m p r i n t s
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
17 o
Public
Library
Online
Computer
Those
songs
Library
of
libraries
to
study,
lieder in
of
the
and
period.
a
the
Novalis')
time fact
the
( OCLC)
of
Dublin,
through
Boston
University
or
is,
Library,
Yale
of
the
Ohio. at
the
or
the
University
lieder
whether
use
OCLC o r
Public
which of the
wa y
so
for
as
were
were germane
or
notthey
represented
The
twenty-five
lieder
during
can
be
periods
were ch o s en
in
This
the
the
selection
geistliche
period
indi
diversity
composers
the
fifty
lieder
wh o w r o t e
are
each
of
the
repre
The s o n g s c h o s e n f o r e a c h c o m p o s e r
so a s
that
study.
to r e f l e c t
poets
have been s e l e c t e d
tion,
the
selected
by t w o s o n g s .
different
of
d e t e r m i n a t i o n had b e e n made,
were
most g e i s t l i c h e sented
Center
means
geistliche.
such
composers
by
available
that
When t h i s
made
are
determine
as
as
Library
Harvard
to
vidual
well
Congress, of
categorized
as
which
examined this
7
to of
reflect, the
some p o e t s ' with
and h as been c o n t i n u e d to subject catalogs, including
so f a r
composer's works
as
life.
(e.g.,
mor e f r e q u e n c y
possible,
than
In a d d i
Goethe's those
and
of
the present with a s e r ie s a s e r i e s f o r music.
of
^ T h e s e i n c l u d e T_h_e N_e_w Y o r k £ _u_b.l.i.c L i b r a r y P i c t i o n a r y C a t a l o g o f t h e M u s i c C o l l e c t i o n , 33 v o l s . (Boston: G. K. H a l l , 1 9 6 4 ) ; T h e New Y o r k P u b l i c L i b r a r y D i c t i o n a r y C a t a l o g of t h e Music C o l l e c t i o n : Cumulative Supplem ent, 1964-1971, 10 v o l s . (Boston: G. K. H a l l , 1973); and, b e g i n n i n g i n 1975 and c o n t i n u i n g to t h e present, an a n n u a l s u p p l e m e n t c a l l e d B i b l i o g r a p h i c G u i d e t o Music.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
wa s
18
the
others
has been c o n s i d e r e d .
Similarly,
the
songs
were
c h o s e n so a s t o a t t e m p t t o r e p r e s e n t a v a r i e t y of t h e o l o g ical
views
Romantic
(e.g.,
traditional
study
the
following
the
importance
compositional
of
each
manner. of
song
for
translation
immediately
explicit
the
cussed
then of
the
and
a
This
within
poet.
poetic also
in
text
has
to
total
by b r i e f
Th e Ge r ma n form
with
poetic
a
form,
been a n a l y z e d
concerning,
humanity, of
the
followed
affirm ations
summary
given
in
Go d ,
and t h e c r e a t e d
those
statem ents
is
an a t t e m p t h a s b e e n made t o c a t e g o
poem a c c o r d i n g this
the
in
text,
thereafter.
Finally,
within
given
t h e V i r g i n Mary,
(nature),
presented. rize
and
presented
first
lied
concerning
theological
Jesus Christ, world
is
is
is
o u t p u t of t h e c o m p o s e r ,
text
given
song
the g e i s t l i c h e s
information
the
selected
Consideration
biographical
literal
Pietism,
theology). The
of
orthodoxy,
to
the
theological
movements
dis
wor k.
Consideration
thereafter
of the song.
focuses
upon
a
brief
musical
analysis
The f o l i o wi n g a s p e c t s
of
the
s t r u c t u r e of the song a r e m e n t io n ed : length; OO form; t o n a l i t y ; vocal range; type of keyboard
musical
musical
OQ The a n a l y s i s o f t h e m u s i c a l f o r m o f e a c h o f t h e s o n g s a t t e m p t e d t o d e t e r m i n e w h e t h e r t h e f o r m wa s s t r i c t l y s t r o p h i c , a s i n a t r a d i t i o n a l hy mn ; m o d i f i e d s t r o p h i c , w i t h t h e melody and a c c o m p a n i m e n t r e p e a t e d f o r eac h s t r o p h e w i t h s m a l l c h a n g e s in t h e melody or t h e a c c o m p a n i m e n t , u s u a l l y a t t h e end o f t h e s ong; s t r o p h i c v a r i a t i o n , wh e r e
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
19
accompaniment; other by
composer
and
composition
also
of
lied
the
by t h e
in
has
sim ilarities within
the
with
Romantic
of
for
a
theological
the
text.
Finally,
of t h e song
respect
The to
any
are liste d m aterial
is
birthdate
of
the
with respect
to
the
date
of
composer.
methodology
allowed
the
composition.
individual
this
of
text
and s u b s e q u e n t l y
Through liches
date
of
chronologically
the composer,
styles
treatm ent
known s e t t i n g s
presented
It
and
the
period view
of
extent has the
affirmation
been
of
the
geist
demonstrated.
diversities and
and
compositional
genre.
t h e melody i s r e p e a t e d b u t t h e a c c o m p a n i me n t c h a n g e s f o r each stro p h e ; rondo, where a m u sical r e f r a i n occurs i n t e r s p e r s e d w i t h e p i s o d e s o f new m u s i c a l m a t e r i a l on s o me s t r o p h e s ; a r i a , w i t h ABA f o r m ; o r t h r o u g h - c o m p o s e d , w i t h n e w m u s i c a p p e a r i n g f o r e a c h s t r o ph e . For f u r t h e r d i s c u s s io n of t h e s e m u s i c a l forms, see the i n d i v i d u a l l i s t i n g s i n T h e New H a r v a r d D i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c , e d . Don M i c h a e l Randel (Cambridge M a s s a c h u s e t t s : B e l k n a p P r e s s , 1986) and i n T h e New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c a n d M u s i c i a n s , 2 0 v o l s . , ed. S t a n l e y S a d i e (London: M a c m illa n , 1980). The d e f i n i t i o n of t h e s t r o p h i c v a r i a t i o n has been c hang e d f o r use in t h i s stu d y.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Chapter
2
THE SOLO GEI STLI CHES LI ED BEFORE 1 8 0 0 Christianity
had
s p e a k i n g E u r o p e by t h e
reached
tim e of
what
the
bishop of the C h r i s t i a n s in G oth ia , is
only
natural
express of
their
is
gleaned date
any
that
spite
geistliches
lied,
c a n be t r a c e d history
four
(1)
the period
the
eras
the
the
Baroque e r a ;
people
which
had
begun
through
such
and
murkiness
the h is to ry
outlined
which w i l l before period
It
a
the
to use
development
little might
is
to
be
purport
to
era.
periods leading
Th e
1450-1600,
be
a r o u n d A. D. 3 8 0 . ^
Of
by
the
the
song
of
four
century.
chronologically are
the
medieval
Renaissance; Classical
the
study th i s
consideration
1450,
of
religious
Within th is
be c o n s i d e r e d
and (4) t h e
roots
up t o t h e n i n e t e e n t h
A. D. of
of
of the so lo
w i t h some c l a r i t y .
w ill
historical
of
tradition
German the
own l a n g u a g e
evidence
now
d eath of U l f i l a s ,
those
traditions.
oral
early
that
their
manuscript
from
In
in
musical
no
from
suppose
faith
indigenous
there
to
is
(3)
period
e r a ; (2)
1600-1750,
from
17 50 t o
1800.
^Kenneth Scott L a to u re tte , A^ HA s. _t ojr _y_ C h r i s t i a n i t y ( New Y o r k : H a r p e r & Row, 1 9 5 3 ) , p . 1 0 0 . 20
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
()
21
The S o l o G e i s t l i c h e s In
spite
Christian evidence cular
faith for
comes
evidence
of
a mo n g
the
The E a r l i e s t
at
before
relatively
the
Germanic
existence
from
which
the
Lied
of
least
receives
early
first
1450
arrival
peoples,
religious
500
A. D.
years
the
song
in
the
earliest
the
later.
consideration
of
It
verna is
that
here.
Evidence
From t h e w r i t i n g s of O t f r i d a r o u n d 865 i t i s c l e a r that
he
That, should
knew
no
however, not
existence
geistliche is
the
be t a k e n
at
the
a vernacular
to
time.
text
lieder
witness imply
of
that
6260) from th e n i n t h or t e n t h
person
lieder
manuscript
and
were in
containing
c o d e x (Cod. l a t .
century
monac.
which c o n t a i n s
the
probably
from
B a v a r i a n d i a l e c t and O b e t w e e n 836 and 854. The m a n n e r o f
this
song cannot
mined,
but
of its
structure
of
in
one
o
This
performance
is
only
vernacular.
"Petruslied." dates
text
the
no s u c h
Th e e a r l i e s t
is a Freisinger
in
the
be u n e q u i v o c a l l y
three
strophes
a "Kyrie e le is o n "
would seem to i n d i c a t e
of
or
a responsorial
antiphonal
each
the
deter
ending
in
possibility
presentation.
^Joseph M iille r-B la tta u , "Zu Form und U berlie ferung der a l t e s t e n deutschen g e i s t l i c h e n Liedern," Z e i t s c h r i f t f iir M u s i k w i s s e n s c h a f t , 17 ( 1 9 3 5 ) , 129.
given
^ I b i d . , p. on p . 1 4 1 .
140.
The t r a n s c r i p t i o n
of
the
lied
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
is
22
Th e M i n n e s i n g e r s Beginning began led
to
to
in
be i n t r o d u c e d
the
tradition
composer-performers the
the
into
of
the
the
spoke
moralistic
they
texts.
t i o n of c o u r t l y Gedeonis
crusade
the
Germanic
and
sang
of
Troubadours
culture.
This
While
these
love
(hence
courtly
also
composed
Meyster
Holy
Rumelart
Walther ich,"
as
contemplating
or
assimila
the Virgin
well
his
as
in
own d e a t h .
nature
God i s Typical
Vogelweide
which r e j o i c e s
Minnesinger ide als
1318).^
the
sacred
Ma r y i n
s e n t i m e n t s are seen in the
von d e r
traditional and
showed
to
wollenvlius."^
lebe
Land, -*
ma ny l i e d e r
lo v e to God's lo v e f o r
song of
"Nu a l e r s t
W.W.
of
Minnesingers.
Other c h a r a c t e r i s t i c
(d.
style
n a me " M i n n e s i n g e r s " f r o m t h e G e r ma n wo r d " Mi n n e " w h i c h
means " l o v e " ) ,
" Da s
1156
to
of
the
arrival
Tannhauser's
prayer
The h i g h e s t with
be f o u n d
works
in
(1170-1228),
in
his
the the
integration
works
of
the
upon
deep r e v e r e n c e
include
^ G u s t a v R e e s e , Mus i c i n t h e N o r t o n , 19 4 9 ) , pp. 2 3 5 - 2 3 6 .
in
of for
Frauenlob
"Dem Son G o t t e s
M i d d l e Ag e s (New Yo r k :
■*Ibid . , p . 23 4 . ^ G i l b e r t R e a n e y , " Th e M i d d l e A g e s , " i n A_ H i s t o r y o f S o n g , r e v . e d . D e n i s S t e v e n s ( Ne w Y o r k : W.W. N o r t o n , 1 9 6 0 ) , p. 35. ^Burkhard Kippenburg, "Fra ue nlob," D i c t i o n a r y of Music and M u s i c i a n s , v o l . S a d i e (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , p. 809.
The New G r o v e 6, e d . S t a n l e y
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
23
A l m e c h t i g " 8 and The in
the l a t e
"Unser
peak
of
the
anonymous
fourteenth
century
the
sa in ts.^
represented
the
text
Wolkenstein
is
8I b i d .,
Oswald
which
fifteenth Salzburg
twenty-four von
his
the
work
monophonic
sacred
"Menschleichen
got,
p.
from
close
late twenty
and f i v e
(1377-1445)
Minnesingers of
The
the
songs,
Wolkenstein the
reached
century.
sacred
on a v a r i e t y for
was
to the T r i n i t y ,
from
remembered
tune
representative
of
tradition
forty-nine
Writing
importantly and
Mo n k
transition
M eistersingers. most
and e a r l y
wrote
to th e V i r g i n Mary,
leich"^.
Minnesinger
fourteenth
otherwise
to
frauen
to
topics,
he
is
correlation
of
dem onstrated.^ song
the
of
beschniten
Oswald schon.
A von
10
810.
9 j . A . W e s t r u p , " M e d i e v a l S o n g , " New O x f o r d o f M u s i c , v o l . I I , e d . Dorn A n s e l m H u g h e s ( L o n d o n : U n i v e r s i t y P r e s s , 1 9 5 4 ) , p. 258.
History Oxford
^ F r a n z V i k t o r S p e c h t l e r , " Mo n k o f S a l z b u r g , " T h e New Gr o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c a n d M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 12, e d . S t a n l e y S ad ie (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , p. 4 9 2 . ^ I v a n a P e l n a r and C h r i s t o p h P e t z s c h , W o l k e n s t e i n , " T h e New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 14, e d. S t a n l e y S a d i e ( L o n d o n : 1980), pp. 16-17.
" O s w a l d von Mu s i c a n d Macmillan,
19
Os wa l d von W o l k e n s t e i n : G e i s t l i c h e u nd W e l t l i c h e L i e d e r , D enkm aler der Tonlcunst in O s t e r r e i c h , J a h r g a n g I X / 1 , Band 18, e d . J o s e f S c h a t z and O s w a l d R o l l e r ( G r a z : A k a d e m i s c h e D r u c k - u. V e r l a g a n s t a l t , 1 9 5 9 ) , pp . 3 6 , 1 6 0 161.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
24
Th e G e i s s l e r l i e d e r In spread
1348-1349 the
throughout
Europe.
(G e i s s l e r ) banded throughout phonic
religious
recall have
and
Christ's been
sung
singing
which
soloists,
invoke
flagellants
the
with
town to
gave r i s e level
to
these
mo n o
Mary
songs
were
of
and
could
probably
a leader
remainder
town
of m u s i c a l
Virgin
settings
and t h e
or l e a d e r s the
group
From t h e c o n t e m p o r a r y
report
i n g o f Hu g o v o n R e u t l i n g e n
and h i s n o t a t i o n of s i x
of the
songs
which
the f l a g e l l a n t s '
rites
the
Latin
l i t a n y 1^ and
Lutheran
with the re fra in .
from
the
Although
or a n t i p h o n a l l y
the changing v erses
answering
penitent
with a high
s u f f e r i n g s . 1^
sung r e s p o n s o r i a l l y
Black Death
pilgrimages
folksongs
by
of
the
and j o u r n e y e d
These
texts
known a s
Groups
together
Ge r many.
sim plicity
plague
were
used
in
G eisslerlieder
chorale
can
show t h e i r be
with regard
seen
to
travels
relationship be
to melodic
precursors
and to the of the
f o r m a n d o u t l i n e . 1 "1
Conclusion The
last
two
Minnesingers
mentioned
above,
the
^ W a l t e r Salmen, "Geisslerlieder," The New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c a n d M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 7, e d . S t a n l e y Sa di e (London: Macmi ll an, 1980), pp. 220-221. ^ R i c h a r d H. H o p p i n , Medieval W.W. N o r t o n , 1 9 7 8 ) , p p . 3 1 5 - 3 1 7 . 1^Reese,
M i d d l e A g e s , p.
Mu s i c
( Ne w
239.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
York:
25
Monk o f S a l z b u r g a n d O s w a l d v o n W o l k e n s t e i n , polyphonic ma r k
the
fullest
s o n g s as w e l l a s mon o p h o n i c s o n g s and a s su ch
end o f t h e
medieval
period.
development
1 f\
It
is
of
f o r m c a me a t
great
interest
in
a time
im portant
mo n o p h o n y
had
rise
humanism i n
been
the
the
years
and
development.
height
of
the
replaced
between
Minnesingers. Lutheran Catholic this
Council
era
three
of
the
secular,
from of
and a mi xed
^ R i c h a r d H. H o p p i n , N o r t o n , 1 9 7 8 ) , p. 312.
1600 it
European
the
which
Trent
classes
the
extralitur-
wa s
theolog with
the
was
the
began
in
monophony with
Medieval
times
of
the
period
of
of the Francowhile
begun w i t h t h e period 1517,
1545 u n t i l
type
were
continent,
traditions
it
and
of
1450-1600
and i n f l u e n c e
church
Reform ation,
liturgical,
W.W.
the
the
that
by p o l y p h o n y
and
Musically
continued
In
its
in
period.^
Lied
1450
development
Meistersingers
song in
Renaissance
Flemish school throughout the
note
Philosophically
Th e S o l o G e i s t l i c h e s The
to
song
wh e n m o n o p h o n y wa s no l o n g e r
the church.
ically,
turmoil
monophonic
f l o w e r i n g of t h e monophonic
gical
of
both wrote
of
the
and
the
1563. were
During extant:
religious
Music
( Ne w
texts
York:
^ A l b e r t S e a y , M u s i c i n t h e M e d i e v a l W o r l d , 2nd e d . (Englewood C l i f f s , N . J . : P r e n t i c e - H a l l , 1 9 7 5 ) , p. 71.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
26 I
set
in
a
musical
style
associated
with
secular
O
song.
W i t h i n t h e s c o p e of t h i s s t u d y o n l y t h e f i r s t and t h e l a s t of
these
are
Liturgical
of c o n c e r n and
this
distinguish
Lutheran
the
liturgical
collection
texts,
Ein
of
new
by M i c h a e l
songs.
of h i s t o r y
it
music
of
becomes n e c e s s a r y the
Catholic
and
liturgies.
Catholic
lished
period
between
Catholic
lar
be c o n s i d e r e d .
mo n o p h o n y
During to
will
monophony.
liturgical
In s u cc ee d in g
Leipzig.
years
1527
mo n o p h o n y
Gesangbuech1in
Ve h e i n
In
the
with
first
vernacu
g e y s t l i c h e r , wa s p u b It
contained
many s i m i l a r
fifty-two
collections
followed. ^ Protestant the
Bible
and
was one o f phonic
Geist," others were
ed.
the
used
in
centuries, as
well
expressly
collected
monophony.
congregational
the c e n t r a l
music
previous
liturgical
as
points
Lutheran
music
in
worship
vernacular
included
tunes
anthologies
in
the
Mono
Leise
from
w i r den h e i l i g e n
written
fo r use in the reform ed into
the
of L u t h e r ' s r e f o r m .
s u c h a s " Nu n b i t t e n unison
The p l a c i n g o f
by
Luther
liturgy. 1520's
and
These
with
the
^ G u s t a v Reese, Music in the R e n a i s s a n c e , r e v is e d (New Y o r k : W.W. N o r t o n , 1 9 5 9 ) , p . 6 5 0 . ^ I b i d . , p . 651 .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
27
first
three
followed years.
such
during
90
published the
Ge r ma n
in
1524.
Similar
p e r i o d of t h e n e x t t w e n t y
monophonic
psalters
also
anthologies to t h i r t y
appeared
in
the
1 5 3 0 ' s a n d 1 5 4 0 ' s . 21 Mi x e d s t y l e
monophonies
The music well
can as
setting
be s e e n
in
the
of
in
music
religious
the
of
lieder
century.
anthology ence
of
arose
The L o c h a m e r
Schedelsches
collection
from the
soprano solo
the
to
secular-styled
Liederbiicher
of
the
of
in
Renaissance. last
collection from
1470's
with
the
the
the
and
Franco-Flemish line
period
as
of the M e i s t e r s i n g e r s .
The L i e d e r b i i c h e r tions
texts
half
of
the
(1455-1460), 1460's,
1480's 22 a l l style
Three
in
the
and
collec
fifteenth the
the
Glogauer
s ho w t h e setting
influ of
the
t wo a c c o m p a n y i n g i n s t r u m e n t a l
9 0
H o w a r d M. B r o w n , Mu_s^jL c^ jLji _t _h_e R e n a i s s a n c e (Englewood C l i f f s , N.J.: P r e n t i c e - H a 1 1 , 1 9 7 6 ) , pp. 2 7 3 274. For d e t a i l s c o n c e rn in g th e se a n t h o l o g i e s see F r i e d r i c h Blume, P r o t e s t a n t C h u r c h Mu s i c : A_ H i s t o r y (London: V i c t o r G o l l a n c z , 1975 ) , pp. 5 - 5 1 . 9 1
Brown,
Renaissance,
p.
274.
2 2 1 bi d ., pp. 2 3 0 - 2 3 1 , 254. Moder n e d i t i o n s o f t h e s e L i e d e r biicher a r e a v a i l a b l e . A Mo d e r n e d i t i o n o f t h e Lochamer L i e d e r b u c h i s a v a i l a b l e i n Denkmal er der T o n k u n s t i n B a y e r n , New S e r i e s , S o n d e r b a n d 2 ( W i e s b a d e n : Breitlcopf & H a r t e l , 1972). A f a c s i m i l e e d i t i o n of the S c h e d e l sc h e s L i e d e r b u c h i s a v a i l a b l e i n Das E r b e d e u t s c h e r M u s i k , v o l . 84 ( K a s s e l a n d B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1978). A modern e d i t i o n o f t h e G l o g a u e r L i e d e r b u c h i s a v a i l a b l e i n Das E r b e d e u t s c h e r M u s i k , v o l s . 4 , 8 , 8 5 , 86 ( K a s s e l a n d B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1954, 1981).
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
28
l i n e s . 22
Although
compilations
of
these
sacred
collections
text
were
settings,
The M e i s t e r s i n g e r s .
not
primarily
s o me w e r e i n c l u d e d .
Beginning with Michael
B e h a i m ( 1 4 1 6 - 1 4 7 4 ) a n d c o n c l u d i n g w i t h Adam P u s c h m a n n (1532-1600), Hans
a pupil
Sachs
composers, begun
by
and the
the
of
song
texts
prolific
these
M innesingers.^
Christmas,
the
passion,
of
the
the the
based
upon
concerts scripture.
singers,
of
the
solo
was
song
Protestant
concerned
V irgin
with
Mary,
resurrection,
Reform ation.^
afternoon
to
primarily
including
the
of
tradition
Prior
were
Meistersinger,
guilds
Through Sachs' l e a d e r s h i p
Sunday
lieder
most
continued
subjects,
service
their
poets
the
religious
creation.
the
(1494-1576),
Reformation
Trinity,
of
the
and
the
t h e s e me n c a m e i n t o The the
These
focal solo
point
of
performance
performances
were
p a r t l y j u d g e d on c o n f o r m i t y o f t h e t e x t t o t h e c o n t e n t and the even
language
of
included
the the
Lutheran
B ible.2^
scriptural
Some
reference
as
such part
settings of
the
t e x t . 27
2 2 D e n i s S t e v e n s , " Th e R e n a i s s a n c e , " i n _A H i s t o r y o f S o n g , r e v . e d . , e d . D e n i s S t e v e n s ( Ne w Y o r k : W.W. N o r t o n , 1 9 6 0 ) , p. 87. o/
Reese,
R e n a i s s a n c e , p.
652.
^ H o r s t Brunner, "M eistergesang," T h e New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c and M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 12, ed. S t a n l e y S ad i e (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , p. 75. 2^ I b i d . ,
p.
77.
27R e e s e,
R e n a i s s a n c e , p.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
653.
29
Th e S o l o G e i s t l i c h e s The which the
was
150-year
controlled
forces
of
increasing
era.
The
generally high of
between
self
and
the
private
included
in
Christ
and of
solo
in
was
one
philosophically Fostered
were
these
by
by t h e between
were added.
have
the
solo
founded
Textually
dissolution Almost
all
in
there
on t h e of
the
these
with
this had was a
submersion boundaries
compositions
basso
ritornelli
continuo
or a d d i t i o n a l
30
schools been
issued
collections
focusing
m elodies
regional
school,
era
relationship
use
In some c a s e s ,
Germany to
and
eternity.
instruments
contributed German
for
self-expression
Three w ithin
of
of
accompaniment. melodic
Baroque
a s e e m i n g l y e n d l e s s number o f d e v o t i o n a l
songs
time
consisted
the
common a i m s a nd f o r m s .
degree
the
1600-1750
mysticism. 78
and
individualization
collections 9 Q
of
theologically
orthodoxy
God a n d h u m a n i t y , song
period
Lied
composition OI id en tified, and each
geistliches by T h o m a s
of
lieder
lied
genre.
Selle
The n o r t h
(1599-1663)
and
2 3 F r i e d r i c h B l u m e , " Th e Age o f C o n f e s s i o n a l i s m , " i n £_r o_t_e_s_Jt a__n t_ C h u r c h M u s i c : _A H i s t o r y , e d . F r . B l u m e (London: V i c t o r G a l l a n c z , 1 9 7 5 ) , p. 191. 29I b i d .,
p.
189.
30I b i d .,
p.
243.
^ M a n f r e d B u k o f z e r , Mu s i c i n t h e B a r o q u e E r a f r o m M o n t e v e r d i t o B a c h (Ne\*r Y o r k : W.W. N o r t o n , 1 9 4 7 ) , pp. 9 9 100.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
30
Johann
Schop
(1604-1651) musical the
lied.
and
secular
1667),^
Albert's of
1642.
main
eight
In
songs
nearly
syllabic.
Some,
ritornelli
also
included
wh o w a s c o n s i d e r e d
composition
1638
and
(d.
father
achievement
volumes
this all
the
Heinrich
of
works
however,
and w o r d - p a i n t i n g ,
are
has
Ar i e n
collection the
of
of
are
the
seen
as
published
in
sacred
short,
showing the
German
been
170
more
Albert
and
strophic,
elaborate influence
with of
the
c a n t a t a . 33 The
m ajor
notwithstanding father
of
Johann
Rist
use
the
poetic
Albert's
literary
extensive
lied,
(1607-1667).
worship,
teaching,
usually
strophic,
having
texts,
which
of
th is
the
S i m o n Da c h ( 1 6 0 5 - 1 6 5 9 ) , " ^
wa s
sacred
and
clear
emphasized
collaboration
group, with
His
in
These
fig u re
private
r hyme the
texts,
ego
and
w ritten
devotions, regular
and
^ I ( u r t S te p h e n s o n , "Johann Schop G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c a n d Mu s i c i a n s , S ta n l e y Sadie (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , p.
for are
m e t e r . 35
celebrated
( i ) , " The v o l . 16, 732.
the
New ed.
■ ^ J o h n H. B a r o n , " A l b e r t , H e i n r i c h , " T h e Ne w G r o v e P i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c a n d M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 1, e d . S t a n l e y S a d ie (London: Macmillan, 1980), p. 8 1 1 . See a l s o , H e i n r i c h A l b e r t , AmLe.IL I » 1 1 > e d . E d w a r d B e r n o u l l i , Denkmaler d e u tsc h e r Tonkunst, 1. F o l g e , B a n d 1 2 , 1 3 (Wiesbaden: B r e i tk o p f & H a r t e l , 1958). ^ T r a u t e M a a s s M a r s h a l l , " Da c h , S i m o n , " The New Grove P i c t i o n a r y o f Music and M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 5, ed. S t a n l e y Sadie (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , p. 144. ^ J o h n H. B a r o n , " R i s t , J o h a n n , " T h e New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c a n d Mu s i c i a n s , v o l . 1 6 , e d . S t a n l e y S a d ie (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , p. 55.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
31
self at
through highly
his
voice the
instruction and
north
a
Lieder
school,
verschmalte
simple
who s e t
in
two
Seelenlust,
1595-1663),
one
of
who s e t Eitelkeit
pictorial and
language, popular
accompaniment.^
Ge r ma n s c h o o l
(Sabbatische
organ
in
thoroughbass
(Himlische
(c.
emotional
Rist's
t wo
and
Di e
the
of
for
composers include
of
Schop
1641-1643),
of
collections and
manner
Heinrich
founders
(1658)
texts
volumes,
1651), the
Th e
were s e t
Selle
Scheidemann north
Rist
German
texts:
verlangte
Di e
Seeligkeit
( 1 6 5 8 ) . 37 The i n f l u e n c e of R i s t was n o t l i m i t e d German s c h o o l
of l i e d e r
composition.
to the north
S.T. S t a d e n
1655) of t h e s o u t h German s c h o o l c o n t r i b u t e d Rist of
texts
1651.
to
The i n f l u e n c e
(1616-1655) who
t h e Ne u e h i m l i s c h e r
wrote
affected
what
3^Bl ume ,
has
of
Staden
Wolfgang
been
Lieder
considered
"C onfessionalism ,"
settings
sonderbahres
and J o h a n n
Carl
Briegel the
p.
(1607-
only
of
Buch
Kindermann
( 1 6 2 6 - 1 7 1 2 ) 33 true
Baroque
238.
3 7 B a r o n , " R i s t , " p. 5 5 . See a l s o Werner B r i e g , "Scheidemann, H einrich," T h e New G r o v e d i c t i o n a r y o f Mu s i c a n d M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 1 6 , e d . S t a n l e y S a d i e ( L o n d o n : M a c mi l l an , 1980), pp. 6 0 1 - 603. 3 3 E l i s a b e t h N o a c k , " B r i e g e l , W o l f g a n g C a r l , " The Ne v/ G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f Mu s i c a n d M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 3 , e d . S t a n l e y S a d i e (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , pp. 2 8 2 - 2 8 3 . S e e also Friedrich Noack, "Wolfgang Carl Briegel als L i e d k o m p o n i s t , " Di e M u s i l c f o r s c h u n g , 2 ( 1 9 4 9 ) , 1 8 0 - 1 8 7 ; a nd E lisab eth B riegel, W. £ a_jr 1^ .§.JL : H B a r o c k k o m p o n i s t i n s e i n e r Ze i t ( B e r l i n : Merseburger, 1963), pp. 44-45.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
32
song
cycle,
voice,
G eistliche
basso continuo, R ist's
the
of
these
and well
as
1656.
in
The
the
of
also
prolific musical
published
with
those
musikalische
of
400
were
for
solo
issued
representative presentations o f S.T.
Katechismus-Andachten
of
work,
works
between
of
however,
in
fourteen
Mu s i k a l i s c h e
1639 and
works c o n t a i n
voice
of
Staden as
volumes
these
Andreas
1651
sacred five
solo
for
by
collection
H am m erschm idt's
volumes of
texts
the
set
His
including
and t h i r d
sacred
was
school.
over
which
Gr y p h i i
t w o v i o l i n s . 39
aforementioned
Ne ue
bulk
collections, Andachten
were
the
co n sisted
first
Ger man
texts
in
Andreae
(1611/12-1675),
central
others
and
poetry
Hammerschraidt of
Oden
with
1653.
The
settings
basso
of
continuo
a c c o m p a n i m e n t . 40 Other wrote 1630)
members
geistliche used
(1618,1626).^
lieder.
chorale Adam
of
the
central
German s c h o o l
J o h a n n H e r ma n n S c h e i n m elodies
Krieger
in
his
(1634-1666)
set
(1586—
^£11.1.1. a. at
also
least
N. o._v a_ one
■^ R. H i n t o n T h o m a s , P o e t r y a n d S o n g i n t h e G e r m a n B a r o q u e : .A S t u d y i n t h e C o n t i n u o L i e d ( L o n d o n : Oxford U n i v e r s i t y P r e s s , 1963), pp. 80-81. ^Johannes Gunther Kraner, "Hammerschraidt H a m m e r s c h m i d , f l i a m m e r s c h m i e d ] , A n d r e a s , " T h e New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c a n d Mu s i c i a n s , v o l . 8 , e d . S t a n l e y S a d i e (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , p. 76. ^B ukof zer, B a r o q u e , p. 8 6 . See a l s o , Johann H e r m a n n S c h e i n s S a m t l i c h e We r 1ce , e d . A r t h u r P r i i f e r , v o l s . 5,6,7 (Leipzig: B reitkopf & H a r te l, 1901-1923).
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
33
religious solo
text,
voice
" De r
hat
gesieget,
den G o t t
vergniigt,"
and
thoroughbass
accompaniment
with
1700
a collection
of
lieder
for
string
ritornello.^ In texts as
culmination
the
opera
1710).^
In
of
his
composer
addition
the c o lle c tio n ,
Laurentius composer.^
were
(1675-1721),
were
manifesting
arranged
the
according
written
a
appeared
Franck
w e r e c o m p o s e d by t h e
and f o u r
with
collaboration
s e v e n t y - t h r ee
These G e i s t r e i c h L i e d e r , and
year
Wolfgang
F r a n c k ’s
twenty-three
Wockenfuss
strophes
sty le,^
twenty-five Johann
to
G e o r g Bohm ( 1 6 6 1 - 1 7 3 3 ) ^ ;
thirty
hundred
by t h e H a m b u r g c l e r g y m a n H i n r i c h E l m e n h o r s t
the
with
one
(1644-
songs
in
organist
by P e t e r
cantata
poet
and
s o me w i t h a s ma ny a s influence
to
the
of
operatic
liturgical
year
^ J o h n H. B a r o n , " K r i e g e r , Ad a m, " Th e New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y of M u s i c and M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 10, ed. S t a n l e y S a d ie (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , p. 2 6 5 . S e e a l s o Adam K r i e g e r , Ar i e n , D e n l c m a l e r d e u t s c h e r T o n l c u n s t , v o l . 19 (Wiesbaden: B r e i t k o p f und H a r t e l , 1 9 5 8 ) , pp. 8 - 9 . ^ A n d r e w D. M c C r e d i e , " F r a n c k , J o h a n n W o l f g a n g , " T h e New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f Mu s i c a n d M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 6 , ed. S t a n l e y S a d i e (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , pp. 7 8 5 - 7 8 7 . ^ ^ Hu g h J . M c L e a n , "Bohm, G e o r g , " T h e New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f Mu s i c a n d Mu s i c i a n s , v o l . 2 , e d . S t a n l e y S a d i e ( L o n d o n : M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , pp. 8 5 2 - 8 5 3 . ^ U w e H a e n s e l , " W o c k e n f u s s , P e t r u s L a u r e n t i u s , Th e New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f Mu s i c a n d Mu s i c i a n s , v o l . 2 0 , e d . S t a n l e y Sadie (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , p. 4 7 0 . See a l s o F red Hamel, "Die K o m p o s i t i o n e n Johann S eb astian B a c h s im S c h e m e l l i s c h e n G e s a n g b u c h , " Z e i t s c h r i f t f u r M u s i k w i s s e n s c h a f t , 12 ( 1 9 2 9 - 1 9 3 9 ) , 2 3 2 - 2 3 7 . ^For
detailed
considerations
of
this
influence
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
see
34
with
each
song a s s o c i a t e d
After in
the
almost
Italian
ceased
as
a
Schemelli
medium
of
as
tunes
J.S.
(1685-1750),
Arnold
Schering
actually basso
the
continuo Bach,
also
from
only
original
to
the
it
of
having
with this
com positional of
smaller
devotion.^ 954 of
were
of
been
genre
with
solo
1736
the
songs
and
understanding. associated
these with
improved
major
and
movement,
In
been
Bach,
other
Ger man
scale
sacred
this
has
three
work
settings
contributed
of
Gesangbuch but
s o l o song
The P i e t i s t
containing
the
that
along
arias. view
of
influence
an e x p r e s s i o n
Sixty-nine Bach
line
the
personal
Gesangbuch,
appeared
this
under
its
text.
of German s a c r e d
century,
maintained
a biblical
output
o p e r a and c a n t a t a
however,
arias,
vast
seventeenth
activity
song
the
with
determined melodies the
by are
remaining
by h i m . ^
Baroque solo
with
composers,
cantatas
for
C a r o l Anne C r u m r i n e , " Th e K e y b o a r d a n d V o c a l s e t t i n g s o f G e o r g Boehm: An A n a l y s i s o f S t y l e a s D i c t a t e d by T e x t " (Ph.D. d i s s e r t a t i o n , Syracuse U n i v e r s i t y , 1972). ^ U w e Kraemer, "Program N ot es ," Johann S e b a s t i a n Bach: G eistliche L ieder, Elisabeth Speiser, soprano; P e t e r S c h r e i e r , t e n o r ; Hedwig B il g r a m , o r g a n i s t (A rchiv P r o d u l c t i o n , 2533 299, 1 9 7 5 ) . ^Ibid. F o r a r e p o r t o f a d i f f e r i n g o p i n i o n by t h e A m e r i c a n m u s i c o l o g i s t G r e g o r y G. B u t l e r s e e A l f r e d D u r r , "Qprogram N o t e s J , " Johann S e b a s t i a n Bach: S c h e m e l l i Song Book, A rleen Auger, soprano; Peter Schreier, tenor; Gunther P f i t z e n m a i e r , b a s s o o n is t; M artin O stertag, violincellist; Martha S ch uster, harpsichordist; Nans Joachim Echard, o rg a n is t; Gachinger K antorei S t u t t g a r t ; B a c h - C o l l e g i u m S t u t t g a r t ; H e l l m u t h R i l l i n g , c o n d u c t o r (CBS h a s t e r w o r k s , CBS D2 3 8 9 7 2 , 1 9 8 3 ) .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
35
liturgical
use.
Heinrich
solo
works as a p a r t
well
as
The
for
his
Telemann
geistliche
Gottesdienst
solo
voice,
G. F.
H a n d e l ’s ( 1 6 8 5 - 1 7 5 9 )
included
his
operatic-style
sacred
Gott
of for
(1636,1639).^
of
Geor g
Philipp
seventy-two cantatas
and s o l o sole
deutsche
settings
s c h e Ver gni i gen i n solo
continuo,
Neun
wrote
Konzerte
(1725-1726)
(1681-1767) contained basso
(1585-1672)
o f h i s S y m p h o n i a e S a c r a e _I ( 1 6 2 9 ) a s
Kleine
Harmonische
SchUtz
melodic
instrum ents.^
contribution
to
Arien
(1724-1727).
texts
from
soprano
with
B.H.
for
this
form
These
were
BrocIces'
Irdi-
b a s s o c o n t i n u o and
violin. ^ The S o l o G e i s t l i c h e s During
the
last
fifty
Lied
1750-1800
years
of
the
eighteenth
century
over 1100 c o l l e c t i o n s of sacred l i e d e r were CO published, th e m a j o r i t y of which were d e s i g n e d e i t h e r
^ H e i n r i c h S c h i i t z , S y m p h o n i a e S a c r a e 1 / 1 6 2 9 , Neue A u s g a b e s a m t l i c h e r W e r k e , v o l s . 13, 14, e d . R u d o l f G e r b e r and G e r h a r d K i r c h n e r ( K a s s e l and B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1957, 1965). Also, H e i n r i c h Schiitz, K le i n e g e i s t l i c h e K o n zerte 1 6 3 6 / 1 6 3 0 , Neue A u s g a b e s i i m t l i c h e r W e r k e , v o l s . 10, 11, 12, ed. W i l h e l m Ehmann and Hans H o f f m a n n ( K a s s e l and Basel: Barenreiter, 1963). ^ A n n e R o t h g e b - P e s c h e k , "The S a c r e d S o l o C a n t a t a s o f G e o r g P h i l i p p T e l e m a n n , " T h e NATS J o u r n a l , 42 ( 1 9 8 5 ) , 9-11. See a l s o , Geo rg P h i l i p p T e l e m a n n , M u s i k a l i s c h e W e r k e , v o l s . 2 , 3 , 4 , 5 ( K a s s e l and B a s e l : Barenreiter, 1953,1957). C1 W i n t o n D e a n , T h e Ne w G r o v e H a n d e l ( Ne w Y o r k : W.W. N o r t o n , 1 9 8 2 ) , p p . 1 4 6 - 1 4 7 . Konrad
Am e i n ,
Markus
Jenny,
and
W alther
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
36
for
congregational
intense
use
in
period of l i e d e r
worship or as c h o i r composition
saw th e r i s e
of the E n lig h te n m e n t
emphasis
rationalism .
would shape.
on
come
to
known
as
geistliche
the
impact
his
treatise
written
in
following
of
wa s a l s o a t i m e w h i c h with i t s
addition
accompanying
the
ideas
"Romanticism"
settings
lieder
the
ideas
Von
der
1747
and
ideals
folksong-like
for
of
of the t e x t , to
of
the
which
were
C. G.
Krause
published song
in
taking
and
his
of th e s e
Poesie
1752
he
In
which
was
espoused
the
strophic
expressivity,
the
vocal
form,
syllabic
line.^^
in
were two m ajo r
the penning of sacred
was C h r i s t i a n
followers,
s howed
and s i m p l e a c c o m p a n i m e n t s whi c h were
who w e r e a c t i v e
The f i r s t
era
(1720-1774).
composition:
Contemporaneously there figures
Classical
musikalischen
sim plicity
be s u b o r d i n a t e
He a n d
This
S3 The
to
be
In
books.
including
F. G e l l e r t Balthasar
literary poetry.
(1715-1769).
Mi i n t e r
(1735-
Lipphardt, Dji js d e u l s c h e JL ill : K ritische Ges amta usga be der M e l o d i e n , R e p e r t o i r e I n t e r n a t i o n a l des Sources M usicales, section B, vols. 8-8a (Basel: B a r e n r e i t e r , 1975). CO For a d i s c u s s i o n of t h e s e d e v e l o p m e n t s see C h a p t e r 3 of t h i s work. - ^ D o n a l d J . G r o u t , A_ H i s t o r y o f W e s t e r n M u s i c , 4 t h e d . w i t h C l a u d e V. P a l i s c a ( New Y o r k : W.W. N o r t o n , 1 9 8 8 ) , p. 5 7 8 . S e e a l s o R a y m o n d A. B a r r , " K r a u s e , C h r i s t i a n G o t t f r i e d , " T h e New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c a n d M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 10, e d. S t a n l e y S a d i e ( L o n d o n : Macmillan, 1 9 8 0 ) , p. 2 4 4 .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
37
1793) and J o h a n n
Peter
Uz ( 1 7 2 0 - 1 7 9 6 ) ,
rationalistic
tone.
F. G.
adherents
Cramer
(1723-1788),
and
J . A.
Lavater
sublime
in
(1741-1801)
half
The
first
two
major
century
were
Berlin
Schule, centered (1712-1786). Quantz
texts
schools
of
C.
1795),
J.P.
mor e
and
a
his
(1740-1786),
sentimental
F.
J.G.
Benda
Nichelmann
also
Graun
songs,
all
the
included (1774),
and
designed
of
major
co m p o sitio n of the g e i s t l i c h e s
and
as
in
and
these
settings
for
the Great
K. H.
Graun
Bach
(1714-
Marpurg
(1718-
J.G.
except
figure
lied
Sturm
and
Berlin.
group were J.J.
C.P.E. F. W.
Agricola J.G.
involved
Graun in
was C. P. E. B a c h . of
texts
(1786),
private
of
Norddeutsche
(1703-1771),
(1721-1783),
wrote r e li g io u s
Cramer
composition
of t h i s
(1717-1762),
Although
accompaniment
known
(1709-1786),
Kirnberger
lieder
lieder
around the c o u r t of F r e d e r i c k
(1720-1774).-^
(1758),
Sturm
successionally
The l e a d i n g f i g u r e s
(1704-1759), 1788),
centered
School,
(1697-1773),
over-300
with
(1724-1803)
C.C.
wrote
poetry
nature.^
The this
Klopstock
wrote
all
by
His
Gellert
with
devotional
the
piano use
in
^ G e o r g F e d e r , " D e c lin e and R e s t o r a t i o n , " in P„r £_t e jS_t a_n._t CJi ji r c h M u s i c : A. _H_i_s _t c^.r y_, e d . F r . B l u m e (London: V i c t o r G a l l a n c z , 1974), pp. 337-338. ■ ^ W illi Apel, " B e rlin S chool," Harvard D ic t i o n a r y o f M u s i c , 2nd ed . (Cambridge, Mass.: Belknap P ress, 1969), pp. 91-92.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
38
the
home.^ Later
composers the
in
arose
previously
variation
of
as
1774) and
and
of
of Krause
greater of
Schulz
this
Zweite
for
home
as
drama
of
texts in
the
by G . J .
which
Romantic
more
to
the
who s e t
poets
of
Berliner the
(1786) Co
worship;
w ritten
a wa y
limits
by u s i n g
(1747-1800),
texts
younger
prominence
folksongs wh o s e t
of
narrow
other
(1790-1795) and
the
and
1766 as w e l l
diversity
a group
(1784)
(1752-1814)
others
ideals
figures
Uz
era
against
giving
were J.A.P.
spiritual
in
reacted
main
texts
Reichardt
historical
mentioned
The
Liederschule
well
who
form
keyboard.
religious
this
as J.F.
Mark
(1726-
by L a v a t e r
(1790)
moved
lied;
toward
a n d C. F.
the
Zelter
( 1 7 5 8 - 1 8 3 2 ) . 59 The i n f l u e n c e spread.
Groups
Dessau,
Breslau,
of
in
their
in
d is tric t
Switzerland.
the
two B e r l i n
composers
Leipzig,
affected the
of
compositional of
in
these
Heinrich
Knecht
the
Dresden,
cities
Wei mar ,
style,
Swabia
Composition
occurred
in
and
of
schools
regions
(1752-1817),
Christoph
■^Feder,
"Decline,"
337.
58I b i d .,
pp.
~^Apel,
p.
were
the
geistliche
geographical
Hamburg,
and Vienna were
as
in
of
wa s w i d e
composers
country lieder
also
through
Justin
Rheineck
(1748-
338-339.
"Berlin
School,"
p.
of
92.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
39
1797), and J o h a n n R u d o l f Z u m st e e g ( 1 7 6 0 - 1 8 0 2 ) i n
Swabia,
Johann H e i n r i c h E g l i (17 4 2 -1 8 1 0 ) and Johann Anton S u l z e r (1752-1828) c.
in
Switzerland,
Ant on
Steffan
(1726-
1797) in Vienna. While
neither
Haydn ( 1 7 3 2 - 1 8 0 9 ) men
did
Mozart
Schopfer with
to
wrote a solo
e h r t ) in
religious
He a l s o
in
wrote
frechen
Mozart
VI.A.
were p r i m a r i l y
contribute
accompaniment
ihr
and J o s e f
the
1791
(Die
for
a sacred Sunder")
of
cantata
addition
texts
lieder
output
sacred
ihr to
(1756-1791)
the
for
with
soprano,
four
texts
Magd,
strings
the
and
n deutschen 1 9 66) , pp.
soprano
basso
aria
continuo.
"Ein' fs
both
geistliches soprano
bass aria
strings,
N u m b e r e d a mo n g H a y d n ’s w o r k s a r e and
composers,
written
German-language for
F.J.
songs ein'
lied.
with
unermesslichen
having
soprano
nor
piano
W eltalls
four
songs
accompaniment. ( " Ko mme t and with
her,
organ.^ religious
Dienerin"
with
9
Hermann K re tz s c h m a r, (2 e; .s cji _i c_ji _t e^ d_e^ s^ n e u e n L i e d e s ( 1 9 1 1 ; r p t . H i l d e s h e i m : Georg 01ms, 312-341.
^ S t a n l e y S a d i e , T h e New G r o v e Mo z a r t ( Ne w Y o r k : W.W. N o r t o n , 1 9 8 2 ) , p p . 1 7 8 , 1 8 0 . See a l s o M a u r i c e J.E. B r o w n , " M o z a r t ’s S o n gs f o r V o i c e and P i a n o , The M u s i c R e v i e w , 17 ( 1 9 5 6 ) , 1 9 - 2 8 . 9
J e n s P e t e r L a r s e n , The New G r o v e Ha y d n (New Yo r k : W.W. N o r t o n , 1 9 8 2 ) , p p . 1 2 5 , 1 4 0 . See a l s o P a u l M i e s , " J o s e p h H a y d n s g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r fii r e i n e und m e h r e r e Singstimmen mit K la v ie rb e g le itu n g : Zu G e s c h i c h t e u n d A s t h e ti k des Liedes bei J. H a y d n , " Mu s i c a S a c r a , 7 7 (1957), 113-117.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Chapter
3
THE THEOLOGICAL SETTING OF THE GEI STLI CHES LI ED FROM 1 8 0 0 THROUGH 19 15 The theological as
in
that
the
Romantic
backgrounds
subsequent
period
geistliches
of
time
of
the
lied
is
nineteenth
developments
which
century
took
different
background
for
theological
thought
Pietism,
in as
place
the well
within
itself.
The B a c k g r o u n d o f N i n e t e e n t h - C e n t u r y Three
rooted
the
Rationalism,
ideological
currents
developments between
1800
Theology
which and
form
occurred
1915.
These
the in are
and R o m a n t i c i s m.
Pietism The p i e t i s t i c the
seventeenth
ism
a s an a t t e m p t
the
apostolic
dogmatic
move ment
century.
arose
to recover
faith,
systems
It
of
as
began
the
opposed
Lutheran
in the l a t t e r
within
Ge r ma n L u t h e r a n
supposed to
the
p a r t of
sim plicity
highly
Scholasticism.-^
of
developed As m o s t
■^Claude Welch, P^c^_t e_j3_t a_ri t_ T h_o__u^h__t jl ii t h e N i n e t e e n t h C e n t u r y , V o l . I , 1 7 9 9 - 1 8 7 0 ( Ne w H a v e n : Yale U n i v e r s i t y P r e s s , 1 9 7 2 ) , p. 23. S e e a l s o , Egon W. G e r d e s , " T h e o l o g i c a l T e n e t s o f P i e t i s m , " C o v e n a n t Q u a r t e r l y , 34 (1976), 25, who f i n d s t h e p r e - h i s t o r y o f P i e t i s m in P u r i t a n i s m , Reformed o r t h o d o x y , and m y s t i c i s m , a s w e l l as 40
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
41
classically Phillip cern its to
expressed
in
the
Pia
Desideria
focus
the
"interiorization
on a c t i v e
articles
of
faith
belief
of
Christian
conviction informal
personal
of
spiritual
assemblies
an
immorality
was
personal which
experience
intolerance
of
often preceded
sin.^
The P i e t i s t s
placed
great
with
laxity,
underprivileged
member s
of
to
th e Romantic
movement ^ and grew t o l a r g e
in
Lutheranism.
^ Ib id .,
Protestant p.
a concern
T h o u g h t , p.
met
Within
for
the
Pietism
in
upon these
indifference,
with
society.^
by a
emphasis
Christ.^
coupled
We l c h ,
Wi t h
qua c r e d i t u r ) i n c o n t r a s t O quae c r e d i t u r ). Pietism held
(fides
groups
truth."
(fides
to a p e rs o n a l co n v ersio n e x p e rie n c e ,
small
of
Jakob Spener (1635-1705), P i e t i s m 's c e n t r a l con-
was
deep
(1675)
poor
and and
contributed
proportions
in
27.
23.
^Kenneth S cott L a t o u r e t t e , C h r i s t i a n i t y i n a_ R e v o l u t i o n a r y Age: A_ H i s t o r y o f C h r i s t i a n i t y i n t h e N i n e t e e n t h and T w e n t i e t h C e n t u r i e s , Vol. I: The N i n e t e e n t h Century in Europe: B a c k g r o u n d a n d t h e Roma n C a t h o l i c P h a s e (New Y o r k : H a r p e r & B r o t h e r s , 1 9 5 8 ) , p. 78. I bi d ., pp. 7 9 - 8 0 . See a l s o G e r d e s , " T h e o l o g i c a l T enets," 29-30, who d e f i n e s the idea of C h r i s t i a n p e r f e c t i o n a s l o v i n g God w i t h a l l o f o n e ' s b e i n g . sr
Welch, P r o t e s t a n t T h o u g h t , p. 23. See a l s o , L a t o u r e t t e , C h r i s t i a n i t y , p. 8 0 . F u rth e r, see Gerdes, " T h e o l o g i c a l T e n e t s , " 3 0 - 3 3 , who u n d e r l i n e s t h e f a c t t h a t w i t h i n P i e t i s m o n e ' s l o v e f o r God w a s t o i s s u e f o r t h i n l o v e f o r one's neighbor.
teenth
^See K a r l B a r t h , P r o t e s t a n t T h e o l o g y i n t h e N i n e Century: I t s Ba c k g r o u n d and H i s t o r y ( V a l l e y F o r g e :
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
42
the nineteenth zerland
than
century,
in
with
e v e n mo r e O Ger many.
central
influence
in
Swit-
Rationalism Beginning ing to All
throughout religious religious
reason
and
the
in
the
seventeenth
succeeding
century,
considerations teaching
examined
and
was
in
and
wa s
mindset
which
grew
of
an
from
wa s a p p l i e d
before
as
being
doctrine
and
and i n c r e a s
thoroughgoing
to r e lig io n
utilitarianism ,
indicative
reason
summoned
b e f o r e a s s e n t was g i v e n to t h e
secularization,
a
accredited
This "enlightened" approach
century
the
manner. bar
"reasonable"
being discussed.
was a c c o m p a n i e d
a strong
antidogmatic, disenchantment
of
moral
by
sense,
anti-enthusiastic with
religious
J u d s o n P r e s s , 1 9 7 3 ) , pp. 1 1 4 - 1 2 3 , who i d e n t i f i e s t h e b a s i c f o r m o f P i e t i s m as i n d i v i d u a l i s m and s a y s , " I n vi ew o f t h e later, new i n d i v i d u a l i s m o f t h e t i m e o f G o e t h e a n d o f R o m a n t i c i s m , one c a n n o t t a k e P i e t i s m s e r i o u s l y enough as a h i s t o r i c a l p r e l u d e . " O L a t o u r e t t e , C h r i s t i a n i t y , pp. 80, 84. See a l s o , K e n n e t h S c o t t L a t o u r e t t e , C h r i s t i a n i t y i n ei R e v o l u t i o n a r y Age: _A H i s t o r y o f C h r i s t i a n i t y i n t h e N i n e t e e n t h a n d T w e n t i e t h C e n t u r i e s , Vol. I I : The N i n e t e e n t h C e n t u r y i n Europe: T h e P r o t e s t a n t a n d E a s t e r n C h u r c h e s ( Ne w Y o r k : H a r p e r a n d B r o t h e r s , 1 9 5 9 ) , p p . 6 1 - 7 7 , wh o t r a c e s t h i s i n f l u e n c e of P i e t i s m t h r o u g h t h e a w a k e n i n g s and r e v i v a l s on t h e E u r o p e a n c o n t i n e n t d u r i n g t h e n i n e t e e n t h c e n t u r y . D. M a r t i n S c h m i d t ' s i n t r o d u c t i o n i n D a s Z e i t a l t e r d e s Pietism us, ed. M a r t i n S ch m id t and Wilhelm J a n n a s c h (Bremen: C a r l S c h i i n e m a n n , 1 9 6 5 ) , p p . XXXI X- XL I s k e t c h e s the in flu e n c e of P ietism through the n in e te e n th century and i n t o th e t w e n t i e t h c e n t u r y . This influence is also d e m o n s t r a t e d i n t h e c h a p t e r s on t h e i n d i v i d u a l t h e o l o g i a n s W i l h e l m M a r t i n L e b e r e c h t de W e t t e , F r i e d r i c h August G o t t r e u T h o l u c k , H e r ma n n F r i e d r i c h K o h l b r i i g g e , a n d J o h a n n C h r i s t o p h Blumhardt in B a r t h , P r o t e s t a n t T he ol og y.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
43
controversies,
persecutions,
reason
last
rise
to
gion:
as
"the
three
the
j u d g e and g u i d e
different
rationalistic
i s m . •*•-*■ O n l y
the
theology
the
two of
conform
though i t s
to
of
reason
contents
divine
revelation,
of
place
the
of
Mysterious that
be
transition
the
divine
t o Deism. or
concepts
of
a n t hr o po 1 o g i c a 1 discoveries,
and
®We l c h,
impact
on
supernaturalism , that
religion
Christianity
did
what r e a s o n ,
discover. 19
This
led
Toland
it.
so,
unaided
high
reason work
by
evaluation
(1670-1722),
This
had even
to C h r i s t i a n i t y
could not c o n t r a d i c t with
and a t h e -
strong
held
revelation
congruent
Deism
that
John
reli
century.
transcended
true revelation
always
and
by
had
on gave
rationalistic
ra tio n a 1i s ti c
could
(1696)
to
these
i n c l u d i n g John Locke (1 6 3 2 -1 7 0 4 ), to
i n e v e r y t h i n g " - * -®
approaches
nineteenth
Adherents
This emphasis
super n a t u r a l i s m , Deism,
first
of
and w ar s . ^
not
wh o but
held would
marked
the
1^
"natural
religion,"
Newtonian
garnered
rationalism
Protestant
- *- ®I bi d. , p . 3 0 , Human U n d e r s t a n d i n g .
was
astrophysics,
inform ation the
which
of
T h o u g h t , pp.
quoting
John
John
the
from Locke
based
on
socio overseas and
his
30-34. Locke's
A_n E s s a y
in
-*--*-Harry E l m e r B a r n e s , jVn I n t e l l e c t u a l a n d C u l t u r a l H i s t o r y o f t h e W e s t e r n W o r l d , V o l . 2 ( Ne w Y o r k : Dover P u b l i c a t i o n s , 1 9 6 5 ) , p. 7 8 4 . -^Ibid.
^®Ibid.,
p.
786.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
44
followers,^ religion and
claimed
led
he
to
the
should
essential
to
sins;
(4)
and
be
that
reasonable
following
conclusions:
worshiped;
worship; there
(2)
(3) p e o p l e is
a
consideration
future
(1)
God e x i s t s
and
piety
repent
of
virtue should life
of
with
are
their
rewards
and
punishments. ^ Although profound period
Deism
effects
originated
upon
the
in
Germanic
of t h e E n l i g h t e n m e n t and
Ge r ma n the
Samuel Deist,
first
to
Reimarus
to
all
Wilhelm
reconcile
L u t h e r a n s and C a t h o l i c s
reason;
Moses M en d e ls s o h n
religion
is
(1729-1791), some
of
that
the
religion
Leibnitz
the
Gottfried
the
absolutely
wh o a t t a c k e d characters
teachings of love
14I b i d . ,
of
p.
who
via a fa ith
the
B ible,^ ranked
only te n e t
and
sought
as
that
^Latourette,
no
Lessing and
conceding a
natural
being the n e c e s s ity
787 C h r i s t i a n i t y , p.
H i s t o r y , p.
to
b a s e d upon
prophecies,
high
wa s
Jesus;"^
Ephraim
while
were
important
who h e l d
miracles,
among
ideas
"historical
and G o t t h o l d
Jesus
with i t s
^Latourette, ^Barnes,
in
the
first
(1646-1716),
the
during
religion
(1729-1786),
true;
had
Included
the
revealed
uncover
it
by D e i s t i c
(1694-1768),
who r e j e c t e d attempt
peoples
beyond.
t h o s e who w e r e m o s t d e e p l y i n f l u e n c e He r ma n n
England,
29.
801.
C h r i s t i a n i t y , pp.
33-34.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
45
to
love
one's
Further Enlightenment 1803),
proponents
included
Johann
Christoph
von
wh o, in
to
the
the
great
was
succession
of ("The
claim ed
that
in
organization
of
literature,
influential
the
work
theologians
were
In
people but
of
Johann
also
advanced
worked for
the of
are
human
it
wa s
first, Pure
by
the
thinker
1O Barnes,
the
rational
existence
and
H i s t o r y , p.
the
Reason,"
p.
to
lim ited
to
the
Go d .
reason. had been K ritik
801. 34.
134.
2 We 1 c h , P r o t e s t a n t
in
approach
which of
Kant
things
This
a
reinen
1781),
is
character
in
der
know
proofs
be
succeeding
to
mind.
1^ L a t o u r e t t e , C h r i s t i a n i t y , p. 20I b i d .,
with 91
theology.
K ritik
knowledge
Kant begun
prom ulgated
unable
sensations
against
the
Kant
were h i g h l y
w eak ened t h e c o n f i d e n c e w hic h had been p l a c e d i n It
(1744-
which were
of
the
Immanuel
t h r e e of th e se
most
Critique
them selves,
and
of Kantian thought
books.
Vernunft
Herder
(1749-1832),
of n in e te e n t h - c e n tu r y
im portance of
first
sphere
the
course
generations
Goethe
von
of
on t h e s t r e a m o f G e r ma n I d e a l i s m
The p r i n c i p l e s of
Gottfried
(1759-1805),
9n
the
rationalism
Schiller
while carrying
regard
Johann
the
von
within
Leibnitz,
of
Wolfgang
( 1 7 2 4 - 1 8 0 4 ) . While influential
1 ft
neighbor.
T h o u g h t , p . 45.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
46
der
practischen
Reason,"
1788)
of
based
Go d
presented
unconditional humankind. b1 o s s e n
the
the
"categorical
innerhalb
Kant's
contention
of
that
for
the
Jesus
conformity
Bounds that is
a son
that
is
that
though
has
the
im perative
from
God,
As a r e s u l t , For Kant, clinging
each
then,
part
of
Christian
with
to and i m i t a t i n g
Christ,
has
true
a perverted
belief consisted
of
God
humanity
it
each i n d i v i d u a l ' s
person liv e s
who
the OO sonship/4
to
become an e s s e n t i a l
Mer e
being
according moral
of
anyone
Christ
and
the
which f a c e s
The p r o b l e m , received
Kant,
existence
der Grenzen der
imperative"
with
Practical
the
moral o b l i g a t i o n
within
him,
of
im perative,"
("Religion
to
example
Critique
argument
"categorical
pleasing
highest
Kant's
1793 Di e R e l i g i o n
published to
("The
and u n q u a l i f i e d
Vernunft
conformed is
on
In
Reason")
and
Vernunf t
in
not
w ill.
w ill.
99
faithfully
the a rc h ty p ic a l
human
r\ /
who
has
overcome
this
"natural religion," for
and
the
Kant t u r n e d
utilitarian
9 S
derations.-
99
perversion.
Such
Latourette,
end
further
of
to
Thus,
while
morality
further
as the
theological
considerations
C h r i s t i a n i t y , pp.
ending basis consi-
included
133-134.
^ ^ P a u l T i l l i c h , P e r s p e c t i v e s on 1 9 t h a n d 2 0 t h C e n t u r y T h e o l o g y , e d . C a r l E. B r a a t e n (New Yo r k : Harper Row, 1 9 6 7 ) , p p . 6 7 - 6 8 . ^B arth, ^Welch,
Protestant Protestant
T h e o l o g y , pp. 2 8 8 - 2 8 9 . Thought , pp.
a
46-47.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
&
h i
Kantian wh o
doctrine
loves
of
because
performance;
which
is
favorably
as
toward
teenth
and
century.
Idealistic Hegel the
One wa s
(1770-1831).
nineteenth
to d is p u te
knowledge.
Barth
with
humanity's
the
human r a c e
and
causes
there
thought
perspective,
but r e v i t a l i z e d (1886-1968)
in
the
early
upon
approach
wa s done
(1822-1899). most
widely
experience
by
the
morality
pragmatic
Yet a n o t h e r
to in c lu d e
by t h e R o m a n t i c
for
further
concentration
followed,
Kant's
to
feeling
^Barth,
Protestant
^Ibid.,
pp.
on the
years
rather
work.
basis
enlarge
for
a
the
than
third
theology,
Albrecht
of a c t i o n ,
of
Building
morality,
theologian
course
was
theologian
as
in
by t h e N e o - o r t h o d o x
further
wa s
of
little-used
point
as
four
S u c h a v i e w w a s t a k e n by
the
adopt
act
the nine
validity
reason,
to
to
9 f\
in
wa s t o ma k e r e v e l a t i o n ,
Kant's
Holy
remained
the tw entieth century, starting
the
him
pleased.
the
t h e one
i n c l u d i n g Georg Wi l h e l m F r i e d r i c h
A differing
century
Karl
which
theological
being
Father;
work of Kan t,
philosophers,
theologian
wisdom
to
view of t h e o r e t i c a l
by t h e
w i t h whom h e i s
the
approaches
Father
satisfaction
loved
those
the
Son r e p r e s e n t i n g
God's
Following possible
his
the
begotten
viewed
Trinity:
of
moral
Spirit
the
Ritschl
and t h e one category
of
( G e f i i h l ), s u c h a s was done
Friedrich
Schleiermacher.
T h e o l o g y , pp.
97
287-288.
47-48.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
48
Romanticism Arising critical
in
Idealism,
fundamentally emotional.^®
the
intellectual
teachers,
essential
element
to
wa s t h e the
agree
rather,
the
or
i n s t i n c t i v e and
rather
than thought
and w r i t e r s .
Romantic
disagree
ethos
was
with fe e lin g s
with
others.
the
with
yearning
results
oneself
and
caused
Protestantism
a swing to
ultim ately
n o
in
'
with from
union of the
ultimate Go d .
on
q
Art in the p. 214.
finite
Religiously,
a passionately
mystical
moved
the
with and this
orthodox O1 Catholicism,
ideas
B a r n e s , H i s t o r y , p. 8 4 7 , q u o t i n g The Ma k i n g o f t h e Mo d e r n M i n d , p p . 4 0 9 - 4 1 0 . n
feelings
reconciliation
a rationalistic
beyond
belief
OQ
for
which
an
wh o h a s t h e
Romantic
the
disparate Indeed,
prim acy of i n d i v i d u a l
longing
Kant's
people are not
bo nd u n i t i n g an o t h e r w i s e
philosophers, of
that
to
Accompanying the
infinite
peace
but
but,
e v e r y o n e i s an i n d i v i d u a l
right
reaction
T h i s e m p h a s i s on f e e l i n g
of
that
in
Romanticism claimed
beca me t h e p r e d o m i n a n t group
1790's
and
of
J.H.
Go d
as
Randall s
M i l o Wo l d e t a 1 . , A_n I n t r o d u c t i o n t o Mu s i c a n d W e s t e r n World (Dubuque: Wm. C. B r o w n , 1 9 8 7 ) ,
^ B e r n a r d M.G. R e a r d o n , R e l i g i o n i n t h e Ag e o f Romanticism: S t u d i e s in Ear ly N in et ee n th Century Thought (Cambridge: Cambridge U n i v e r s i t y P r e s s , 1985), pp. 4 - 5 . ^R oger Cardinal, German R o m a n t i c s i n C o n t e x t (London: S t u d i o V i s t a , 1 9 7 5 ) , p. 12. S e e a l s o , L. A. W i l l o u g h b y , T h e R o m a n t i c Mo v e m e n t i n G e r m a n y ( L o n d o n : Oxf or d U n i v e r s i t y P r e s s , 1 9 3 0 ) , p. 7.
R eproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
49
exclusively
revealed
apprehension source
of
within
all
of
the
in
the
the
Bible
"divine
created
people.
Principle"
world
Hence,
toward
and in
of
nature
and
antagonistic
who
reconciled
final
system s"
of
in
his
was
spiritual
the life
analysis,
R o m a n t i c s s o u g h t a " p a n t h e i s t i c God who r e s i d e d in
personal
which
the
the
a
in
own
R ationalist
man a n d
person
and
the
the
Romantic
philosophy. These Romanticism writers. critical
twin were
forth
in
group,
whose
concerns
philosophical
rather
first
Johann Gottlob v on
Schelling
brothers, Friedrich
critic
Fichte
Schlegel
like
W ilhelm
than
were
literary,
Schlegel
Schlegels;
an the
1853) and N o v a l i s ( F r i e d r i c h
and
poets,
the
included Wilhelm Schlegel
wives;
von H a r d e n b e r g ,
Tieck
and
Wilhelm
theoretician
Ludwig
of
primarily
(1767-1845)
their
aesthetic
German
generations
philosophers;
(1772-1829),
(1773-1798), the
two
of
(1 762-1814) and F r i e d r i c h
(1775-1854), both
August
Wackenroder
notes
sounded
The and
ch aracteristic
and
(1773-
1772-1801);
R o b e r t M. W e r n a e r , R o m a n t i c i s m a n d t h e R o m a n t i c S c h o o l i n G e r m a n y (New Yo r k : D. A p p l e t o n , 1 9 1 0 ) , pp. 1 4 4 145. See a l s o T i l l i c h , P e r s p e c t i v e s , pp. 7 6 - 9 0 , who, i n o u t l i n i n g t h e n a t u r e of R o m a n t i c i s m , has i d e n t i f i e d and d is c u s s e d a s i m i l a r c o n f i g u r a t i o n of ideas. He b e g a n w i t h t h e r e l a t i o n s h i p b e t w e e n t h e f i n i t e and t h e i n f i n i t e as being of f i r s t im portance and c o n t i n u e d w ith the i m p o r t a n c e of e m o tio n and i n t u i t i o n , the p o s itiv e v a l u a t i o n of th e p a s t as a means of c o n t e m p o r a r y s e l f u n d e r s t a n d i n g , the e s t a b l i s h m e n t of a u t h o r i t y , the d e s i r e f o r r e l i g i o u s and p o l i t i c a l u n i t y , and c o n c l u d e d w i t h t h e r e a l i z a t i o n of t h e r e a l i t y of t h e r ea l m of t h e demonic.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
50
and
the
theologian
The s e c o n d into the
Friedrich
group,
practice
w h i c h was l e s s
the
collectors,
theories
the
1823) and H e i n r i c h Theodor
1822);
and
Ernst
Moritz
ironic
for
ne w
can
be
within
Zacharias
(1774-1811);
Wer ner
(1768-
the n o v e lis t,
Theodor
Korner
(1791-1813)
Arndt (1769-1860), (1787-1862), Heinrich
the
both p a t r i o t i c
Heine
a b o v e on p a g e 4 7 ,
eighteenth
period
century
development.
importance
in
with of
the the
time.
1776-
lyricist; Q/ (1799-1856).
the left
four
nineteenth work
of
As s u c h ,
one
and
in
work of Kant a t
Three
and
in focus;
Idealistic
Approaches to Theology the N ineteenth Century
identified that
( 1 7 7 8 - 1 8 4 2 ) a n d Ac h i m v o n
poets:
theological
significant
included
Hoffmann,
cynic,
the
group,
putting
(E. T.A.
As n o t e d of
older
while
Hoffmann
Basic
close
the
dramatists,
von K l e i s t
critical
(1768-1834).^
Wilhelm
the
Ludwig Uhland the
of
Clemens Brentano
Arnim ( 1 7 8 1 - 1 8 3 1 ) ;
Ernst
Schleiermacher
of
the
basic
options
these
were
century, seminal
alongside
of
and e a c h figure the
^ ^ P a u l Henry Lang, Music in W este rn C i v i l i z a t i o n ( Ne w Y o r k : W.W. N o r t o n , 1 9 4 1 ) , p p . 7 4 1 - 7 4 3 . See a l s o , W i l l o ug hb y, Romantic Movement, pp. 3 - 4 . ^ F . L i c h t e n b e r g e r , H i s t o r y of German T h e o lo g y in t h e N i n e t e e n t h C e n t u r y , t r a n s . W. H a s t i e ( E d i n b u r g h : T. & T. C l a r k , 1 8 8 9 ) , p p . 2 7 4 - 3 0 1 . S e e a l s o , L a n g , Mu s i c , p p . 743-745. In a d d i t i o n , s e e W i l lo u gh by , Romantic Movement, p . 4.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
continuing Pietism, eral
forces
r e v i t a l i z e d t r a d i t i o n a l orthodoxy, O Rationalism, t o g e t h e r they c om plete a gen
and
picture
geistliches
of
lied
Schleiermacher of " F e e l i n g "
of
a
the
theological
G e r ma n
of f e e l i n g
youth,
the
theologian
by t h e
Schleiermacher's
which began w i t h P i e t i s m
expressed in
Schleiermacher
Protestant
to being shaped
which
and t h e E x p e r i e n c e (Gefiihl)
was m o s t i n f l u e n t i a l l y Friedrich
from
arose.
The r e l i g i o n
by
world
the
nineteenth
o7
century
(1768-1834), the dominant OQ of h i s time. In a d d i t i o n
Moravian P i e t i s t i c theology
wa s a l s o
education
of
his
formed under
the
^^The A p o s t l e s ’ C ree d and t h e N i c e n e Creed a r e e x p r e s s i o n s of " t r a d i t i o n a l o r t h o d o x y . " W ithin the c o n t e x t o f Roman C a t h o l i c i s m c e r t a i n d o c t r i n e s c o n c e r n i n g t h e V i r g i n Ma r y w h i c h o r i g i n a t e d d u r i n g t h e M e d i e v a l e r a belong under t h i s d e s i g n a t i o n as w ell. These i n c l u d e the d o c t r i n e of th e im m a c u la te c o n c e p tio n of Mary, her as s u m p tio n to heaven, her r o l e as the m e d i a t r i x between h u m a n i t y a n d G o d , a n d h e r c o - o p e r a t i o n w i t h God i n t h e a c c o m p l i s h m e n t o f human s a l v a t i o n . For a d i s c u s s i o n of such d o c t r i n e s see the f o ll o w i n g a u t h o r s : B. M. B i l l o n , D o g m a s on M a r y : _A H a r d a n d C a r e f u l A n a l y s i s ( D e v o n : A r t h u r H. S t o c k w e l l , 1 9 7 8 ) ; J u n i p e r B. C a r o l , ed., M a r i o l o g y , 3 volumes (Milwaukee: B r u c e , 1955); and H i l d a Graef, Mary: H i s t o r y o f D o c t r i n e a n d D e v o t i o n ( Ne w Yor k: S h e e d a n d Wa r d , 1 9 6 3 ) .
School
■ ^ We l c h , P r o t e s t a n t T h o u g h t , p p . 6 1 - 6 2 . o7 R o b e r t M. W e r n a e r , R o m a n t i c i s m a n d t h e R o m a n t i c i n Ge r ma n y (New Y o r k : D. A p p l e t o n , 1 9 1 0 ) , p . 1 4 7 .
^Kenneth Scott L atourette, Christianity i n a_ R e v o lu tio n a ry Age: _A H i s t o r y o f C h r i s t i a n i t y i n t h e Ni n e t e e n t h a^n. d^ ,T ej i _t jL ej: h_ u_^r^L_e s_, V o l . I I : The N i n e t e e n t h Century in Europe: The P r o t e s t a n t a n d E a s t e r n C h u r c h e s (New Y o r k : H a r p e r and B r o t h e r s , 1 9 5 9 ) , p. 12.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
52
impress
of
a family
conjunction Aristotle, the
close
first
history
with
Plato,
the
generation
unter
of Romantic
Ub e r
ihren
Cultured
die
its
were
Zusammenhange to
the
dargestellt
Fundam entals
System atically edition
which
Schleiermacher's religious
one's
theology
in
interchangeably)
as
and
1830).
via
The
De r
to
the
christliche Kirche
Faith
with key
two
Gebildeten
im
According
P ro te sta n t
1820-1822,
as
39
and c r i t i c s .
Religion,
Christian
the
well
him and t h e
evangelischen
Church a
revised
element
in
w a s Ge f i i h l , a t e r m w h i c h d e n o t e s
or e x p e r ie n c e .
of f a i t h ,
absolute
of
Forth,"
appeared
feeling
the essence used
Set
( " Th e
of
presented
on
1799);
G la u b e nach den G r u n d s a t z e n d e r
influences
Re d e n a n d i e
("Speeches
Despisers,"
in
between
philosophers
Religion,
uncertainties
and Ka n t ,
existed
views
Verachtern
a mo n g
Leibnitz,
which
Schleiermacher's publications:
doctrinal
philosophical
Spinoza,
relationships
of
According to h is view,
piety,
or r e l i g i o n
is
self-conscious
the
dependence
upon
Go d , ^ ^
(terms
w h i c h he
awareness
which
is
of
most
OQ J . L . N e v e a n d O. W. H e i c k , A. H i s t o r y o f C h r i s t i a n JL > V o l . I I : H i s to r y of P r o t e s t a n t Theology (Philadelphia: Muhlenberg P ress, 1 9 4 6 ) , p. 1 0 4 . See a l s o , L a t o u r e t t e , C h r i s t i a n i t y , V o l . I I , p. 1 2 ; a n d T. A. Burkill, The E v o l u t i o n o f C h r i s t i a n T h o u g h t ( I t h a c a : C o r n e l l U n i v e r s i t y P r e s s , 1 9 7 1 ) , p. 381. ^ S e e below fo r f u r t h e r " Go d" i n S c h l e i e r m a c h e r ' s w o r k .
discussion
of the id e a of
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
53
successfully ship
is
expressed
characterized
in
Christianity.^
by a t t i t u d e s
of
Such a r e l a t i o n
reverence,
humility,
/ A
gratitude,
joy,
confidence,
Because of the
views
Bible
/ Q
of
to
statements
symbolically
ship.^
After
the
through Christ, the
believer
teachings
of
another
has
it
possible
made
The B i b l e , believer rience,
for
^Burkill, ^Neve
Barnes,
wh o
person
of
of the
faith
no
need
his
or
to her
the
God
adopt
the
experience
so
that
"consciousness,
the
expe
Jesus.
381.
H i s t o r y , p.
107.
^Welch, Protestant H i s t o r y , p. 8 5 4 .
62,67.
Thought,
pp.
^ ■’L a t o u r e t t e , C h r i s t i a n i t y , V o l .
^Barnes,
in
"scripture."^
II,
and H e i c k ,
to
become a u t h o r i t a t i v e ; ^
^ L a t o u r e t t e , C h r i s t i a n i t y , Vol.
^Neve
rise
relation
faith
becomes a g u i d e in
gives
attempting
a personal
E v o l u t i o n , p.
and H e i c k ,
of
has
write
the
as the e x p e r i e n c e of
because
participate
and c h a r a c t e r
neither
in
were the b a s i s of
experienced
then
Schleiermacher,
may a l s o
that
means
has
can
one
to
a
content
believer
is
experience
by t h e " i n f i n i t e , "
as
the
the Bible
held
religion,
and d e t e r m i n a t i o n
doctrinal
he
of d o c t r i n e
Rather,
describe
but
of r e l i g i o u s
Schleiermacher,
faith.
with
trust.
priority
nor any s t a t e m e n t s
Christian union
the
and
H i s t o r y , p.
H i s t o r y , p.
II,
p.
p.
14. See 14.
108.
854.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
also,
54
W ithin Schleiermacher He
this
general
delineated
viewed
God
as
the
underlies,
and
includes
the
of
"whole,"
or
the
m anifestations,
all
"whence"
including
understanding
marized
universe
he
has
"the
been
continues
charged
within
Because mental
is
with
scholarly God
apprehension,
is
of h i s
unity
things, reality
of
dogmatics.
which
o f God,
God,
being
designating as
the
this
"infinite,"
which has
God i s
the
on t h i s
essentially
Schleiermacher
been sum
universe,"^
pantheistic,
circles
but
unknowable held
debate
matter.
that
George Matheson,Aids to the Study of Theology ( E d i n b u r g h : T.& T. C l a r k , 1 8 7 4 ) , p. a l s o , W e l c h , P r o t e s t a n t T h o u g h t , p. 67. H i s t o r y , p.
causes,
an i n f i n i t e number AO personality. Because of
A O
^Barnes,
thought
which has
Schleiermacher's as
details
unknown
u n k n o w a b l e and i n c o n c e i v a b l e the
framework
through
statements
German 41. See
850.
^ S e e Wel ch, P r o t e s t a n t T h o u g h t , pp. 7 9 - 8 1 , f o r a condensed d i s c u s s i o n of the d i f f i c u l t i e s of l a b e l i n g S c h l e i e r m a c h e r ' s v i e w o f God. T i l l i c h , P e r s p e c t i v e s , p p. 94-95, held t h a t the use of the term " p an th eism " i s problematic in i t s e l f . According to him, S c h l e i e r m a c h e r ' s s t a t e m e n t s a b o u t God a r e e x p r e s s i v e o f t h e R o m a n t i c i d e a s co n ce r n in g th e p r e s e n c e of th e i n f i n i t e w i t h i n t h e f i n i t e , that is, "the power of the divine is present in e v e r y t h i n g , . . . h e i s t h e gro u n d and u n i t y of e v e r y t h i n g . " I t d o e s n o t m e a n , a c c o r d i n g t o T i l l i c h , t h a t God i s t h e "sum of a l l p a r t i c u l a r s . " See a l s o S te p h e n S y kes, F r i e d r i c h S c h l e i e r m a c h e r ( R i c h m o n d , VA: J o h n Kn o x, 1 9 7 1 ) , pp. 18-30, wh o i n h i s d i s c u s s i o n o f S c h l e i e r m a c h e r ' s d o c t r i n e o f God p o i n t e d o u t t h a t S c h l e i e r m a c h e r r e v i s e d some p a s s a g e s i n h i s w o r k s in an a t t e m p t t o c l a r i f y h i s u n d e r s t a n d i n g o f God a n d s o a v o i d t h e c h a r g e o f b e i n g pantheistic .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
55
about the a t t r i b u t e s God
himself
dependence
but
upon
o f God a r e
only
about
him .^
It
arising As
Schleiermacher including God. at
humanity,
There a
is
particular
definitely
lives,
point
Shortly after
its
perfect
relationship
with
of people
was s u b j u g a t e d
point
time
in
redeem life
itself.
and
In h i s
of J e s u s
Schleiermacher to
him,
to
the
has
the
world
but
could of
the
the
S c h l e i e r m a c h e r Ts
actualization
"^Ibid.,
pp.
■^Ibid.,
p.
44.
was
of
thought
race
by a n a c t
and
in
created
human
nature.
of
from nature
From t h a t unable
to
o f God t h r o u g h t h e life
the person
to h u m a n ity .^
of Jesu s
attribution
Christ, of d e i t y
Jesus'
humanity
is
which
saw C h r i s t
as
o f t h e human r a c e
o f a new o r d e r
77-79.
being
heavenly
corrupt
restore
affirm ation
order,
humankind f e l l
earthly
that
with a ll
its
the
instant
that
been
the c o m p le tio n of the c r e a t i o n as
the
shunned any f o r t h r i g h t
while
essential
God i n
discussion
view
created
has
tim e,
creation,
the
Only t h e i n t e r v e n t i o n
death
absolute
c a u s a l ity ,
and
a unique
to
humankind
of
whether
at
God.^
all
G od's
moves,
in
was c r e a t e d
of
about
CO
of t h i s . of
that
uncertainty
feelings
power or c a u s a l i t y ,
e x p re s s io n affirm ed
statements
Schleiermacher's
from a m o d i f i c a t i o n one
truly
our
wa s
God h a s o n l y o n e a t t r i b u t e , else
not
of
well
possibilities
^^Matheson, -^Ibid.,
as
pp.
A i d s , p.
42.
45-47.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
for
56
h u ma n e x i s t e n c e . ^
Within
this
" S e c o n d Adam" C h r i s t o l o g y
the
Jesus
was
seen
uniqueness
outlining
of
of
C hrist's
redemption,
the
importantly,
his
difference totally
which S c h le ie rm a c h e r essence
sinlessness, of
reconciler
mediator
the
the
between
which
held
of need f o r
origin,
and,
most
"God-conscioiisness"
t o be i d e n t i c a l
perfection
Scriptures^ of
regeneration
the
occurs
historical
experience
Christ
lack
undiminished
of the " i n f i n i t e "
Redemption,
in
his
his
with
the real
of h is r e l a t i o n s h i p
a b s o l u t e d e p e n d e n c e on God, C h r i s t
with
Schleiermacher's
o f God i n h i m . ^ Because of the
the
in
i s th e most e f f e c t i v e
and t h e f i n i t e ,
d i v i n e and e a r t h l y
and
of
Jesus
participates
God-consciousness,^ and
sanctification,
is
as
in
and,
the
confronted
testified
C hrist's
involves
but
hence,
realm s.^
wh e n a n i n d i v i d u a l
personality
of
not
very
to
own only
gift
of
him self.^
•^Welch, ^Neve
Protestant
and H e i c k ,
T h o u g h t , p.
H i s t o r y , pp.
■^BurkiH, Evolution, P e r s p e c t i v e s , pp. 110-114.
p.
83. 112-113.
382.
See a l s o ,
Tillich,
tr o
B e r n a r d M.G. R e a r d o n , R e l i g i o u s T h o u g h t i n t h e N i n e t e e n t h C e n t u ry I l l u s t r a t e d from W r i t e r s of t h e P e r i o d (Cambridge: Cambridge U n i v e r s i t y P r e s s , 196 6) , p. 21. ^Neve
and H e i c k ,
^Welch,
H i s t o r y , p.
Protestant
112.
T h o u g h t , p.
83.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
57
Hegel
and t h e
Religion
Beginning his
emphasis
feeling,^
of Phil os op hy
where
Kant
on m o r a l i t y
Georg
ended,
nor
Wilhelm
but
accepting
Schleiermacher's
Friedrich
Hegel
neither focus
(1770-1831)
e l e v a t e d t h e i n t e l l e c t and p h i l o s o p h y to t h e p o s i t i o n priority
in
theology.^
l o s o p h y and t h e o l o g y tianity,^
Hegel
under
rubric
the
S pirit,
the
existence,
fully,
sought of
can
details
of t h i s
in
publications:
in the
the
("Science
of
Logic,"
of
1807);
phischen W issenschaften Sciences
der P h i l o s o p h i e
in
universe
ground as
the
of
it
all
dialec-
w orld.^
The
were p r e s e n t e d
des G e i s t e s
Wissenschaft Encyclopadie
("Pheno
der
der
Logik
philoso-
( " E n c y c l o p e d i a of
Outline,"
des Rechts
phi
H e g e l ’s s y s t e m ,
Idealism
m Grundrisse
of
and C h r i s
entire
understood
history
1812-1816);
reconcile
the
Phanomenologie
Spirit,"
Philosophical
In
and
system of a b s o lu te
of
the
system.
reality
to
science
understand
a single
itself
menology
linien
attempt
be i n t e l l e c t u a l l y
unfolds
the
his
and t h e r e b y
to
ultim ate
tically
four
In
on
1817);
("Outlines
of
and
Grund-
the
Philo
sophy of R i g h t , " 1821).
^R eardon,
^Barnes, ^Welch, Wel ch,
Religious
T h o u g h t , p.
H i s t o r y , p. Protestant
20.
850.
T h o u g h t , p.
* ^ Ne v e a n d H e i c k , H i s t o r y , p p . P r o t e s t a n t Th ou gh t, pp. 88-91.
87. 119-120.
See
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
also,
58
A l t h o u g h t h e work of Hegel has a
wide
variety
C h ristian
of
expression
to
so
that
claim
to
the ex p lic a tio n Incarnation
of
its
most
com plete
this
truth
could
central
of
the
to
in
be
tru th
a of
philosophical
have
an
In
this
validity.
observably
the T rin ity
undertaking and of
the
mind
was
importance.
upon t h e
the
him self
brought
the doctrines
were o f
after
understood
who
universal
Building built
he
philosopher
Protestantism
genuine
ways,
been i n t e r p r e t e d
tenet
image of the
that
the
human
mi n d o f God, H e g e l r e a s o n e d
t h a t j u s t a s i n t h e h u ma n m i n d e v e r y t h o u g h t i s ma d e up o f three and
elements,
one
divine
idea there
self
(Son),
them
both.
two
which must
contradictory
or c o m p l e m e n t a r y
unites
so
them,
be t w o r e a l i t i e s ,
which
are
Similarly,
united as
the
by
Universal
the
Soul
is
dwells.
eternally
Father.^ the
Soul
the
Hegel,
Jesus
is is
the
Protestant
^Matheson,
Spirit
which
contains is
a union
the Father the in
body
in
whom t h e
dwelling
place
wh o i s which Father of
"self-manifestation "that
T h o u g h t , p.
A i d s , pp.
the
and n on
unites
the
of
(Father)
Christ,
m i n d , " who e x p r e s s e d
^^Wel ch,
mind
self
S o n wh o i s
As a r e s u l t ,
incarnate,
For
absolute
and
the
h u ma n p e r s o n a l i t y
of b o th body and s o u l , so S p i r i t the
in
ideas
which
is
the of
universal
87.
92-97.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
59
and whi ch i s
potentially
Hegel independent the realm
held
true
that
although
of tim e in a s t a t e
the
Trinity
of p e r f e c t i o n ,
of t i m e so a s t o embody i t s e l f
wa y t h a t
a soul
infinite
Soul
through
the
7
fi
o f e v e r y huma n b e i n g . "
existed
it
entered
much i n t h e s a m e
must occ up y a body t o become known.
first act
expressed
concretely
of
creation.
At
itself
its
in
The
nature
inception
nature
s e e m e d t o be an e x p r e s s i o n o f G o d ' s g l o r y w h i c h was u n a b l e to
enter
nature
into
communi on w i t h
itself
shared
in
the
the
divine.
life
of
Because,
the
Soul,
however,
this
origi
n a l l y l a t e n t l i f e g r a d u a l l y was a b l e t o be u n f o l d e d i n t h e developm ent from i n a n im a t e m i n e r a l s to the l i v i n g soul
through
animal
stages Prior
a
process
of e x i s t e n c e . to
the
not
exist,
the
possibilities
from
God
decide to
live
but as
which
whether a
life
to
humanity for
freedom The
exists
of
plant
human l i f e ,
and
for
to by
sin
and
beca me
an
existence
individual
is
did
personal
aware
apart of
and
God
transcend
the
difference
or
nature
it
life
P e r s p e c t i v e s , p.
134.
97-104.
^ N e v e and H e ic k , H i s t o r y , P e r s p e c t i v e s , p. 124.
of
See a l s o , p.
121.
and
the
self
the
^ M a t h e s o n , A i d s , pp. P e r s p e c t i v e s , pp. 1 1 8 - 1 2 3 . Tillich,
and
between
attempt
both
f\ ft
developed
controlled
^Tillich,
included
development
developed.^
separation
which
human
must
as
Tillich, See
also,
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
60
shows i t s e l f each
person
in
selfishness.
has
made,
This l a t t e r
constitutes
choice,
which
H e g e l ’s d e f i n i t i o n
of
sin. In
order
to
b e t w e e n God a n d ma n , by a n a c t still
with
tionship
possible
a supernatural
of s u p e r n a t u r a l
resident
be o n e
make
force
within nature.
humanity,
but
which e x i s t s
the
reconciliation
redeemer
in a d d itio n
must
to the power
This f i g u r e must not only
must a l s o
be a w a r e
b e t w e e n him and
the
of
to r e s t o r e humanity to fello w sh ip
This
role
entire
the life
selfish
to
the
life.
clearest
which will
For
in
that
removing
the
it
it
is
in
God w i t h to
the
or
her
the
o wn
of
both
that as
him
had
grace
freedom
and the
the
which and
by
his
in
true self
individual comprises goodness.
the
was
the
and
his
weakness his
while
divinity
re-established fellowship;^
unified
with
voluntarily the
real
On t h e
God,
of of
c o m m u n i o n w i t h God m o r a l b e h a v i o r o c c u r s . ^
^Matheson, ^Welch,
A i d s , pp.
Protestant
105-111.
T h o u g h t , p.
both and and
surrenders
power basis
his
natural
humanity
to v e il
h u ma n is
Father
submitting
his
served
rela
w i t h Go d .
crucifixion
His r e s u r r e c t i o n
self,
divine
Christ's
showed
communion
worship
played
God a n d c r u c i f y i n g
proof
body w h ic h
f r om human s i g h t . divine-human
of
Hegel,
demonstrable
divinity
Jesus
the
infinite
as he l a b o r s is
be b o r n
96.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
his this
61
R i t s c h l and t h e R e l i g i o n of Pragmatic M orality In th e of
Idealism
Hegel The
part
of
associated
materialism
tant
with
theologian
corporate
K a n t ’s ,
of
as held
nature
importantly,
tionally,
but
an eye
to
most
due
to
human e x i s t e n c e . ^
79
with
the
concepts
to
it
was A l b r e c h t
influential
third
of
the
Protes
nineteenth
be a c o n s t a n t
religion it
sim ilarly
was R i t s c h l ' s
k n o wn
neither
factor
meeting
the
in
Hegel.
the Most
perception, nor
e mo
value
judgments
of
h u ma n
needs, 7^ p a r t i c u l a r l y
Because
of
which l i e s and
this
H i s t o r y , pp.
^Burkill,
E v o l u t i o n , pp.
■^Reardon,
Religious
natural
are
like
as
spiritual
Ne ve a n d H e i c k ,
to
intellectually
the r e s o lu t io n of the c o n t r a d i c t i o n individual
ideas
79
the
religion
to
of Kant and h i s empha
tempered
last
practically, the
return
by
wane.
by S c h l e i e r m a c h e r , a n d s t r e s s e d
of
God i s
a
background,
was
the
however,
that
now
expressed
w e r e on t h e
saw
thought
this
who
He b e l i e v e d
human l i f e ,
the
within
theologically
century
and p o s i t i v i s m .
(1822-1889)
century.
the
as
century the forces
respectively
although
Arising Ritschl
nineteenth
Romanticism
on m o r a l i t y ,
with
of t h e
and S c h l e i e r m a c h e r
closely
of
and
latter
sis
middle
formed
within
aspects
fundamental
148-149.
428-429.
T h o u g h t , p.
each
21.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
of
62
understanding, priority
Ritschl
in r e li g io u s
g a v e t h e h u ma n w i l l thought
e le m e n ts of m y s t i c i s m , or
speculative
and
with
holding
knowledge of G o d , ^
wor k i n t h e t h r e e
der
Rechtfertigung Justification
adding
further
("Theology
is
to
basis
of
his
race
of
the
published
volumes of h i s
und V e r s o h n u n g and
only
the
("The C h r i s t i a n
1881)
and
und
the
understanding
seen
a
God nor to
is
as
holiness
as
forgive
his
re-adm it
them
personal divine
Lehre
while
Me t a p h y s i k
three-volumed of of
Pietism," the
Chris
Father
who
has
attributes,
but
who
h u ma n c h i l d r e n
to
of
Doctrine
1870-1874)
Theologie
in for
Die c h r i s t l i c h e
Reconciliation," in
source
mai n i d e a s
Ritschl's
fellowship
uncondition
purely
on
the
love.
God's
from
be
Within
Because ideas
given h i s t o r i c a l l y
("The H i s t o r y
always ready and
to
as
Pietismus
wrath
ally
to exclude a l l
des
faith,
neither
Christ
Metaphysics,"
Die G e s c h i c h t e
tian
of
devotional sentimentalism,
gospel
reflections
and
1880-1886).
the
Ritschl
his
of
Pietism,
seeking
position
Rationalism.^
Beginning Christ,
while
the
humanity wrath
drawing
had
and
near
sinned
holiness to
him,
and
constructed
which
kept
God r e v e a l e d
the
false human
himself
in
^^Ibid. Tillich, P e r s p e c t i v e s , pp. 215-216, discussed th is as well, arriv in g at a s im ila r conclusion. See a l s o , B a r t h , P r o t e s t a n t T h e o l o g y , pp. 6 5 5 - 6 5 6 , 6 5 8 659. 7 f\
Latourette,
C h r i s t i a n i t y , Vol.
II,
p.
26.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
63
Christ tude
so t h a t of
all
people
unchanging
example of
the
would
love.
sacerdotal
k n ow o f
The
this
prophetic
service
of
7 ft
forgiveness ultim ate
by f a i t h ,
w ill
bring
ideal
by
for
to
ft 0
Thus
human l i f e , the
ju stifying
the
"childlike
feeling
spiritual
^Barth,
God
based
this
result
h u ma n r a c e
of
believer
as his
based utter
dominion
Protestant
in
on t h e
truth,
consists
of
him
moral
four
on
through
is,
acts:
T h e o l o g y , p.
(1) (2)
in d iv id u al's
(3)
the
the
action
or her F a th e r ;
trust;" over
fully
Ritschlian
divine
that
to
obedience
that
the
or
Father's
when in
the
had
justification
reconciliation,
person
and
wh o
K i n g d o m o f God,
of th e e n t i r e
love.
the
ultim ately the
to
atti
to them as th e p r e l u d e
Ritschl,
about
God's c o n f r o n t i n g
believer
with
should
moral u n i f i c a t i o n inspired
of
which i s a v a i l a b l e
According
grasped
believers
reconciliation
love.^
which
convinces
word
Jesus, ^
p e r f e c t k n o w l e d g e o f God a n d w a s u n i t e d obedience,
divine
giving
world;
the
and
661.
^ ^ To n y L a n e , Har p e r ' s C o n c i s e Book o f C h r i s t i a n F ci _i t. _h ( S a n F r a n c i s c o : H a r p e r & Row, 1 9 8 4 ) , p. 1 7 4 . A c c o r d i n g t o B a r t h , P r o t e s t a n t T h e o l o g y , p. 6 6 1 , w i t h i n R i t s c h l ' s v i e w J e s u s i s h i m s e l f God i n s o f a r a s h e r e v e a l s t h e l o v e o f God t o h u m a n i t y , or i n so f a r as p e o p l e " e x p e r i e n c e and e v a l u a t e h i s h i s t o r i c a l e x i s t e n c e a s an a c t i o n r e v e a l i n g God. " ^Neve
also,
and H e i c k ,
H i s t o r y , p.
150.
®^Latourette, C h ris tia n ity , Lane, C h r i s t i a n F a i t h , p. 174.
Vol.
II,
p.
28.
R eproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
See
64
(4)
engaging
the
person
Q1
i n t h e wo r k i n G o d ' s k i n g d o m .
Summar y The i n f l u e n t i a l nineteenth tifying
century
that
stre sse d
can
be
of
the
part
by
each
Schleiermacher's
theological
of
Romantic
but,
general,
in
contrast
and
to
the
stresses u p o n God.
cism
concerned
with
and
accepts
through
contact
both Romanticism is
also
tion tance
the
with
from
its
the
deep c o n s c i o u s n e s s
iden
which
the
union
to focus
experience created
is
the
of
order.
the
it
with in
specifically feeling
hand, human
and
divine
theology
the
realm
in
are
but,
of
Romanti
Pietism,
to re lig io n ,
successors,
on
Romanticism
other
of
is
which
rooted,
in d i s t i n c
recognizes
the
dis
human and t h e d i v i n e as e x p r e s s e d i n a of
personal
conversion
thought,
it
out
of
believer's
On t h e
approach
Romantic
between the
is
the
mindset
and S c h l e i e r m a c h e r ' s
an e m o t i o n a l
by
the
view points.
c a n be s a i d
orientation
dependence
divine
in d iv id u al
of
of humankind i n r e l a t i o n s h i p
absolute is
classified
consciousness
theology
Schleierm acher's
christocentric
easily
human
the
t h e e m o t i o n s or f e e l i n g s God,
most
orientations
of
h u ma n
sinfulness
experience. this
and
the
need
According to
conversion
experience
for
a
pietistic that
the
^ B a r t h , P r o t e s t a n t T h e o l o g y , p. 6 5 7 . For f u l l e r t r e a t m e n t of the v a r i o u s e l e m e n t s of R i t s c h l i a n t h e o lo gy , c o n s u l t A l b e r t T e m p l e S w i n g , The T h e o l o g y o f A l b r e c h t R i t s c h l (New Y o r k : Longmans, Green & C o . , 1 9 0 1 ) .
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
65
b e l i e v e r e x p r e s s e s l o v e t o w a r d God a n d t o w a r d h i s o r h e r fellow
h u ma n b e i n g s . In c o n t r a s t
Romanticism, H e g e l ’s
and
Schleierm acher's
Idealism
while R itschl's ditional
to the emotional emphasis of P ietism ,
is
focused
on
concentration is
orthodoxy
able
is
to
Romantic
the
mind
theology,
or
intellect,
on t h e h u ma n w i l l .
subsume
the
three
Tra
different
o r i e n t a t i o n s and m u s t be v i e w e d w i t h i n a p a r t i c u l a r expression emotions,
to the
Owing poetic
determine mind,
or
whether i t
the
generally
emotional
expression
and
because
the
approaches
theology,
that and
dominate
of set
love the
poets
devoid
talism, to
those
of
those
in
the
this
Ludwig
mysticism,
differing
-
of
the
chapter,
Pietism,
is
geistliche which
such
There Uhland
whose t e x t s
character
as
are, and
were s e t .
Pietism,
or
in
This
songs
by t h e
Romantic
is
which
Idealistic
moralizing poets texts
devotional
and P i e t i s t i c
like
tend
to
sentimen
even w h i l e s o m e t i m e s d e a l i n g w i t h s u b j e c t s addressed
likely
sentiments
however,
These
not
Romantic
lied.
the
foci
is
most
express
of
theolo
it
of R om anticism ,
songs
adoration,
Novalis.
Johann
Ha mme r
of
three
volitional
predecessor,
of
devoted of
and
influence
texts
true
texts
like
Julius be
and
their the
particularly
of
discussed the
the
will.
the
surprising
to
o rien ted toward
to
- em otional,intellectual, gical
is
poetic
similar poets.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Chapter
4
LUDWIG VAN BEETHOVEN (1770-1827) Amo n g t h e a l m o s t n i n e t y o r i g i n a l and
piano
settings
which Beet hoven of r e l i g i o u s
wrote
texts.^
there
songs for voice
are
Two a r e
eight
discussed
which
are
below.
" Di e L i e b e d e s N a c h s t e n " ( Op. 4 8 . No. 2; 1 8 0 3 ) The 1769),
poet,
moral
In
addition
philosophy
at
fables,
songs,
novels,
the
six
Gellert
texts
the
Geistliche
Bach c h o s e
fifty-five
Gellert
texts,
to
plays set
Li e d e r of to
C a r l Loewe,
although
his
poetry,
and p o e t r y .
texts
O
he
for
rhetoric, also
wrote
The s o u r c e
in h is
1757 from
set
(1715-
o f t h e G e r ma n
University,
by B e e t h o v e n
texts
G ellert
figures
teaching
Leipzig
Oden und
F r a n z J o s e p h Haydn,
liche
Fiirchtegott
wa s o n e o f t h e m o s t i m p o r t a n t
Enlightenment. and
Christian
Opus 48 i s w h i c h C. P. E.
voice
and
piano.
and T c h a i k o v s k y a l s o were
most
of
popular
■^For a n i n d i v i d u a l l i s t i n g o f e a c h o f t h e l i e d e r by c o m p o s e r , s e e A p p e n d i x A b e l o w .
set
a mo n g
geist
^ P e t e r Branscombe, " G e l l e r t , C h r i s t i a n F i i r c h t e g o t t , " Th e New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f Mu s i c a n d M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 7, e d . S t a n l e y S a d i e ( London: Macmillan, 1 9 8 0 ) , p. 223. 66
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
67
the
composers
of
the
first
Berlin
School
of
lieder
compo
sition. Die L i e b e d e s N a c h s t e n So j e m a n d s p r i c h t : Ich li e b e Gott! Und h a f i t d o c h s e i n e B r i i d e r , De r t r e i b t m i t G o t t e s W a h r h e i t S p o t t , Und r e i B t s i e g a n z d a r n i e d e r . G o t t i s t d i e L i e b , und w i l l , dab i c h Den N a c h s t e n l i e b e , g l e i c h a l s m i c h .
Love o f
the
Neighbor
O
I f someone s a y s : I l o v e God! And y e t h a t e s h i s b r o t h e r He ma k e s f u n o f G o d ’ s t r u t h , And t e a r s i t down t o t a l l y . God i s l o v e , a n d d e s i r e s t h a t I Lo v e t h e n e i g h b o r j u s t a s m y s e l f . Theological k n o wn t o h u ma n b e i n g s is
to
love
other
h e r own s e l f . another
summary. the
God i s
truth
persons
as
of
the
his
love.
He h a s
will:
each
individual
loves
made
person his
or
T h e o n e wh o c l a i m s t o l o v e God w h i l e h a t i n g
person
is
a mocker
This
text
expresses
the
under
the
influence
of
and
ideas Kant's
a destroyer of
o f God' s
traditional
rationalistic
truth.
orthodoxy
moralism
and
Pietism. Mu s i c a l
analysis.
This
entire
song^
occupies
■^Anot her E n g l i s h t r a n s l a t i o n i s a v a i l a b l e i n D i e t r i c h F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u , The F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u Book L i e d e r , t r . G e o r g e B i r d a n d R i c h a r d S t o k e s ( New Y o r k : L i m e l ig h t E d i t i o n , 1984), pp. 336-337. ^The m u s i c a l
score
is
available
for
study
in
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
of
6 8
twenty-nine
measures
measure
coda
W ritten
in
range
of
vocal
to
of th e
section
and
unrepeated
"Gott
interlude
coda ist
is
the
the
sense
of
homophonic are
die
the
in
declaimed
in
the
an e i g h t -
the
piano.^
song has a vocal accompaniment
with a r t i c u l a t i o n text.
with
serving in
for
The f i r s t
texture,
polyphonic
Lieb"
with
The
almost completely
accompaniment
text
the
as the latter
but
t h e B-
four
germ part
note
of
the
of
the
a straightforward,
manner.^
Other tings
line
song i s
the
contrapuntal The
two-measure
underline
section
song.^
binary-form
key of E - f l a t m a jo r , I O m i n o r t e n t h (d t o f ).
doubles the
melody at
a
in
the
a
changing
and
and i s
of t h i s
s e t t i n g s . No o t h e r t e x t a r e known,
nineteenth-century
but i t
was s e t
set
by C . P . E .
L u d w i g v a n B e e t h o v e n ' s We r k e : Vollstandige kritische d u r c h g e s e h e n e u b e r a l l b e r e c h t i g t e A u s g a b e , s e r i e s 23 (Leipzig: B r e i t k o p f & H a r t e l , 1 8 6 2 - 1 8 6 5 ) , p. 10. ^ S e e Ha n s B o e t t c h e r , B e e t h o v e n a l s L i e d e r k o m p o ni s t (Augsburg: Benno F i l s e r , 1 9 2 8 ) , pp. 8 9 - 9 3 , f o r mo r e d e t a i l e d d i s c u s s i o n o f t h e f o r m o f t h i s l i e d .
a
^Gi i nt her M a s s e n k e i l , " R e l i g i o s e A s p e k t e d e r G e l l e r t - L i e d e r B e e t h o v e n s " i n R e l i g i o s e Musi l c i n n i c h t l i t u r g i s c h e n We r k e n v o n B e e t h o v e n b i s R e g e r , e d . W a l t e r W i o r a , G u n t h e r M a s s e n k e i l , and K l a u s Wo l f g a n g N i e m b l l e r (Regensburg: G u s t a v B o s s e , 1 9 7 8 ) , p. 90. ^ H i l d g a r d J u n g , " Da s g e i s t l i c h e S o l o l i e d im 19. Jahrhundert: Ein B e i t r a g zur G e s c h i c h t e des d e u tsc h e n Kunstliedes" (Inaugural-D issertation, Universitat-Koln, 1 9 5 1 ) , p. 1 6 , n o t e d t h a t B e e t h o v e n ' s t r e a t m e n t o f t h e t e x t i s c l o s e l y in l i n e w ith G e l l e r t ' s d e s i r e t h a t the t e x t s be s u n g t o m e l o d i e s w h i c h w e r e " k n a p p , m a r k e n t und g e e i g n e t " ( s h o r t , s t r i k i n g , and a p p r o p r i a t e ) .
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
69
Ba c h
(1758)
and J o h a n n e s "Abendlied
No Goeble,
is
Abendlied
Schmidlin
(1761).®
unterm g e s t i r n t e n ( WoO 1 5 0 , 1 8 2 0 )
inform ation
concerning
H i mme l "
the
poet,
Heinrich
available.
unterm g e s t i r n t e n
Hi mmel
Wenn d i e S o n n e n i e d e r s i n k e t , Und d e r Ta g z u r Ruh s i c h n e i g t , Lu n a f r e u n d l i c h l e i s e w i n k e t , Und d i e N a c h t h e r n i e d e r s t e i g t ; Wenn d i e S t e r n e p r a c h t i g s c h i m m e r n , Tausend S o n n e n s t r a h l e n f li mme rn: Fi i hl t d i e S e e l e s i c h so grofi, Wi n d e t s i c h vom S t a u b e l o s . S c h a u t so g e r n nach j e n e n S t e r n e n , Wi e zuri i cl c i n s V a t e r l a n d , Hi n n a c h j e n e n l i c h t e n F e r n e n , Und v e r g i B t d e r E r d e T a n d ; Wi ll nur r i n g e n , w i l l nur s t r e b e n , I h r e r H i i l l e zu e n t s c h w e b e n : E r d e i s t i h r e n g und k l e i n , Auf d e n s t e r n e n mo c h t s i e s e i n . Ob d e r E r d e S t i i r me t o b e n , F a l s c h e s Gliiclc d e n B o s e n l o h n t : Hoffend b l i c k e t s i e nach oben, Wo d e r S t e r n e n r i c l i t e r t h r o n t . K e i n e F u r c h t k a n n s i e me h r q u a l e n , K e i n e Ma c h t k a n n i h r b e f e h l e n ; Mi t v e r k l a r t e m A n g e s i c h t , S c h w i n g t s i e s i c h zum I l i m m e l s l i c h t . E i n e l e i s e Ah n un g s c h a u e r t Mi c h a u s j e n e n We 1 1 e n a n ; L a n g e , l a n g e n i c h t me h r d a u e r t Me i n e E r d e n p i l g e r b a h n ,
O Boettcher,
B e e t h o v e n , p.
90.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Bald hab i c h das Z i e l e r r u n g e n , B a l d z u e u c h mi c h a u f g e s c h w u n g e n , E r n t e b a l d an G o t t e s Thron Me i n e r L e i d e n s c h o n e n Lohn. Evening
So n g b e n e a t h
the
Starry
Q
Heavens7
When t h e s u n s i n k s down And t h e d a y bows t o r e s t , Lu n a k i n d l y , g e n t l y b e c k o n s And t h e n i g h t d e s c e n d s ; When t h e s t a r s m a g n i f i c e n t l y A t h o u s a n d sunbeams g l i mme r : The s o u l f e e l s s o g r e a t , W r i t h e s f r e e from t h e d u s t ;
shimmer,
Looks so g l a d l y t o w a r d s t h o s e s t a r s As i f b a c k i n t o t h e f a t h e r l a n d , Ov e r t h e r e t o w a r d t h o s e s h i n i n g d i s t a n c e s , And f o r g e t s t h e t r i f l e s o f e a r t h ; Wa n t s o n l y t o s t r u g g l e , w a n t s o n l y t o s t r i v e , Of h e r c o v e r t o f l o a t f r e e : E a r t h i s t oo c l o s e and t o o s m a l l f o r h e r , S h e w a n t s t o be on t h e s t a r s . I f the storms of e a r t h r a g e , False fortune rewards the e v i l ones: Hoping s he l o o k s up, Wh e r e t h e j u d g e o f t h e s t a r s i s e n t h r o n e d . No f e a r c a n t o r m e n t h e r a n y m o r e , No p o we r c a n command h e r ; Wi t h t r a n s f i g u r e d f a c e , She s o a r s t o h e a v e n ' s l i g h t . A s l i g h t f o r e b o d i n g from t h a t world Ma k e s me s h u d d e r ; No mo r e w i l l my e a r t h l y p i l g r i m way Last a long time, So o n So o n S o on The
another
I have a t t a i n e d t h e g o a l , h a v e s o a r e d up t o y o u , a t God's t hr o ne have reaped b e a u t i f u l r e w a r d o f my s u f f e r i n g .
^See F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u , English t r a n s l a tio n .
L i e d e r , pp.
33-34,
for
R eproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
71
Theological stars'*'® and rules an
over
summary.
rewards
the
the created
individual,
life
God,
sufferer
order
on e a r t h
is
and
of
person
contem plates
hopefully
for
existence
so t h a t
lim itations beautiful to
the
with
the
and
reward
Deistic
Musical
strophes
as
the
the
from
God. ■*■■*•
measures, four
for
This the
of
free
poem
returning turbulent
life, or
For
when
she
a
longs
this
mortal
of a l l
bodily
existence:
gives
a
expression
Enlightenment
combined
u n i o n w i t h God.
Within
Beethoven
eight-line
he
the
death,
heaven. of
earthly sky
of
the
goal of m ortal
of
analysis.
this
ma y b e s e t
attain
longing
distant
com pletion
soul
time
m idst of
night
quick
rationalism
the Romantic
eighty-one
the
the
the
who j u d g e s
a pilgrimage
In the
circumstances
one
at
from
to the heavenly homeland. unjust
the
the
has
scope of
treated
strophes.
72
this
song's
Goeble's
eight
The r e s u l t i n g
Th e t r a n s l a t i o n o f t h e w o r d " S t e r n e n r i c h t e r " i s problematic. B i r d and S t o k e s , i n F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u , L i e d e r , p. 3 4 , t r a n s l a t e i t a s " S t a r r y J u d g e . " Such an i n t e r p r e t a t i o n co u ld p o i n t t o w a r d t h e b r i l l i a n c e of God's g l o r y r a t h e r t h a n t o h i s r o l e a s t h e o n e wh o c o n t r o l s t h e created order, including the s ta rs . •^The a n t e c e d e n t of th e pronoun "euch" in the fin al strophe is unclear. Possible candidates for consid e r a t i o n i n c l u d e God, h e a v e n , a n d t h e s t a r s . Whichever c h o i c e i s s e l e c t e d s e e m s t o h a v e l i t t l e e f f e c t on t h e m e a n i n g o f t h e p o e m. •*^The s c o r e o f t h i s l i e d i s a v a i l a b l e B e e t h o v e n ' s Werke, s e r i e s 23, pp. 148-151.
for
study
R eproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
in
72
lied
is
an e x a m p l e of
The r a n g e o f t h e n
f-sharp) the
within
piano
the
song the
is
of
strophe
ends
and
the
both
same
in
(c^-sharp
to
me l ody and
response
within
chordal
IO J
Th e v o c a l
change
imagery
form.
lied
eleventh
^
emotions with
a perfect
key of E m a jo r .
accompaniment
varying
strophic-variation
the
to
text.
accompaniment
the Each
for
the
l a s t two l i n e s of t e x t w h i l e th e piano u s e s a v a r i e t y of accompanimental each
strophe.
Alberti hands text
bass
of is
ecstatic
patterns
These
within
patterns
figurations,
the
pianist,
presented
restatem ent
schonen
Lohn"
quoting
the
which
same
of
moves
chordal
bald!
into
a
for
meiner
six-measure
accompaniment
the
rhythms.
except
bald
which
of
triplets,
between
dotted
repetition
"j a ,
phrases
chordal
broken
m artial
without
earlier
include
chords
and
the
two The the
Leiden codetta
ends
each
strophe . Other known t o
settings.
No o t h e r
settings
of
this
text
are
be e x t a n t .
IO See B o e t t c h e r , B e e t h o v e n , pp. 58, 6 4 - 6 5 , f o r d i a g r a m and b r i e f d i s c u s s i o n of t h e form o f t h i s s ong.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
a
Chapter
5
AUGUST HARDER (1775-1813) Although little - r e m e m b e r e d was one of t h e m o s t p o p u l a r studying turned
theology his
at
energies
successful
as
a
the
university
to
the
field
to composing ap p r o x im a te ly
for
solo
voice
with
Of
this
total
at
of r e l i g i o u s
which a r e
considered
The a u t h o r discussion
here
1845).
Raised
school
teacher,
addition
to
in
piano
least
in
texts
for
and
forty
was
volumes of
in
songs
a c c o mp a n i me n t . ' * '
and
songs
piano,
were two of
below.
of
the
texts
was F r i e d r i c h
of both
of t he songs
Adolph
Krummacher
a pietistic
family,
university
lecturer,
being
He
g u itarist
individual voice
Harder
music.
or g u i t a r
eleven
After
Leipzig,
of
pianist,
addition
either
August Harder
com posers of h is era.
teacher,
settings
today,
a
p ro lific
Kr ummac her
author.
and
a
under (17 6 7—
beca me a
pastor
Under
in
the
^ Gu d r u n B e c k e r - W e i d m a n n , " H a r d e r , A u g u s t , " The New Grove D i c t i o n a r y o f Mu si c and M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 8, ed. S t a n l e y Sadie (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , p. 1 5 9 . See a lso Heinz Becker, "Harder, A u g u s t , " Di e Mu s i k i n G e s c h i c h t e und G e g e n w a r t , v o l . 5, e d . F r i e d r i c h B l u m e ( K a s s e l and B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 19 56) , pp. 1502-1503.
73
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
74
influence
of
expression and
Johann G o t t f r i e d
to
his
didactic
vocabulary Herder's below
manner
Der
he
com pleted
Krummacher's for
in
These
religious
composers
Neuner (1778-1839), and F r i e d r i c h
pietistic
of the
Eine
Schrift
with
the
than
of
two
sections
fiir
das
the
Da s
all
of
source
of
including
Ritter
Vol k
of
almost
been
Harder,
(1810),
additon
contain
have
a
p o e ms c o n s i d e r e d
first
and
and
rationalism
the
August G o t t f r i e d
Schneider
ideas
form
works
gave
allegorical
Christfest
poetry other
an
Das
1819 three
in
and
Festbiichlein:
Neujahrstagfest.
texts
(1805) they
Krummacher
humanistic
The s o u r c e s
Together
n
faith
combined
by t h e
Sonntag
Krummacher's
which
which
influenced
respectively. of
Bible-believing
philosophy.
are
von H e r d e r
Carl
(1811-1885),
(1786-1853).^ " Da s W o r t " ( 1807)
This H arder's contains
lied
is
£ .e.s a..n.g.je u..n ji songs
for
solo
the
second
Ljl je jd e^jr
in
a _ujs
voice with
that
section
d„e m S o n n t a ^ e
of
which
piano accompaniment.^
S e e p a g e 44 a b o v e . ^ E d u a r d E m i l Koch, " K r u m m a c h e r , Dr. F r i e d r i c h A d o l p h , " G e s c h i c h t e d e s K i r c h e n l i e d s und K i r c h e n g e s a n g s der c h r i s t l i c h e n , in s b es o n d ere der deutschen e v a n g e lis c h e n K irc h e , vol. 6 ( S t u t t g a r t : Chr . B e l s e r , 1 8 6 9 ) , pp. 5 1 9 524. S e e a l s o , H a n s - H e n r i l c K r u m m a c h e r , " K r u m m a c h e r , " Ne ue i L i l £. > vol. 13 ( B e r l i n : Dunlcer & Humblot, 1982), pp. 122-125. ^This
score
is
available
for
study
at
the
Library
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
75
Das Wo r t S c h o n b l t i h e t u n d d u f t e t d i e R o s ' am S t r a u c h , SuB t o n e n d e r N a c h t i g a l l L i e d e r , Und l i e b l i c h e n t s c h w e b e t d e r F r i i h l i n g s h a u c h Dern Hi mme l z u r E r d e h e r n i e d e r . Doc h w a h r l i c h ! n i c h t s g l e i c h e t a u f i r r d i s c h e m Dein r e d e n d e n Odem a u s L i p p e n u nd Mund.
Rund
Im s c h w e i g e n d e n B u s e n w i r d w u n d e r b a r Da s W o r t l e i n im S t i l l e n g e b o h r e n , Da w a c h s e t i h m h e i m l i c h e i n F l i i g e l p a a r , Vom H e r z e n zum B o t e n e r k o h r e n . Es o f n e t d e r L i p p e n v e r s c h l o s s e n e n Saum Und s c h w e b e t d a n n s a u s e l n d im l u f t i g e n Raum. Nun s u c h e t e s s e h n e n d e i n a n d r e s I l e r z , S i c h f r e u n d l i c h m i t i hm z u v e r e i n e n ; E r h o r e t d i e F r e u d e n , und l a B t d e n S c h m e r z Di e T h r a n e n d e r L i n d e r u n g w e i n e n ; Es I c i i h l e t d e s B u s e n s v e r s c h l o s s e n e G l u t , Und s t i l l e t d i e Wogen im w a l l e n d e n B l u t . Z u w e i l e n a u c h r a u s c h e t m i t B l i t z e s Ma c h t Das Wo r t a u f g e w a l t i g e n F l i i g e l n , E r h e l l e t des diisteren F r e v e l s Nacht, Und w a g e t T y r a n n e n z u z i i g e l n ! Wohl z i t t e r t d e r Sic l a v e u n d w i i n s c h e t e s f o r t , Doch f r e i e r n u r w a n d e l t d a s l e b e n d e W o r t . Wohl s c h w e b e t e s l i e b e r im z a r t e n D u f t De r L i e b ’ und d e s D a n k e s z u r E r d e , U m t o n e t m i l d k l a g e n d d i e s t u mme G r u f t , E r h e i t e r t die f i n s t r e Gebehrde, B e g e g n e t dem S e u f z e r m i t m i l d e m Geton, Und w a n d e l t i n F r e u d e d e s D a r b e n d e n F l e h n . J a , s c h w i n g t n i c h t h i n a u f s i c h i n k i i h n e r Ba h n Das Wo r t zu d e n h i m r n l i s c h e n T h o r e n ? Wohl d a r f e s dem h i m r n l i s c h e n T h r o n s i c h n a h n , Am T h r o n e d e r A l l m a c h t g e b o h r e n ! J a , e h ' i hn d i e H e e r s c h a a r der Welten ums chl ang, E r t o n t e des Wortes g e w a l t i g e r Klang. Da r i e f e s h e r n i e d e r d e s L i c h t e s S t r a h l , I hm s c h w a n d e n d i e e w i g e n Dunl cel ; Da s c h m i i c k t e s m i t Bl u me n G e b i r g u nd T h a i ,
of
Congress
in Washington,
D. C.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
76
D i e Hi mme l m i t S t e r n e n g e f u n k e l ! So w u r d e d i e S c h o p f u n g i n h e r r l i c h e r P r a c h t D u r c h s Wo r t d e s a l l m a c h t i g e n B u n d e s v o l l b r a c h t . Da h a u c h t e d e r S c h o p f e r e s i n d i e B r u s t De s s t e r b l i c h e n S o h n e s d e r E r d e , D a m i t i h m , d e s Odems a u s G o t t b e w u B t , S e i n Leben e i n g o t t l i c h e s werde! Du S p r o t z l i n g d e s H i m m e l s ! So b l e i b e d a n n a u c h Im i r r d i s c h e n Munde e i n g o t t l i c h e r I l a u c h !
The Word
B e a u t i f u l l y t h e r o s e on t h e b u s h b l o o m s a n d s m e l l s sweet, S we et l y t h e songs of t h e n i g h t i n g a l e r e s o u n d , And d e l i g h t f u l l y t h e b r e a t h o f s p r i n g s o a r s o u t o f sight To h e a v e n f o r t h e e a r t h b e l o w . Y e t t r u l y ! n o t h i n g on t h e e a r t h l y s p h e r e c o m p a r e s To t h e s p e a k i n g b r e a t h o u t o f l i p s a n d m o u t h . In the q u i e t h e a r t w o n d e r fu ll y Th e t i n y wo r d i s b o r n i n t h e s i l e n c e . T h e r e a p a i r of wings grows s e c r e t l y f o r i t , C h o s e n by t h e h e a r t f o r t h e m e s s e n g e r . I t o p e n s t h e l i p s ' c l o s e d seam And s o a r s t h e n w h i s p e r i n g i n t h e a i r y r o o m. Now i t s e e k s l o n g i n g l y a n o t h e r h e a r t I n a f r i e n d l y way t o u n i t e i t s e l f w i t h i t ; G r a n t t h e j o y , and a l i o w The t e a r s o f a l l e v i a t i o n t o we e p t h e p a i n ; It cools the h e a r t 's locked-up f i r e , And s t i l l s t h e w a v e s i n t h e a g i t a t e d b l o o d . S o m e t i m e s a l s o r o a r s w i t h t h e power o f t h e lightning flash Th e wo r d on p o w e r f u l w i n g s , Exposes the d a r k n e s s of mournful misdeeds, And d a r e s t o c h e c k t y r a n t s ! I n d e e d t h e s l a v e t r e m b l e s and w i s h e s i t g o n e , B u t o n l y mo r e f r e e l y w a n d e r s t h e l i v i n g w o r d . C e r t a i n l y i t f l o a t s mo r e p l e a s a n t l y i n t h e s w e e t breeze Of l o v e a n d g r a t i t u d e t o t h e e a r t h , Mildly p l a i n t i v e l y sounds around the s i l e n t grave, Cheers th e dark demeanor, Meets t h e s i g h w i t h g e n t l e s o u n d i n g ,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
77
And l i v e s i n t h e impoverished.
joy
of
the
prayer
of
the
Y e s , d o e s n o t t h e wo r d s o a r a b o v e i n a mo r e daring path To t h e h e a v e n l y d o o r s ? C e r t a i n l y i t may a p p r o a c h t h e h e a v e n l y t h r o n e , Bor n n e a r t h e t h r o n e o f t h e A l m i g h t y ! Yes, b e f o r e t h e h o s t s of t h e w o r l d e mb r a c e d i t , The mo r e p o w e r f u l s o u n d o f t h e wo r d r a n g o u t . At t h a t t i m e i t c a l l e d down a r a y o f l i g h t , The e t e r n a l d a r k n e s s v a n i s h e d b e f o r e i t ; Then i t a d o r n e d m o u n t a i n and v a l l e y w i t h f l o w e r s , The h e a v e n s w i t h t h e t w i n k l i n g o f s t a r s ! So t h e c r e a t i o n i n a mo r e g l o r i o u s d i s p l a y was finished T h r o u g h t h e wo r d o f t h e a l l - p o w e r f u l c o v e n a n t . Th e n t h e c r e a t o r b r e a t h e d i t i n t o t h e b r e a s t Of t h e m o r t a l s o n o f t h e e a r t h , So t h a t f o r h i m , c o n s c i o u s o f t h e b r e a t h f r o m God, H i s l i f e c o u l d b e c o me a d i v i n e l i f e ! You h e i r o f h e a v e n ! So t h e n a l s o A d i v i n e b r e a t h r e m a i n s i n t h e e a r t h l y mouth. Theological reigns
in
heaven
breath.
It
the
the
This
in
the
to
wo r d i s
related
of
before
dispel
which can
The
source
the c re a tio n
light
flowers
is
existed
instrum ental forth
s u mma r y .
to
God' s
the
word
creation process.
the
be s e e n
all-powerful
began
who
is
his
and
was
The wor d b r o u g h t
darkness
and
beautifying covenant
which
God
gave
the
with
rise
to
whole e a r t h .
humanity
whom
h e c r e a t e d a n d i n t o whom lie b r e a t h e d t h e w o r d s o t h a t e a c h person
might
possession of
this
This
and
same
text
experience become
word
shows
combined w i t h
one the
ideas
an
divine inheritor
ma y a l s o imprint
from P i e t i s m
life of
a
personal
heaven.
approach of
as
God
By me a n s in
traditional
prayer.
orthodoxy
and R o m a n t i c i s m .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
78
Musical
analysis.
introduction,
this
twenty-eight measures.
song
measures
The
vocal
encompassing a major E-flat
major.
simple
guitar-like
The
seventh
strophes
retains
the
other
patterns. change
in
fortepiano measure presented style.
both
Other a r e known t o
is
a
to
line
marking hands
of
repetition
an e x a m p l e settings.
length
share
as
for
the
first
the
pianist.
and
which of the
arpeggiated
all
rhythmic having
note
of
The
text
a
each is
predominantly
of a t y p i c a l No o t h e r
sixth,
a slight
w ell
a
of
progression
as
in
consists
accompaniment
different
226
t h e key of
fourth,
harmonic
also
of
of
simplicity,
g^) i n
Th e
piano
strophes
accompaniment
having
strophes
eight
total
altered
the
two-measure
a folksong-like
(e^-flat
an
and
vocal
without
This
tenth
while
dynamic
for
for
has
a of
arpeggiation.^
same
the
line
keyboard
texture
Th e
consists
each
share
strophes
Following
Harder
settings
of
syllabic /: song. this
text
be e x t a n t .
^Harder has in c lu d e d a s i m p l i f i e d v e r s io n of the song f o r t h e l e s s - s k i l l e d s i n g e r and p i a n i s t . In t h i s s e t t i n g t h e e n t i r e v o c a l l i n e i s d o u b l e d by t h e r i g h t h a n d of the pianist while the le ft hand provides the a r p e g g i a t e d e l e m e n t s of t h e accompani ment. ^Becker-Weid mann, "Harder,
A u g u s t , " p. 1 59 .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
79
" Di e A h n u n g " ( 1811) This Gesange songs
und
for
song
is
Lieder
solo
the aus
voice
with
sixth dem
in
that
section
Christfeste
of
which
Harder's contains
piano accompaniment.^
D i e Ah nu ng H e i l ' g e Ahnung, me i ne S e e l e s c h w e b e t Di r e n t g e g e n , meine Li p p e b e b e t . I c h v e r h i i l l e d i r me i n A n g e s i c h t N e i g e d i c h z u i ni r und s a u me n i c h t ! Kommst du a u s d e s h i m m e l s l i c h t e r F e r n e , S c h w e b e s t du im s t i l l e n G l a n z d e r S t e r n e , Di e am Hi mme l h o c h u nd s c h w e i g e n d s t e h n Und v o l l M i t l e i d a u f u n s n i e d e r s e h n . O d e r w i r s t im Uns zura T r o s t Ach i c h f i i h l e S o l i i c h denn
H e r z e n du g e b o h r e n im d u n k e l n T h a i g e k o h r e n ! d e i n e s F i t t i c h s Wehn! dein An gesicht n i c h t sehn?
H e i l ' g e Ahnung, wi e d e s L i i f t c h e n s S a u s e l n , Dem d e s B o r n e s W e l l e n s a n f t s i c h k r i i u s e l n , S c h w e b e s t du urn S e e l e n J c l a r und r e i n , D i e i n s t i l l e r De mu t h d i r s i c h w e i h n . D e i n e L i s p e l , G o t t l i c h e , u mw e h t e n Di e g e w e i h t e n L i p p e n d e s P r o p h e t e n . Er v e r s t u m m t e , g l u h e t e und r a n g B i s g e f l i i g e l t s e i n e Red' e r l c l a n g . H e i l ' g e A h n u n g , o daB i c h d i c h f a n d e ! DaB d e i n Odein n i e m a l s m i r e n t s c h w a n d e ! LaB a u c h m i c h d e i n g o t t l i c h A n t l i t z s e h n ! He b e mi c h ei npor zu j e n e n Kohn !
of
^This score is a v a i l a b l e C o n g r e s s i n W a s h i n g t o n , D. C.
for
study
at
the
Library
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
80
The I d e a H o l y I d e a , my s o u l i s i n s u s p e n s e T o wa r d y o u , my l i p t r e m b l e s . I v e i l my f a c e t o y ou I n c l i n e t o me a n d do n o t d e l a y . You c ome o u t o f t h e b r i g h t e r d i s t a n c e o f h e a v e n , You s o a r i n t h e s i l e n t s p l e n d o r o f t h e s t a r s , Wh i c h s t a n d h i g h a n d s i l e n t i n t h e h e a v e n And f u l l o f c o m p a s s i o n l o o k down on u s . Or y o u a r e b o r n i n t h e h e a r t Chosen f o r c o m f o r t t o us i n t h e d a r k Ah! I f e e l y o u r w i n g ' s f l u t t e r i n g ! Should I then not see your face?
valley!
Ho l y I d e a , l i k e t h e g e n t l e b r e e z e ' s w h i s p e r , To w h i c h t h e r i p p l e s o f t h e f o u n t a i n c u r l themselves , You h o v e r a r o u n d s o u l s c l e a r a n d p u r e , Wh i c h i n mo r e s i l e n t h u m i l i t y d e v o t e t h e m s e l v e s t o you . Yo u r w h i s p e r s , d i v i n e e s s e n c e , f a n n e d The c o n s e c r a t e d l i p s o f t h e p r o p h e t . He b e c a me s i l e n t , g l o w e d a n d s t r u g g l e d U n t i l winged h i s s p e e c h r a n g o u t .
-
Hol y I d e a , 0 t h a t I m i g h t f i n d you! T h a t y o u r b r e a t h m i g h t n e v e r v a n i s h f r o m me! L e t me a l s o s e e y o u r d i v i n e c o u n t e n a n c e ! L i f t me up t o t h a t h e i g h t ! Theological
summary.
comes from h eaven where i t comes it
to
brings
lips.
In
those
essence
to
the
presence
O
moves in f r e e d o m ,
wh o s e r v e God i n h u m i l i t y .
comfort God's
Go d ’s
heart the
and human
®I n t h i s poem t h e e s s e n c e o f hypostatically through th e use of ( Idea ) .
is
holy.
but i t
Wh e n i t
inspiration soul
is
It also
comes
for
the
reverently
God i s r e f e r r e d t o the term "Ahnung"
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
81
fearful
yet
longs
eternally.
The
compassion.
This
and H e r d e r ' s
rationalistic
Musical strophic
song
resulting of
the
span
major.
see
God' s
stars text
from
the
in a t o t a l
face
look
and
down
reflects
the
Harder
six
on
his
of
has fashioned
The
one
strophes
of
Pietism
the
individual
Krummacher's
poem
measures.
Most
strophes
c h a n g e s i n t h e melody. This 1 O o c t a v e (g to g ) in th e key
piano
with
a modified
rhythmic
of
presence
humanity
influence
l e n g t h of s i x t y - s i x for
know
vocabulary.^
analysis.
modifications
of s l i g h t a
to
accompaniment
consists
of
consist
mel ody has of
A-flat
single
notes
o r o c t a v e s s u s t a i n e d by t h e l e f t h a n d w h i l e t h e r i g h t h a n d plays nantly
broken chord syllabic
patterns.
The t e x t
with
last
the
line
setting of
is
predomi
each
strophe
repeated. Other are
known t o
settings.
No o t h e r
settings
of
this
be e x t a n t .
^See p a g e s
73-74 above.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
text
Chapter
6
FRANZ XAVER SCHNYDER VON WARTENSEE (1786-1868) As a c o m p o s e r , Wartensee
was
one
important
musicians
Romantic e r a s . land
and
choral, lieder.^
of
the
am Ma i n
symphonic
The
fourth
of
w h i c h he w r o t e
gious
texts
by N o v a l i s .
consideration
wrote reared
under
in
this
Friedrich the
n
in
as
Schnyder
time
as
volumes
nine
and
early
his
wrote
h o me
operatic,
volumes
consisted
18 2 3 a n d
those
and
between he
von
versatile
Classical
well
Two o f
1827
songs are
of
of the
to
reli-
the
focus
chapter. Philipp
pseudonym
Pietism ,
most
G e r ma n y
between
vo n H a r d e n b e r g
Novalis.
i n a home c o n t r o l l e d
Moravian
his
those
songs
Geor g
late
works
seven
of
and t e a c h e r
Sw itzerland's
Whi l e d i v i d i n g
Frankfurt and
of
performer,
After
having
by t h e r e l i g i o u s
Novalis
became
part
(1772-1801)
of
been
insights the
of
first
■^Lui s e M a r r e t t a - S c h a r , " S c h n y d e r v o n W a r t e n s e e , ( F r a n z ) X a v e r , " T h e Ne w G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c a n d M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 16, e d . S t a n l e y S a d i e ( L o n d o n : Macmillan, 1 9 8 0 ) , p. 6 9 6 . See a l s o , P e t e r O t t o S c h n e i d e r , " S c h n y d e r v o n W a r t e n s e e , F r a n z X a v e r , " D i e Mu s i k i n G e s c h i c h t e u n d G e g e n w a r t , v o l . 11, e d . F r i e d r i c h Bl u me ( K a s s e l a n d B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1963), pp. 1922-1926. ^This volume is a v a i l a b l e fo r study in the B e i n e c k e R a r e Book and M a n u s c r i p t L i b r a r y a t Y a l e ' U n i v e r s i t y i n New H a v e n , C o n n e c t i c u t . 82
R eproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
83
generation of the
o f Ger man R o m a n t i c s .
religious Night,"
latter,
source
sixteen
with
the
for
are
poetry
of
to
the
poems
and
lied
von W a r t e n s e e ' s
Da s h o c h s t e
is
the
Geistliche
(1799).
core
with a
a
Lieder
a hymnal
favorite
of
textual
with
over
discussed
respectively,
his G eistliche
The
volume
era
to
Romantic
of
The t w o t e x t s
seventh,
third
("Hymns
fellow
Romantic
extant.
" Das h o c h s t e This
became
of th e
which co m p ri s e
of
be t h e
accompany
Novalis
works
fifth
to
Nacht
Lieder
encouragement
song c o m p o sers of h i s
an d i e
G eistliche
intended
The
200 s e t t i n g s below
and
Hi s t wo ma i n c o l l e c t i o n s
H y mn e n
Schleierm acherw as
Novalis
sermons.
were
1797)
written
Friedrich which
poetry
O
of
the
Lieder
Gut" of
the
songs
in
Schnyder
v on N o v a l i s .
Gut^
Wenn i c h i h n n u r h a b e , Wenn e r me i n n u r i s t , Wenn m e i n H e r z b i s h i n zum G r a b e Seine Treue nie vergii3t: Wei B i c h n i c h t s vo n L e i d e , F i i h l e n i c h t s a l s A n d a c h t , L i e b un d F r e u d e .
^See p a g e s
47-49 above.
^See p a g e s
51-56 above.
^ A r t h u r H e n k e l , " N o v a l i s , " Di e Mu s i k i n G e s c h i c h t e u n d G e g e n w a r t , v o l . 9, e d . F r i e d r i c h B l u m e ( K a s s e l a n d Basel: B a r e n r e i t e r , 1961), pp. 1727-1729. See a l s o , Bernhard Pick, ed., T h e Devo t i o n a l S o n g s o f N o v a l i s : Ge r ma n a n d E n g l i s h ( C h i c a g o : Ope n C o u r t , 1 9 1 0 ) , p p . 3 - 1 8 . Seelig
^ [ N o v a l i s J , G e s a m me l t e W e r k e , (Zurich: Buhl, 1945) , pp. 36-37.
vol.
1,
ed.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Carl
84
Wenn i c h i h n n u r h a b e , LaB i c h a l l e s g e r n , F o l g a n me i n e m W a n d e r s t a b e T r e u g e s i n n t n u r me i n e m H e r r n ; La s s e s t i l l d i e Andern B r e i t e , l i c h t e , v o i l e StraBen wandern. Wenn i c h i h n n u r h a b e , Schlaf ich fro h lic h ein, Ewi g w i r d z u s i i Be r L a b e S e i n e s H e r z e n s F l u t mi r s e i n , Di e m i t s a n f t e m Zwi ngen A l l e s w i r d e r w e i c h e n und d u r c h d r i n g e n . Wenn i c h i h n n u r h a b e , Hab i c h a u c h d i e W e l t , S e l i g wie e i n Hi mme l s k n a b e , De r d e r J u n g f r a u S c h l e i e r h a l t . K i n g e s e n k t im S c h a u e n , Kann m i r v o r dem I r d i s c h e n n i c h t
grauen.
Wo i c h i h n n u r h a b e , 1 s t mei n V a t e r l a n d ; Und e s f a l l t m i r j e d e Ga be Wi e e i n E r b t e i l i n d i e Ha n d ; L a n g s t v e r m i B t e Briider F i n d i c h nun i n s e i n e n J i i n g e r n w i e d e r . Th e H i g h e s t
Good^
I f I o n l y h a ve hi m, I f o n l y he i s m i n e , I f u n t i l t h e g r a v e my h e a r t Never f o r g e t s h i s f a i t h f u l n e s s : I know n o t h i n g o f s o r r o w , Feel nothing but d evotion, love,
and
joy.
I f I o n l y h a v e hi m, I gladly leave everything, F o l l o w on my p i l g r i m ' s s t a f f L o y a l o n l y t o my L o r d ; S ile n tly I leave the others To t r a v e l b r o a d , e a s y , f u l l s t r e e t s .
7
Three d ifferent English translations are a v a i l a b l e i n P i c k , D e v o t i o n a l S o n g s , pp. 8 8 - 9 2 . A prose t r a n s l a t i o n by N o r m a D e a n e a n d C e l i a L a r n e r c a n be f o u n d i n J o h n R e e d ' s T h e S c h u b e r t s o n g c o m p a n i o n ( Ne w Y o r k : U n i v e r s e B o o k s , 1 9 8 5 ) , p. 2 7 3 .
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
85
I f I o n l y h a v e h i m, I go t o s l e e p j o y f u l l y , E t e r n a l l y f o r s w e e t e r c o m f o r t t o me W i l l be t h e s t r e a m o f h i s h e a r t , Wh i c h w i t h g e n t l e f o r c e Wi l l soak and p e r m e a t e e v e r y t h i n g . I f I o n l y h a v e h i m, I a l s o have t h e wo r ld , Blessed l i k e a heavenly lad Who h o l d s t h e V i r g i n ' s v e i l . Ha v i n g s woone d a t t h e v i e w , I c a nn o t d r e a d the t h i n g s of
the e a r t h .
Wh e r e I o n l y h a v e h i m, I s my f a t h e r l a n d ; And e a c h g i f t d r o p s t o me L i k e a n i n h e r i t a n c e i n my h a n d ; Long m i s s i n g b r o t h e r s I now f i n d a g a i n i n h i s d i s c i p l e s . Theological loving, sonal
O
and
relationship
issues
forth
discipleship, Virgin human
gentle
in
summary. Lord
sorrow
lives
Christ gifts
t o him r e m o v e s a l l love,
comfort
Mar y i s a t t e n d e d being
who g i v e s
devotion, and
Jesus
in
a
as a p i l g r i m
arduous,
and
joy, the
world
while
time
path,
of
beings. is
faithful,
people. and d r e a d
Per and
loyalty,
death.
The
Each m o r t a l
conditioned
Within
following
sparsely-populated
the
sacrificial
which
events.
to
sorrow
by h e a v e n l y
and f e a r - p r o d u c i n g
can l i v e
at
is
this
life
by one
Christ
on a n a r r o w ,
or
may
one
take
the
The s p e c i f i c r e f e r e n t o f t h e t e r m " s e i n e s H e r z e n s F l u t " ( h i s h e a r t ' s s t r e a m or f l o o d ) i s u n c l e a r . Here the h e a r t s e e m s t o be t h e s o u r c e o f t h a t c o m f o r t w h i c h r e s u l t s in the a b i l i t y to face d eath u n a f r a i d which is not c o n t r a d i c t o r y t o t h e common u s e o f t h e t e r m " h e a r t " t o r e f e r to the lo c u s of the emotion of lov e .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
86
broad,
less
follow
Christ
poem i s
an
strenuous, as
in
each
spans
a
the
key
of
Although the
it
monically, arpeggiated
with and
the
last
fifth
include
The
a diminished
five
1 (c-sharp
twelfth
partner
is
with
countermelodies, exploits
as
well
of
text
repeated
9 g )
in
complex. points, with
and p h r a s i n g s .
Har
passing thirds
passages
The t e x t - s e t t i n g
melody
voice
parallel
and
meas
to
highly
the
chromatic
as
syncopation
by
strophes
the vocal li n e at p a r t i c u l a r
piano
line
of
Italianate
The a c c o m p a n i m e n t
equal
common.^
espoused
eighty-eight
alike.
chords
Rhythmically,
of
and
rhythms, the
song
consists
an
as
This
roots.
This
end
T h o s e who
siblings.
theology
form
doubles is
independent
are
pietistic
D major.
piano
three
of
spiritual
strophic
begin
range
are
Romantic
summary.
modified
which
of
with
Musical ures
disciples
example
Schleiermacher
a nd mo r e common r o a d .
of
tones
and
and
sixths.
tw o-against-
is
primarily
in
the
syllabic
first,
second,
strophes.
Other
settings.
those
of
Schubert
Th e
extant
(1819),
settings
Louise
of
this
Reicharat
text
(1819),
^ A c c o r d i n g t o S c h n e i d e r , " S c h n y d e r vo n W a r t e n s e e , " p. 1 9 2 4 , t h e c o m p o s e r w a s r e c o g n i z e d a s o n e o f t h e m o s t g e n u i n e c o n t r a p u n t i s t s o f h i s t i m e by m u s i c o l o g i s t P h i l i p p Spitta. M a r r e t t a - S c h a r , " S c h n y d e r von W a r t e n s e e , " p. 6 9 6 , has c h a r a c t e r i z e d h is c o m p o s i t i o n s as " m e l o d i c a l l y c h a r m i n g and r i c h in u n u s u a l l y d e l i c a t e c o n t r a p u n t a l w r i t i n g , " b ot h t r a i t s which a p p l y d i r e c t l y t o t h i s l i e d .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
87 and
L oe we
(1821).^
" Hymne" This Geistliche
lied
Lieder
is
the
last
v on N o v a l i s
of by
the Franz
songs Xaver
contained
in
Schnyder
von
War t e n s e e . Ky mn e ^^ We n i g e w i s s e n Da s G e h e i m n i s d e r L i e b e , Fiihlen U n e r s a t t l i c h k e i t Und e w i g e n D u r s t . De s A b e n d m a h l s G o t t l i c h e Bedeutung 1 s t den i r d i s c h e n S i n n e n R a t s e l ; Ab e r wer j e m a l s Von h e i B e n , g e l i e b t e n L i p p e n At em d e s L e b e n s s o g , Wera h e i l i g e G l u t In z i t t e r n d e Wellen das Herz s chmol z, Wem d a s Auge a u f g i n g , DaB e r d e s Hi mme l s U n e r g r i i n d l i c h e T i e f e maB, Wi r d e s s e n vo n s e i n e m L e i b e Und t r i n l c e n v on s e i n e m B l u t e Ewiglich. Wer h a t d e s i r d i s c h e n L e i b e s Hoh e n S i n n e r r a t e n ? Wer k a n n s a g e n , DaB e r d a s B l u t v e r s t e h t ? E in s t i s t a l l e s Leib, Ein Lei b ; In himmlischen Blute Schwi r amt d a s s e l i g e P a a r . 0 ! daB d a s W e l t m e e r Schon e r r o t e t e
^ H e n k e l , " N o v a l i s , " p. 1 7 3 0 , r e f e r r e d t o t w e n t y settings of t h i s t e x t w ith the pronoun "ihn" in the o pe n i n g l i n e of each s t r o p h e changed t o " D i c h . " 11 j N o v a l i s ' J ,
Ge s a mme l t e
Wer I ce, v o l .
1,
pp.
38-40,
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
88
Und i n d u f t i g e s F l e i s c h Aufquolle der Fels! Ni e e n d e t d a s silfie M a h l , Ni e s a t t i g t d i e L i e b e s i c h . N i c h t i n n i g , n i c h t e i g e n genug Kann s i e h a b e n d e n G e l i e b t e n . Von i mme r z a r t e r e n L i p p e n Verwandelt, wird das Genossene I n n i g l i c h e r und n a h e r . HeiBere Wollust Durchbebt die Seele. D u r s t i g e r und h u n g r i g e r Wi r d d a s I l e r z : Und s o w a h r e t d e r L i e b e GenuB Von E w i g k e i t z u E w i g k e i t . Hat t e n d i e N i i c h t e r n e n Einmal g e l c o st e t, Alles verlieBen sie Und s e t z t e n s i c h z u u n s An d e n T i s c h d e r S e h n s u c h t , De r n i e l e e r w i r d . Sie erlcennten der Liebe Unendliche Fiille Und p r e i s e n d i e N a h r u n g Von L e i b und B l u t .
Hymn^
Few know The s e c r e t o f l o v e , Th e y f e e l i n s a t i a b i l i t y And e t e r n a l t h i r s t . The L o r d ' s S u p p e r ' s Divine s i g n if i c a n c e I s a r i d d l e t o t h e e a r t h l y mi nd; B u t he who a t a n y t i m e Fr om h o t , b e l o v e d l i p s Imbibes the b re a t h of l i f e , F o r whom h o l y p a s s i o n I n t r e m b l i n g waves s o f t e n s t h e h e a r t , I n whom t h e e y e o p e n s , T h a t he h e a v e n ' s Unfathomable depths surveys, W i l l e a t o f h i s bo d y
19
An E n g l i s h p o e t i c t r a n s l a t i o n o f t h i s t e x t c a n be f o u n d i n P i c k , D e v o t i o n a l S o n g s , pp. 1 1 3 - 1 1 4 . A prose t r a n s l a t i o n c a n be f o u n d i n R e e d , S c h u b e r t , p. 2 7 2.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
89
And d r i n k o f h i s b l o o d Eternally. Who h a s g u e s s e d t h e e a r t h l y b o d y ' s Hi gh s i g n i f i c a n c e ? Who c a n s a y , T h a t he u n d e r s t a n d s t h e b l o o d ? I n d a y s t o come a l l i s t h e b o d y , One b o d y ; In h ea v e n l y blood Swi ms t h e b l e s s e d p a i r . 0 ! t h a t the ocean Wer e a l r e a d y r e d d e n e d And i n f r a g r a n t f l e s h The r o c k s w e r e s t e e p e d ! The s w e e t m e a l n e v e r e n d s , Lo v e n e v e r s a t i s f i e s i t s h u n g e r . Not i n t i m a t e l y , n o t i n d i v i d u a l l y e n o u g h Can s h e h a v e t h e b e l o v e d . On a l w a y s s w e e t e r l i p s T r a n s f o r m e d , t h e c o mp a n i o n becomes Mor e i n t i m a t e a n d c l o s e r . Hotter bliss Thoroughly a g i t a t e s the soul. T h i r s t i e r and h u n g r i e r Be c o me s t h e h e a r t : And s o t h e e n j o y m e n t o f l o v e c o n t i n u e s Fr om e t e r n i t y t o e t e r n i t y . I f t h e r e a s o n a b l e had Tasted once, They woul d l e a v e e v e r y t h i n g And s e a t t h e m s e l v e s b e s i d e u s At t h e t a b l e o f l o n g i n g , Wh i c h n e v e r b e c o m e s e m p t y . Th e y w o u l d h a v e r e c o g n i z e d l o v e ' s Unending abundance And p r a i s e t h e n o u r i s h m e n t Of f l e s h a n d b l o o d . Theological of u n l i i n i t e d l y breath his
of
beyond
human
blood
life in
into the
intellectual
which quenches a l l
longing
be
bound
to
It
Christ is
is
the
and o f f e r s
Supper.
I'his
comprehension,
but
h u ma n d e s i r e s
except
Christ
in
source
h e who b r e a t h e s
individuals
Lord's
experience to
Jesus
abundant love.
eternal
body and
summary.
loving
intimacy
the them
event
is
it
an
is for
for
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
the both
90
time
and
highest
eternity.
priority
ual
nourishment.
all
of
of
and p r a i s e
the Lord's
the
Supper.
This
Roman C a t h o l i c
has
been
is
sections
substance
the
key
of E m a j o r ,
consistently achieved the
closing
of
in
while
the
middle
sections.
created
range,
and
built
on a n
supports while chords
the
well
as
at
and a r p e g g i o s
m e l o d i e s or l i n e s vals
the
of
a
consistently
sixth
mo r e
syllabic
a
third.
with
text
is
beginnings the
the
of
climactic
o p e n i n g and
compass
piano
of
the
sustained with
introduce
the voice at The
and i s
accompaniment
sections
occasionally
which p a r a l l e l
the
O
with
lyrical
in
the
Coherence
to g - s h a r p ) ,
The
primarily
which
or
(b
form
is
through both
form
G major
the
entire
the
arpeggio.
meas
scheme.
are
in
nature.
It
recitatives
undergirding
which
in
E-major
by
as w el l
ABA'
arioso
section
sim ilarities
thirteenth
influenced
an
which a p p e a r s
a major
and
celebration
through-composed
*J
vocal
order
eighty-eight
sections
in
spans
spirit
theology
around
last
phrase
of
strongly
song,
and
as
gift
the
transubstantiation.
first
passages
event
an e t e r n a l
recitative
ly rical
this
his
the
is
organized
through melodic
eight-measure
of
This
of
more
recitative
for
Schleiermacher's
doctrine
loosely
give
become
technically
Alternating of
all
text
analysis.
in le n g th ,
but
Christ
will
and r e f l e c t s
Musical ures
should
Ultimately
h u ma n e x i s t e n c e
Romanticism as
People
the
chords broken
counter inter
tex t-settin g
repetition
occurring
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
is on
91
the
words " e w i g l i c h , "
on t h e
last
t wo l i n e s
Other this
text
is
and " a l l e s of
settings. by S c h u b e r t
well
as
The o n l y o t h e r known s e t t i n g
of
the
ist
ein
Leib,"
as
poem.
(1819).
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Chapter
7
MAXIMILIAN JOSEPH LEIDESDORF (1787-1840) The A u s t r i a n well-known Italy, In
in h is
choral,
he
was
Vienna,
Joseph Leidesdorf
and
and as a t e a c h e r also
orchestral,
172 w o r k s t h e r e
Maximilian
native
as a p i a n i s t
addition
board
Jew
a music
were o n ly a few f o r but
his
by
A.
Geistliche are
Pollack Lieder
discussed
and
( Op.
below.
text
of
129).
works.
solo
composed Amo n g h i s
voice
compositional
eight
1
and
with key output
vom S c h i c k s a l "
songs
Two s o n g s
in
from
did to a
his
Novalis
this
volume
9
Q
" Wenn i n
The
the
Florence,
of p i a n o and g u i t a r .
c h a m b e r , and p i a n o
accompaniment,
in
publisher
i n c l u d e a m a n u s c r i p t of "Davids Lied text
later
wa s
bangen, triiben Stunden" ( Op. 1 2 9 , No. 1 ) this
song
is
the
thirteenth
poem of
^ W altraute Schmutzenhof e r , " Leidesdorf, Maximilian J o s e p h , " D i e M u s i k i n G e s c h i c h t e und G e g e n w a r t , v o l . 8, ed. F r i e d r i c h Blume ( K a s s e l and B a s e l : Barenreiter, 1960), pp. 5 15- 516. o
This score is a v Library in Boston, O S e e C h a p t e r 6, N o v a l i s and h i s G e i s t l i c h e Public
a ila b le for study Massachusetts. pp. 8 2 - 8 3 , Lieder. 92
for
at
the
Boston
information
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
on
93
the
sixteen
Wenn i n
in N o v alis1 G eistliche
baneen,
Lieder.
triiben Stunden^
Wenn i n b a n g e n , t r i i b e n S t u n d e n Unser Herz b e i n a h v e r z a g t , Wenn v o n K r a n k h e i t i i b e r w u n d e n Angst in unserm In n er n n a g t , Wi r d e r T r e u g e l i e b t e n d e n k e n , Wi e s i e Gr am u nd Kummer d r i i c k t , Wo l k e n u n s e r n B l i c k b e s c h r a n k e n , Die k e i n H o f f n u n g s s t r a h l d u r c h b l i c k t : 0! dann n e i g t s i c h G o t t h e r i i b e r , S e i n e L i e b e kommt u n s n a h , Sehnen wi r uns dann h i n i i b e r , S t e h t s e i n Engel vor uns da, B r i n g t den Kelch des f r i s c h e n Lebens, L i s p e l t Mut u n d T r o s t u n s z u ; Und w i r b e t e n n i c h t v e r g e b e n s Auch f u r d i e G e l i e b t e n Ru h .
When i n A n x i o u s ,
Troubled
Hours^
When i n a n x i o u s , t r o u b l e d h o u r s Our h e a r t a l m o s t g i v e s up h o p e , When o v e r c o m e by i l l n e s s F e a r g n a ws i n o u r h e a r t , We t h i n k o f t h e o n e s who a r e s i n c e r e l y How g r i e f a n d s o r r o w p u s h t h e m , Cl ouds r e s t r i c t our view Wh i c h no r a y o f h o p e s h i n e s t h r o u g h :
loved,
0! t h e n God b e n d s h i m s e l f o v e r , Hi s l o v e comes n e a r t o u s , We l o n g f o r o u r s e l v e s t h e n t o be o v e r t h e r e , An a n g e l s t a n d s b e f o r e u s t h e n , B r i n g s t h e cup of f r e s h l i f e , W h i s p e r s c o u r a g e and c o n s o l a t i o n t o us ; And n o t v a i n l y do we p r a y Also f o r r e s t f o r th e bel oved ones.
Seelig
^ j^No v a 1 i s J , G e s a mm e l t e We r k e , (Zurich: Bi i h l , 1 9 4 5 ) , p . 4 8 .
vol.
1,
ed.
Carl
^A p o e t i c E n g l i s h t r a n s l a t i o n o c c u r s i n B e r n h a r d P i c k , e d ., The D e v o t i o n a l S o n g s o f N o v a l i s : German and English (Chicago: Open C o u r t , 1 9 1 0 ) , p p . 5 1 - 5 2 .
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
94
Theological but,
in
heaven
above;
wh e n he s e e s huma n b e i n g s i n n e e d o f h e l p , he h u m b l e s
himself his
s u m m a r y . God l i v e s
t o c o me l o v i n g l y n e a r
heavenly
servants
them.
he o f f e r s
individuals
consolation,
and a r e n e w e d l i f e .
stances
of
cause
full
the
anxiety,
h u ma n h e a r t
Through t h e agency
encouragement,
People liv e
illness,
grief,
to experience
fear
of
in c i r c u m
and
sorrow
which
and
hopelessness.
Wh e n G o d ' s p r e s e n c e i s m a d e k n o w n t o u s , we d e s i r e o n l y t o be i n h e a v e n w i t h h i m .
O u t o f l o v e f o r o t h e r s we p r a y f o r
their
for
peace
answered.
as
well
This
text
with Romanticism's Musical fills
i s in
in a h a lf an The is
vocal
to
treated
mel ody
instances
one
in
the
covers
of
union
in
of
syllabic pairs
on
This
"sighing"
of
syllable
initial
motif
a
with
notes in
the
is
in
strophe,
for
in
The but
mainly
first ending
of
i n a ma nner text there
section
keeping
The
song
with
of
of the song. 1 O (c t o f ) and
a descending
first
as i s
divine.
the appearance
section
or
are
coupled
each phrase
eleventh
texture
fashion,
the
form.
comprised
guitar.
prayers
Pietism
with
binary
second
part
our
through-composed
a perfect
a homophonic
a of
ideas
preparing
by a p i a n o
sung
Novalis'
thereby
strumming in
and
This
measures
tonality
within
the
own,
t h e key of F m i nor
accompanied
played
for
analysis.
cadence,
F major
our
shows the
longing
thirty-eight
section
as
is
chords similar
prim arily
are
repeated
scale of the
the
being song.
mo o d
the minor t o n a l i t y
of
which
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
95
changes last
as
two
setting, the
the
emotional
lines as
is
of the
the
content
of
poem a r e
the
poem c h a n g e s .
repeated
wo r d " Wo l k e n " f r o m
in
the
The
Leidesdorf's
first
strophe
of
poe m. Other
Reger
in
settings.
This
text
was
also
set
by
Max
1900. " Wenn a l l e u n t r e u w e r d e n " ( Op. 1 2 9 , No. 6 )
poems
The t e x t
of
this
contained
in
the
lied
is
the six th
collection
of the s i x t e e n
G eistliche
Lieder
Novalis. Wenn a l l e
untreu
werden
£
Wenn a l l e u n t r e u w e r d e n , So b l e i b i c h d i r d o c h t r e u , DaB D a n l c b a r h e i t a u f E r d e n Nicht ausgestorben s e i . Fur mi c h u mf i n g d i c h L e i d e n , V e r g i n g s t f u r mi c h i n S c h m e r z ; Drum g e b i c h d i r m i t F r e u d e n Auf e w i g d i e s e s H e r z . O f t muB i c h b i t t e r w e i n e n , DaB du g e s t o r b e n b i s t Und m a n c h e r v o n d e n D e i n e n Dich l e b e n s l a n g v e r g i B t . Von L i e b e n u r d u r c h d r u n g e n , H a s t du s o v i e l g e t a n , Und d o c h b i s t du v e r k l u n g e n , Und k e i n e r d e n k t d a r a n . Du s t e h s t v o l l t r e u e r L i e b e Noch i mme r j e d e m b e i , Und wenn d i r k e i n e r b l i e b e ,
^[Novalis*J,
Gesammelte Werke, v o l .
1,
pp.
37-38.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
by
96
So b l e i b s t du d e n n o c h t r e u ; Die t r e u s t e L i e b e s i e g e t , Am E n d e f i i h l t man s i e , W e i n t b i t t e r l i c h un d s c h m i e g e t S i c h k i n d l i c h an d e i n Kn i e . Ich habe d i c h empfunden, 0 ! l a s s e n i c h t von m i r ; LaB i n n i g m i c h v e r b u n d e n Auf e w i g s e i n m i t d i r . E i n s t s c h a u e n me i n e Br i i der Auc h w i e d e r h i m m e l w a r t s Und s i n k e n l i e b e n d n i e d e r Und f a l l e n d i r a n s H e r z . If
A l l Be c o me U n f a i t h f u l ^ I f a l l b e c o me u n f a i t h f u l , Then I w i l l y e t s t a y t r u e t o you, So t h a t on e a r t h g r a t i t u d e M i g h t n o t be e x t i n c t . F o r my s a k e g r i e f e n c o m p a s s e d y o u , F o r me you d i e d i n p a i n ; T h e r e f o r e I j o y f u l l y g i v e you This h ea rt for e t e r n i t y . O f t e n I m u s t we e p b i t t e r l y , T h a t you d i e d And many o f y o u r p e o p l e F o r g e t y ou f o r l i f e . F i l l e d with only love, You h a v e d o n e s o mu c h , And y e t y o u d i e d And no o n e c o n s i d e r s t h a t . You s t a n d f u l l o f mo r e f a i t h f u l l o v e S t i l l b e s id e each one, And i f no o n e s t a y s w i t h y o u , Ye t you s t i l l r e m a i n f a i t h f u l ; Th e m o s t f a i t h f u l l o v e c o n q u e r s , F i n a l l y one f e e l s i t , We e ps b i t t e r l y a n d c l i n g s C h i l d l i k e to your knee.
^ T h r e e p o e t i c E n g l i s h t r a n s l a t i o n s c a n be f o u n d i n P i c k , D e v o t i o n a l S o n g s , pp. 9 6 - 1 0 0 . A prose t r a n s l a tio n by No r ma D e a n e a n d C e l i a L a r n e r i s i n c l u d e d i n J o h n R e e d , T h e S c h u b e r t s o n g c o m p a n i o n ( Ne w Y o r k : U n i v e r s e Books, 1 9 8 5 ) , p. 273.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
97
I have e x p e r i e n c e d you, 0 ! do n o t l e a v e me; L e t me i n t i m a t e l y be u n i t e d Wi t h y ou f o r e t e r n i t y . Some d a y my b r o t h e r s Will a l s o look heavenwards again And l o v i n g l y s i n k down And b e l o n g t o y o u i n t h e i r h e a r t . Theological died p a in fu lly grief
for
remains
summary.
for his
them,
he
faithful
unfaithfulness
toward
The f a i t h f u l
Christ
has
to
done.
Ultimately will
overcome
repent in
the
theology
of
lied
strophic line
le ft
twenty-two
song
spans
E-flat ment
is
full
of g r a t i t u d e
joyfully
united
with
of
the
children, text
Each
measures
thirteenth
followed
by
a
yet
be
forever.
demonstrated Th e y
kneeling
before
the
will him
Romantic
was a p r o p o n e n t . of
the
four
in length,
total
an
strophes
resulting
measures.
(b-flat
of
her
to
others.
voices
in
what
or
only
him has
for
he and
them
his
longing
which C h r i s t
This
consisting
entrusts
eternity,
The m a j o r c o m p o n e n t o f
a pattern
hand
is
eighty-eight
a major
major.
is
of
them;
beside
all
analysis.
by
standing
which S c h l e i e r m a c h e r
Musical this
forgotten
still
like
devotion.
love,
ingratitude
love
him
of
Although having suffered
faithlessness
to
full
of t h e i r
ardently
the
who i s
spite
one
for
supreme
a n d c o me
heartfelt
person
care
and
in
him,
This
Christ's
intim ately
been
them
love.
life
people.
has
to
Christ,
to g )
in
The the
of
in a vocal
key of
the piano accompani
octave
played
th r ic e - repeated
with
chord
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
the for
98
the r i g h t
hand,
but
the
vocal
th e p ia n o in two p h r a s e s . syllabic
except
strophe.
The
strophes seventh
are and
the
final
third
and
fourth
eighth
a u n i f o r m manner
Schnyder
von W a r t e n s e e
16,
No.
von
Wi l m
chose
to
5;
1886), ( Op .
set
Josef
200)
this
of
throughout
settings.
are
doubled
clim actic poetic
and t h e r e
lines
is
in
The t e x t - s e t t i n g
for
repeated,
Other
line
is
text the
thirds
is prim arily
phrase
lines
of
of
well,
each
Novalis'
s o me r e p e t i t i o n
as
by
although
of
the
not
in
strophes.
Schubert
(1819),
(1823-1827),
Loewe
Felix
Draeseke
Rheinberger
(1888),
among
composers
those
(1822),
and
( Op.
Nicolai wh o
text.
R eproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
also
Chapter
8
BERNHARD JOSEPH KLEIN (1793-1832) Having composer of
associated
Cologne,
Berlin" Music
begun
Klein
after and
included
choral
music,
string
quartet.
became
least
singing operas, in
as
a conductor
cathedral known to
in
the
instructor.
His
to
and
works
language,
40)
texts
of
settings
including
his
of
and
Palestrina
as
for a
city of
Church
teacher,
compositional
sacred for
choral
native
Institute city
oratorios,
his
"the
that
addition
twenty
in
as
He w r o t e m o r e t h a n
German to
the
university
and
output
were at
with
career
becoming r e l a t e d
the
conductor,
his
and
both
100 l i e d e r religious
() g e i s t l i c h e
secular
piano
and
a mo n g w h i c h texts
in
Lieder
the ( Op.
Novalis.^
"Gott
ist
unsre
Zuversicht
und S t a r k e "
This is
the
third
of K l e i n ' s
undated 5 g e i s t l i c h e
■' ■Rei nhol d S i e t z , " K l e i n , B e r n h a r d J o s e p h , " Die Mu s i k i n G e s c h i c h t e u n d G e g e n w a r t , v o l . 7, e d . F r i e d r i c h Blume ( K a s s e l and B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1 9 5 8 ) , pp. 1 2 0 0 1203. S e e a l s o , R i c h a r d D. G r e e n , " K l e i n , B e r n h a r d (Joseph)," TJi _e N e w G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f Music and M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 10, e d . S t a n l e y S a d i e ( L o n d o n : Macmillan, 1 9 8 0 ) , p. 1 0 1 .
99
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
100
Gesange
p
for
anonymous
text
Psalm 137:1-2, Gott
ist
soprano
with
paraphrases in
that
piano
Psalm
accompaniment.
46:1-4,
Psalm
32:11,
The and
order.
unsre Zuversicht
und S t a r k e
G o t t i s t u n s r e Z u v e r s i c h t und S t a r k e , Un s r e Hi i l fe i n g r o s s e r Not h d i e uns g e t r o f f e n ; Dr um f i i r c h t e n w i r u n s n i c h t Wenn a u c h d e r S t u r m b r a u s e t und t o b t , Wenn a u c h v e r s a n k e n d i e B e r g e i n ' s Me e r . G o t t ! G o t t i s t u n s r e Z u v e r s i c h t und S t a r k e , Da r um s o i l Z i o n s i c h f r e u e n Und f r o h l i c h j a u c h z e n im H e r r n s e i n e n G o t t . Als wi r i n Landen s c h m a c h t e t e n , An We i d e n h i n g e n d i e H a r f e n , Da w e i n t e n w i r u nd k l a g t e n dem H e r r n , De r H e r r e r l o s s t e u n s . God I s
Our C o n f i d e n c e a n d S t r e n g t h God i s o u r c o n f i d e n c e a n d s t r e n g t h , Our h e l p i n g r e a t n e e d w h i c h b e f a l l s u s ; T h e r e f o r e we do n o t s t a n d i n f e a r I f a l s o t h e s t o r m t h u n d e r s and r a g e s , I f a l s o t h e m o u n t a i n s s h o u l d be s w a l l o w e d in the sea. God! God i s o u r c o n f i d e n c e a n d s t r e n g t h , T h e r e f o r e Zion s h ou ld r e j o i c e And g l a d l y e x u l t i n t h e L o r d i t s God. When we l a n g u i s h e d i n f o r e i g n l a n d s , The h a r p s h u n g on w i l l o w s , T h e r e we w e p t a n d c o m p l a i n e d t o t h e L o r d , The L o r d s a v e d u s . Theological
confidence, a special shows
help,
relationship
by h e a r i n g
p
of
strength,
s u mma r y .
God
is
a
and d e l i v e r a n c e .
with
and a n s w e r i n g
his
people
their
This score is a v a i la b l e C o n g r e s s i n W a s h i n g t o n , D.C.
for
up
source
of
He s t a n d s
in
Israel
which
prayers.
Although
study
the
at
he
Library
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
101
believers natural
and
joyful the
experience
as
political
they
past
The
control,
place
in
the
pastiche
Go d .
that
forces
human
but
personal
th ey can
can
nature
God
be
as
well
order.
This
traditional
in
and
events text
them in
upon
powerful
the
as
be f e a r l e s s l y
relied
are
controls
represents
need
Wha t he h a s d o n e f o r he
of
created
which
of
disasters,
praise
indicates
present.
times
beyond
which
is
a
the
take
biblical
biblical
religious
thought. Musical this
The
forty-seven
s o n g a r e i n AB AC D AC' f o r m ,
The
song
through and
analysis.
begins the
use
and of
a modulation
textual
mo o d s
(f
half
into
are I
ends
evoked.
range
-sharp
active
and i n d e p e n d e n t .
melody
in
a homophonic
impact
of
K lein's
painting tion
on
which
is
Other k n o wn
to
syllabic
the
voice
is
texture,
The
it
but
and c h o r a l
except
for is
the
No o t h e r
cadences
to
piano
doubles it
but
the varying
asked
-sharp).
Sometimes
There
G major,
and d e c e p t i v e
also
cover
an
part
is
the
vocal
shows
interests. melismatic
consistent
s o n g an a r i a - l i l c e
settings.
of
O
polyphonic
"jauchzen." gives
f
key
of
rondo form.
in the D -section
The to
a modified
the
cadences
E minor
octave
text-setting
in
measures
text
the The
word-
repeti
quality.
setting
of
this
text
be e x t a n t .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
is
102
" Wandr e r s N a c h t l i e d " ( Fr om Op. 1 5 , 1 8 2 7 ) The Goethe
author
(1749-1832),
theater
poems,
in
novels,
"Wandrers
to
and p l a y s ,
Nachtlied"
Johann
a critic,
addition
educator,
being
the
including
was
cities.
Religiously,
the
Christian
not
believe
experienced saw a l l
written
the in
salvation
relationship
as v arying
religion.
viewed
who
a
His
Klein's
favorite
of
Faust.
between
the
duke C h a r l e s
along
the
capa
Bible,
but
he
exclusively
to
be
with Jesus
scientist,
and he,
the
expressions
Goethe
a pantheistic O p e r s o n a l Go d .
was
poet,
widespread;
creator
masterpiece
Weimar
including
theistic had
natural
G o e t h e r e g a r d e d h i m s e l f as an h e i r
that
religions
and
literary
von
painter,
governmental organizational
tradition,
through
archetypical
of
Wolfgang
journalist,
1775 and 1786 w h i l e G o e t h e s e r v e d in a v a r i e t y
did
poem,
statesm an,
Augustus
of
this
was
manager,
philosopher,
years
of
with
himself and
literary
Wilhelm
of
Christ.
He
an o r i g i n a l as
a
poly
a moral
being
influence
Miiller,
was
wa s o n e o f
poets.^
^ E l i z a b e t h M. W i l k i n s o n , " G o e t h e , J o h a n n W o l f g a n g v o n , " T h e New E n c y c l o p a e d i a B r i t a n n i c a , v o l . 8 ( C h i c a g o : B e n t o n , 1 9 7 4 ) , pp. 2 2 4 - 2 3 1 . For a d i s c u s s i o n of G o e t h e ' s v i e w o f and r e l a t i o n s h i p t o t h e e x c l u s i v e c l a i m s o f t h e C h r is ti a n message, see Paul A lthouse, G o e t h e und d a s E v a n g e l i u m ( Muni ch: C l a u d i u s , 1 9 5 1 ) , pp. 1 7 - 2 0 . ^Sietz,
"Klein,"
p.
1202.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
103
Wandr ers N a c h t l i e d De r du v o n dem Hi mmel b i s t , A l l e s L e i d und S c h m e r z e n s t i l l e s t , De n , d e r d o p p e l t e l e n d i s t , Doppelt mit Erquickung f u l l e s t , Ac h , i c h b i n d e s T r e i b e n s mi ide! Was s o i l a l l d e r S c h m e r z , d i e L u s t ? Siisser F r i e d e , Komm, a c h komm i n m e i n e B r u s t ! £ Wanderer’s Nightsong0 You, who a r e f r o m h e a v e n , S t i l l a l l s u f f e r i n g and p a i n , T h o s e who a r e d o u b l y m i s e r a b l e , Doubl y w i t h c o m f o r t f i l l , 0 , I am w e a r y o f s t r i v i n g ! What i s t h e m e a n i n g o f a l l t h e p a i n , Sweet p e a c e , Come, 0 come i n t o my b r e a s t ! Theological is
the
source
obliquely one's
the
by p r a y i n g
life.
misery
for
God,
peace. the
comfort
at
text
of j o y . in
the
live
pre-dates
He
amidst
of the
^The o r i g i n a l G o e t h e t h e end o f t h i s l i n e .
resides can
be
joy?
in
heaven,
addressed
personal suffering,
peace pain,
and m e a n i n g l e s s n e s s
The p e a c e midst
who
coming of
which b r in g s d e s p a i r
Goethe's
Lust"
true
Human b e i n g s
presence
bring
of
summary.
the
into a nd
even in
w h i c h c o m e s f r o m God c a n
s uc h an e x i s t e n c e . "official"
text
has
"der
Although
beginning
Schmerz
of
und
Other English t r a n s l a t i o n s are included in P h ili p L . M i l l e r , T h e R i n g o f W o r d s : A_n A n t h o l o g y o f S o n g T e x t s ( Ne w Y o r k : W.W. N o r t o n , 1 9 6 6 ) , p. 8 9 , a n d i n D i e t r i c h Fischer-Dieskau, The F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u Book o f L i e d e r , trans. George Bird and Richard Stokes (New Y o r k : L i m e l i g h t , 1 9 7 6 ) , p. 3 9 2 .
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
104
Romanticism,
the
the
of
longings
posers
as
can
the
is
sustained
a
chord
most
voice. last
all
Those
the
in
( Op .
19,
Klein,
of
of
with
chose
No.
the
6),
to
Franz
is text
is
Liszt
at
c o m
text. lied
a minor
is
ninth
a sparse
a G-sharp set
so a s
The
consisting
and
passages
phrases
times.
with
of
The p i a n o a c c o m
lyrical
to
keyboard
of
a
repeated
in
the
upper
syllabically
with
repeated.^ This
wa s
the
composers
set
the
Willy
this
providing
primarily
text
Max A n s o r g e
Wilhelm
the
postlude
position
text
and
the r e c i t a t i v e - 1ike
melody
settings.
No. 2 ) ,
Friedrich
vocal
root
Th e
line
wh o 19,
theologians,
range
chordal,
for
indicative
through-composed
vocal
with
two-measure
texts
( Op .
are
popularity
The
mo r e q u i c k l y
Other of
poets,
This
predominantly
double
tonic
the
long.
undergirding
movi ng
supplies
the
therein
to e ? ) i n t h e key of E m a j o r .
paniment
even
in
analysis.
measures
(d 1- s h a r p
and
expressed
Romantic
be s e e n
Musical thirty
ideas
one
of
of
the
the
include
( Op . 2 3 ,
Herrmann
Jahns
( Op.
13,
(three
settings:
Conrad
29,
No.
popular
Romantic
No. 5 ) ,
( Op .
most
2),
1843,
era.
Ansorge
H e r m a n n Go t z No.
2;
1898),
Bruno 1856,
Oskar 1860),
^This s e t t i n g i s an e x a m p l e o f w h a t S i e t z , " K l e i n , " p. 1 2 0 2 , h a s d e s c r i b e d a s t h e r e s u l t o f K l e i n ' s normal treatm ent of a Goethe text: "sinnvoll d ek lam ierten , aber m eist sparsam b e g le ite te n Liedern" (m eaningfully declaim ed, but u s u a ll y s p a r i n g l y accompanied songs).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
105
K a r l L o e w e ( Op . 9 , No . 3 b ; Georg
Nageli,
Raff,
Johann
Rheinberger, Wenzel 5),
Viktor
Wo l f
Nessler
Friedrich
Franz
Tomaschek
Hugo
1 8 2 8 ) , J o s e p h Marx ( 1 9 0 6 ) ,
(1887),
8M iller, L i e d e r , p. 392.
58,
( Op . 4 ,
No.4),
and C a r l
Ring,
pp.
34,
Reichardt
Schubert (Op.
( Op .
2),
Joachim
(1809),
Joseph
No. 3 ; D. 2 2 4 ;
Karl
Friedrich
88-89,
No.
and
Hans
Weigl
(Op.
Zelter
1815), 1,
No.
(1807).8
Fischer-Dieskau,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Chapter
9
CARL LOEWE (1796-1869) L o e we i s m o s t c o m m o n l y k n o w n a s a c o m p o s e r o f b a l lads
for
own
voice
and
compositions
Loewe
also
ensembles, sacred lic
as
well
through
Me d i a voice
vita with
religious ballads
and
26,
Of
accompaniment,
symphonies,
and
His
last
expressed string
melody
his
370
at
quartet,
incorporated
the
least
these
of
the
h y mn
works
for
solo
eighty
deal
with
geistliche
the
eighteen
as
a move
lieder
a composer
and
4,
14;
career
his
f ou nd in t h e t w e n t y - t h r e e H e b r a i s c h e Ge sange of o p e r a and
entire
chamber
be
23,
his
of
for
flair.
can
5,
span
Many
and
Loewe
1830),
f i r mu s ,
dramatic
his
As a d e v o u t Roman C a t h o
musician
i n mo r t e .
subjects.
piano
oratorios,
music.
( Op .
he p e r f o r m e d
effective
solo
compositions.
sumus
which
for
church
a cantus
piano
highly
choral
his
on
a
as opera,
spirituel"
based
As a b a r i t o n e ,
works
and s e c u l a r
"Quatuor ment
with
wrote
theologian
faith
piano.
t h e t e n G e i s t l i c h e G e s a n g e of o p u s 22; and legends
comprising
opera
33 t h r o u g h
37 a n d
o p e r a 75 a n d 7 6 . ^
^Maurice J.E. Brown, "Loewe, (Johann) Carl ( G o t t f r i e d ) , " T h e New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f Music and M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 11, e d . S t a n l e y S a d i e ( L o n d o n : Macmillan, 106
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
107
" Gross
The seventeen the
strophes
German
1759).
text
lyric
Having
for
this
i s t der C1 8 2 0 ) lied
Herr"
is
which c o m p r i s e poet
been
based
the
influences
were
first
matriculated
at
a Jesuit
school
later
undertook
the
study
philosophy
in
intellect
and
stoic
Konigsberg. emotion
resignation
directness based soldier
on as
of
well
as
caused
to
Kleist
law,
him to
life
and
went
on
being a noted
both
strongly
Ultimately
and r e a d i n e s s
approach
nature.
of
to
to
poet
the
(1715-
pietistic
felt,
Kleist
i n D e u t s c h - K r o n e a nd m athem atics, the
tension
attempt
suffer an
of
von K l e i s t
a h ome w h e r e
and r a t i o n a l i s t i c
four
1 7 5 8 poem " Hy mne " by
Ewald C h r i s t i a n
born i n t o
on
to
and
between unite
a
with a s e n s itiv e
impulsive have in h is
religion
a career own d a y .
as
a
His
1 9 8 0 ) , pp. 1 2 6 - 1 3 0 . A l s o , Hans E n g e l , " L o e w e , K a r l , " Di e M u s i k i n G e s c h i c h t e u n d G e g e n w a r t , v o l . 8, e d . F r i e d r i c h Blume ( K a s s e l and B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1 9 6 0 ) , pp. 1 1 0 6 1112. In a d d i t i o n , Paul Leinbach A lth o u s e , J r . , "C arl Loewe ( 1 7 9 6 - 1 8 6 9 ) : His L i e d e r , B a l l a d s , and T h e i r P e r f o r m a n c e " ( Ph. D. d i s s e r t a t i o n , Yale U n i v e r s i t y , 1971), pp. 1 1 - 7 6 . For a g e n e r a l d i s c u s s i o n o f Lo e we ' s g e i s t l i c h e l i e d e r s e e H i l d g a r d J u n g , " Da s g e i s t l i c h e S o l o l i e d i m 19. Jahrhundert: Ein B e i t r a g zur G e s c h i c h t e des d e u ts c h e n K u n s t l i e d e s " ( I n a u g u r a l - D i s s e r t a t i o n , U n i v e r s i t a t Ko 1 n , 1951) , pp. 3 9- 42. O Max R u n z e , e d . C a r l L o e we s W e r k e , v o l . 16 ( 1 9 0 3 ; r p t . Westmead, England: G r e g g I n t e r n a t i o n a l , 1 9 7 0 ) , p. xiii. The f o u r s t r o p h e s used a r e the f i r s t , second, seventh, and s e v e n t e e n t h . C h a n g e s h a v e b e e n made i n t h e s e , p o s s i b l y by L o e w e . F o r d e t a i l s o n t h o s e c h a n g e s , s e e f o o t n o t e s 4, 5 , 6, a n d 7 b e l o w .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
108
poems,
of
which
the
most
were
generally
idyllic
with
expression
of
der
Herr"
Gross i s t
is
the
an
only
famous
and
intense
is
Der F r i i h l i n g
elegaic love
Loewe s e t t i n g
in
of
(1749),
tone
and r e p l e t e O nature. "Gross i s t
of a K l e i s t
text.
der Herr
G r o s s i s t d e r H e r r ! D i e Hi mme l o h n e Z a h l S i n d s e i n e Wo h n u n g e n ; S e i n ' Wagen s i n d d i e d o n n e r n d e n G e w o l k ' Und B l i t z e s e i n G e s p a n n . Gross i s t der Herr, g r o s s i s t der Herr! Die M o r g e n r o t h i s t nur e i n W i e d e r s c h e i n Von s e i n e s K l e i d e s Saum, Und g e g e n s e i n e n G l a n z i s t a l l e s L i c h t De r S o n n e Da mme r u n g . Gross i s t der Herr, g r o s s i s t der Herr! De r W i e d e r h a l l l o b t i h n , und d i e N a t u r , S i n g t i hm e i n f r o h C o n c e r t ! Und d u , d e r E r d e n H e r r , 0 M e n s c h , z e r f l e u s s I n Harmonien g a n z . Gross i s t der Herr, g r o s s i s t der Herr!
^ R i i d i g e r F r o m m h o l z , " K l e i s t , v . , " Neue d e u t s c h e B i o g r a p h i e , v o l . 12 ( B e r l i n : D u n k e r & H u m b l o t , 1 9 8 0 ) , pp. 10-12. S e e a l s o , [ ^ K l e i s t , E w a l d C h r i s t i a n v o n ^ j Ged i c h t e (Aachen: F. W. F o r s t m a n n , 1 8 1 6 ) , p p . v - x i v . ^ [K1 e i s t ] , G e d i c h t e , p. 1 3 1 . , g a v e t h e s e c o n d a n d t h i r d l i n e s of t h i s f o u r - l i n e s t r o p h e as f o l l o w s : "Sind S a l e s e i n e r B u r g / S e i n Wa g e n S t u r m u n d d o n n e r n d e G e w o l k " ( a r e h a l l s of h i s c a s t l e / h i s c h a r i o t i s t h e storrn and thundering clouds). Loewe has added t h e l i n e " G r o s s i s t der Herr, gross i s t der Herr!" as a r e f r a i n . ^ £ k 1 e i s t j , G e d i c h t e , p. 1 3 1 , g a v e t h e t h i r d a n d f o u r t h l i n e s of t h i s f o u r - l i n e s t r o p h e as f o l l o w s : " Un d gegen s e i n e n Glanz i s t Dammerung/Der Sonne f l ammend L i c h t ” ( An d c o m p a r e d t o h i s b r i g h t n e s s t w i l i g h t i s / T h e s u n ' s flaming light). A g a i n , Loewe h as a d d e d " G r o s s i s t d e r Kerr, g r o s s i s t der H e r r ! " as a r e f r a i n . fi
Lo e we a refrain.
has
added
the
last
line
of
this
strophe
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
as
109
Ich w ill entziickt auf Felsen Z e r r i s s n e Wo l k e n s e h n , Und s u c h e n D i c h d e n T a g , b i s I n h e i l ' g e T r a u me w i e g t . Great
Is
the
kli mmen,
durch
mi c h d i e
Nacht
Lord
G r e a t i s t h e Lord! The h e a v e n s w i t h o u t Ar e h i s d w e l l i n g s ; His c h a r i o t s a r e t h e t h u n d e r i n g c l o u d s And t h e l i g h t n i n g h i s t e a m . G r e a t i s t h e Lord, g r e a t i s t h e Lord! The dawn i s o n l y a r e a p p e a r a n c e Of t h e hem o f h i s g a r m e n t , And c o m p a r e d t o h i s b r i g h t n e s s a l l t h e Of t h e s u n i s t w i l i g h t . G r e a t i s t h e Lord, g r e a t i s t h e Lord!
n u mb e r
light
The e c h o p r a i s e s h i m , and n a t u r e S i n g s t o hi m a j o y f u l concert, And y o u , t h e l o r d o f t h e e a r t h , 0 huma n b e i n g , dissolve In t o t a l harmony. G r e a t i s t h e Lord, g r e a t i s t h e Lord! E n r a p t u r e d I want t o c l i m b Broken c l o u d s t o s ee And a s k y ou a b o u t t h e d a y , R o c k s me i n h o l y d r e a m s . TheoloRical heaven.
His
summary.
movements can
storm,
and
the
creation
are
minimized
praised ity
brightest
God
on t h e until
is
through
the night
great
be c h a r t e d and most
rock,
and
resides
through thethunder
beautiful elements
wh e n c o m p a r e d
in
t o hi m.
He i s
to
of be
by a l l o f n a t u r e a s w e l l a s by t h e w h o l e o f h u m a n
which has
dominion
over
the
earth.
In t h i s
act
of
jj( 1 e i s t ^ , G e d i c h t e , p. 1 3 5 , g a v e t h e o p e n i n g l i n e s o f t h i s s t r o p h e a s f o l i o ws : "Auf F e l s e n s o l i m e i n t a u m e l n d Auge d u r c h / Z e r r i s s n e Wo l k e n s e h n " ( At t h e r o c k s h o u l d my g i d d y e y e s t h r o u g h / b r o k e n c l o u d s l o o k ) .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
110
praise
people
harmony.
and
God i s
the
also
created
the
with questions concerning ence
until
presence.
the
This
sleep text
mu c h i n d e b t e d n e s s
one
of
the
are
in
perfect
whom i n d i v i d u a l s
every aspect death
represents
to
order
of nature
brings
them
a pietistic
imagery
of
the
address and e x i s t
into
God's O theology with
psalms
of
the
Ol d
Testament. ^ Musical four-strophe
analysis.
song^
are
The s e v e n t y
in
modified
measures
strophic
of
this
form.
The
melody c o v e r s t h e i n t e r v a l of a p e r f e c t e l e v e n t h (e^ to O a ) i n t h e key of A m a j o r . The a c c o m p a n i m e n t i s i n h y mn like
homophonic s t y l e
song.
The
and d o u b l e s
text-setting
with
the
words "Gross
each
of
the
first
half
of
text
repeated
Other
is
ist
three in
settings.
der
almost
voice
and
final
No o t h e r
throughout
exclusively
Herr" rep ea te d
strophes the
the
the
at
last
the
syllabic the
end of
line-and-a-
strophe. settings
of
this
text
O
See A u g u st H e i n r i c h K ober, s. .ch. jL£ ti _t ie d e r r e l i g i o s e n D i c h t u n g i n D e u t s c h l a n d ( E s s e n : G. D. B a d e k e r , 1 9 1 9 ) , p. 1 5 6 , f o r a d i s c u s s i o n o f K l e i s t ' s t h o u g h t i n t h i s poem a s r e p r e s e n t a t i v e o f h i s r e l i g i o u s e x p r e s s i o n i n h i s t w o o t h e r p o e m s d e a l i n g w i t h God a n d n a t u r e , " Lob d e r G o t t h e i t " ( 1 7 4 5 ) a n d " Hymne " ( 1 7 5 9 ) . ^See P s a l m 104: d e s c rip tiv e language.
1 -3 f o r an e x a m p l e of t h i s
use of
■^The s c o r e o f t h i s l i e d i s a v a i l a b l e f o r s t u d y i n [ C a r l L o e w e J , W e r k e , v o l . 1 6 , e d . Max R u n z e ( 1 9 0 0 ; r p t . We s t m e a d , E n g l a n d : Gr egg I n t e r n a t i o n a l , 1 9 7 0 ) , p p . 4 6 - 4 7 .
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
I l l
are
known t o
be e x t a n t . "Kaiser O tto 's ( Op. 1 2 1 .
Loewe of
the
eleven
Heinrich this
iation
year
om itted
strophes
Gedichte
of
Du k e
of
the the
Otto of
the
The
in
Bavaria,
is
based
with
which
his
and
which on t h e
brother
occurred
the
"Kaiser
w h i c h he s e t
narrative,
1842,
Great
second
ballad
von Miihl er ( 1 8 1 3 - 1 8 7 4 )
com position.
Miihler' s
the
has
Weihnachtsfeier" No. 1; 1 8 5 3 )
at
fourth
Otto
I"
by
to music
in
appeared
actual
in
reconcil
Heinrich,
Christmas
later in
the
941.^*
Kaiser
O tto ’s Weihnachtsfeier Zu Q u e d l i n b u r g im Dome e r t o n e t G l o c k e n k l a n g , De r O r g e l S t i mme n b r a u s e n zum e r n s t e n C h o r g e s a n g , Es s i t z t d e r K a i s e r d r i n n e n m i t s e i n e r R i t t e r Macht, V o l l A n d a c h t zu b e g e h e n d i e h e i l ’ ge W e i h e n a c h t . Wohl i s t a u c h j e t z t vom S i e g e e r w i e d e r h e i m g e k e h r t , Doch n i c h t d e s R e i c h e s F e i n d e n h a t m a c h t i g e r gewehr t ; Es i s t d e r e i g n e B r u d e r , d e n s e i n e Wa f f e s c h l u g , De r d r e i m a l d e r E mp o r u n g b l u t r o t h e s B a n n e r t r u g . Da o f f n e n s i c h d i e P f o r t e n , e s t r i t t e i n Mann herein , Es h i i l l t d i e s t a r k e n G l i e d e r e i n B i i s s e r h e m d e e i n , Er s c h r e i t e t a u f d e n K a i s e r , e r w i r f t s i c h v o r i hm h i n , D i e K n i e e r i hm u m f a s s e t m i t t i e f g e b e u g t e m S i n n .
1 [C a r 1 L o e w e ] , We r k e , v o l . 4, e d . Max R u n z e (1900; rpt. Westmead, England: Gregg I n t e r n a t i o n a l , 1 9 7 0 ) , p. 1 8. F o r t h e c o m p l e t e t e x t , s e e H e i n r i c h v o n Mi i h l e r , G e d i c h t e ( B e r l i n : Voss, 1 8 4 2 ) , pp. 3 1 3 - 3 1 5 .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
112
"0 B r u d e r , meine F e h l e , s i e l a s t e t s chwer a u f m i r ; I c h l i e g e h i e r zu F i i s s e n , V e r z e i h u n g f l e h e n d , d i r ! Was i c h m i t B l u t g e s i i n d i g t , d i e Gn a d e m a c h t e s rein, Vergieb, 0 s t r e n g e r K a i s e r , v e r g i e b , 0 Bruder me i n - " Doch s t r e n g e b l i c k t d e r K a i s e r d e n s i i n d ' g e n B r u d e r an: " Z w e i m a l h a b ' i c h v e r g e b e n , n i c h t f i i r d e r me hr fortan! Di e Ac h t i s t a u s g e s p r o c h e n , d a s Lebe n d i r g e r a u b t , Na c h d r e i e r T a g e w e e h s e l , da f a l l t d e i n s c h u l d i g Haupt! " B l e i c h werden r i n g s d i e F i i r s t e n , der Heinrich bleich, Und S t i l l e h e r r s c h t im K r e i s e g l e i c h reich; Man h a t t e moge n h o r e n j e t z t w o h l e i n Denn l c e i n e r w a g t z u w e h r e n dem Lowen
Herzog wi e
im T o d t e n -
f a l l e n d Laub, s e i n e n Raub.
Da h a t s i c h e r n s t zum K a i s e r d e r f r o mme Abt g e w a n d t , Das e w ' g e Bu c h d e r B u c h e r , d a s h a l t e r i n d e r Ha n d ; Er l i e s t m i t l a u t e m Munde d e r h e i l ' g e n Wo r t e K l a n g , D a s s e r i n a l l e r H e r z e n w i e G o t t e s S t i mme d r a n g : "Und P e t r u s s p r a c h zum H e r r e n : ' N i c h t so? Ge n i i g t i c h hab ' , Wenn i c h dem s i i n d ' g e n B r u d e r s c h o n s i e b e n m a l v e r g a b ?' Doch J e s u s i hm a n t w o r t e t : 'Nicht siebenmal vergieb, N e i n , s i e b e n m a l z i g s i e b e n , d a s i s t dem V a t e r l i e b . ' " Da s c h m i l z t d e s K a i s e r s S t r e n g e i n T h r a n e n u n b e wusst, Er h e b t i h n a u f , d e n B r u d e r , e r d r i i c k t i h n a n d i e Brust; E i n l a u t e r Ru f d e r F r e u d e i s t j u b e l n d r i n g s e r w a c h t , N i e s c h o n e r wa r d b e g a n g e n d i e h e i l ' g e W e i h e n a c h t . Emperor O t t o ' s
Christmas
Celebration
At Q u e d l i n b u r g i n t h e c a t h e d r a l s o u n d s t h e r i n g i n g of b e l l s , The o r g a n ' s v o i c e s r o a r f o r t h e s o l e m n c h o i r s o n g , The e m p e r o r s i t s w i t h i n w i t h t h e f o r c e s o f h i s knights, F u l l of d e v o t i o n i n o r d e r to c e l e b r a t e t h e holy Christmas.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
113
I n d e e d he a l s o now h a s r e t u r n e d home f r o m t h e victory, But he h a s n o t p o w e r f u l l y c o n t r o l l e d t h e k i n g d o m ’ s enemy; I t i s h i s own b r o t h e r , who s t r u c k h i s w e a p o n , Who t h r e e t i m e s c a r r i e d t h e b l o o d - r e d b a n n e r o f rebellion. T h e n t h e d o o r s o p e n , a man s t e p s i n , A h a i r s h i r t covers the strong limbs, He s t r i d e s t o w a r d t h e e m p e r o r , h e t h r o w s h i m s e l f down b e f o r e h i m , He e m b r a c e s h i s k n e e s w i t h d e e p l y h u m b l e d m i n d . "0 b r o t h e r , I l i e here ness! The w r o n g I forgive, 0
my f a u l t s , t h e y w e i g h h e a v i l y on me; a t your f e e t , e n t r e a t i n g f o r f o r g i v e d i d w i t h b l o o d , g r a c e ma k e s i t p u r e , s t r i c t e r e m p e r o r , f o r g i v e , 0 my b r o t h e r . "
Ye t s t e r n l y t h e e m p e r o r l o o k s a t h i s e r r i n g brother: " T w i c e I h a v e f o r g i v e n , n o t h i n g mo r e i s i n t h e future! The s e n t e n c e i s p r o n o u n c e d , l i f e i s r o b b e d f r o m you, A f t e r t h r e e d a y s , t he n your g u i l t y head d r o p s ! " The p r i n c e s a r o u n d b e c o me p a l e , Duke H e i n r i c h pales, And s i l e n c e r e i g n s i n t h e c i r c l e e v e n a s i n t h e kingdom of d e a t h ; One c o u l d now h a v e c e r t a i n l y h e a r d a f a l l i n g l e a f , F o r no o n e d a r e s t o f o r b i d t o t h e l i o n h i s p r e y . Then t h e p i o u s a b b o t s o l e m n l y a d d r e s s e d h i m s e l f to the emperor, The e t e r n a l Book o f B o o k s he h o l d s i n h i s h a n d ; He r e a d s w i t h s o n o r o u s mo u t h t h e s o u n d o f t h e h o l y words, So t h a t he p l e a d e d w i t h e v e r y h e a r t l i k e t h e v o i c e of God: "And P e t e r s p o k e t o t h e L o r d : " Not s o ? have I done enough, I f I a l r e a d y f o r g a v e my s i n n i n g b r o t h e r s e v e n t i m e s ? 1" " Ye t J e s u s a n s w e r e d hi m: ' Do n o t f o r g i v e s e v e n times, No, s e v e n t y t i m e s s e v e n , t h a t i s l o v e f o r t h e Father . ’"
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
114
Th e n t h e e m p e r o r ' s s t e r n n e s s m e l t s a wa y i n i n v o l untary te a rs , He l i f t s up h i s b r o t h e r , he p r e s s e s h i m t o h i s breast; A l o u d e r c r y of j o y i s awakened e x u l t i n g l y a r o u n d , N e v e r was t h e h o l y C h r i s t m a s c e l e b r a t e d mo r e beautifully. Theological people's the
hearts
ability
of
through
Go d .
Individuals that
revenge
keeping
be t h e at
is
to
with
Savior
of
be r e p l a c e d
of
and
members.
and
strict
Such b e h a v i o r
sending
the
world,
which
expresses
for
reminding others
r e a l i t y o f God' s the event
that
warfare
by f o r g i v e n e s s , by g r a c e .
for
of love
family
the
This text
them t h a t
love
where
between
to
an u n l i m i t e d
definition
world
even
speaks
of is
Jesus
is to
celebrated
the thought
of t r a d i
orthodoxy. Musical
fills
in a
t o be s u p e r c e d e d
Christmas.
tional
another
definition
well as the
realities,
Father
instructing
forgive
the
live
the
c a n s p e a k on b e h a l f o f G o d ,
judgment is in
as
beings
are
to
truly
individual
Hu ma n
betrayal
is
God
the Bible,
a person
number of ti m e s offending
s u mma r y .
analysis.
This
through-composed
ballad
1O
1S4
measures. The v o i c e p a r t s p a n s a d i m i n i s h e d O t h i r t e e n t h (a t o f ) , b e g i n n i n g in t h e key of D m i n o r ,
modulating
t o F m a j o r and
ity
ultim ately
before
returning
cadencing
to
the
original
in D major.
^ T h is score is available We r k e , v o l . 4 , p p . 1 8 - 2 4 .
for
study
tonal-
The s o n g i s
in
jLoewe],
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1 15
unified
by t h e
motives
which
piano also
recurrence are
shared
retains
its
KOMM,
DER I i EIDEN HEI LAND
the
by t h e
the
being
points.
line Th e
quoting in
and
text-setting
The
offering
sup
the
hymntune
in the f i n a l
brother's
address
short
arioso
with le ss
repetition,
as
the
setting to
syllabic a
well
primarily
the
the
rhythmic
piano.
introduction,
is
There
in
of
canon
in
else
the
while
in
occurring
text
the
text
exceptions
some
and
and
in
NUN two
eighteen
T h e p i a n o p r o v i d e s e m o t i o n a l c o m m e n t a r y on
the events narrated vocal
voice
and as t h e a c c o m p a n i m e n t
IO
melodic
independence
chiefly
measures.
certain
by t h e
port,
interludes,
through
of
feature
the
as both
with
of
it
at
doubling different
syllabic the
fourth
emperor
is
with
strophe. set
h a n d l i n g of th e t e x t which
occurs
the
as
a
and
nowhere
song.^
1O
I n t h e i n t r o d u c t i o n o f t h e s o n g Lo e we h a s m a r k e d th e i n c i p i t of the hymntune w ith the opening t e x t u a l p h r a s e o f t h e L a t i n t e x t o f A m b r o s e o f M i l a n ' s A d v e n t h y mn " V e n i r e d e m p t o r g e n t i u m " ( Come , R e d e e m e r o f t h e n a t i o n s ) . In t h e c l o s i n g m e a s u r e s of t h e l i e d t h e e n t i r e hymntune i s u n d erla id with the fo llo w in g Latin te x t: " De o pa t r i s i t g l o r i a e t f i 1 i o q u i a mo r t u i s s u r r e x i t a c p a r a c l e t o i n s e mp i t e r n a s e c u 1 a . Am e n . " ( G l o r y b e t o God t h e F a t h e r a n d t o t h e S o n who a r o s e f r o m d e a t h a n d t o t h e H o l y S p i r i t t h r o u g h o u t e t e r n a l a g e s . Ame n . ) ^ T h i s b a l l a d i s t y p i c a l of Loewe's s t y l e in i t s u s e o f s h o r t m o t i v e s , key s h i f t s , c o n t r a s t i n g d r a m a t i c and ly rical passages, and in i t s r e m o l d i n g of m o d i f i e d stro p h ic s ty le into a s o n a ta - lik e through-com posed t e c h n i q u e of c o m p o s i t i o n . For d i s c u s s i o n of t h e s e f e a t u r e s as a s p e c t s of Loewe's c o m p o s i t i o n a l s t y l e , see Drown, " L o e w e , " p. 1 2 7 . S e e a l s o , Engel, " L o e w e , " pp. 1110- 111 1 .
R eproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
116
Other are
kno wn t o
settings.
No o t h e r
settings
of
this
be e x t a n t .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
text
Chapter
10
FRANZ PETER SCHUBERT (1797-1828) Of sixty-three
the
over-600
are
settings
lieder of
of
Schubert
religious
at
least
texts.
"Abendlied" ( D. 4 9 9 ; 1 8 1 6 ) The G e r ma n the
son of
law
at
a Lutheran
the
journal
secured
time
for
a
of
toleration,
the
basic
and
grace
blending
of to
and
retain
a
his
Schubert
for
Claudius' other
faith,
and
people,
alike
for
and
to
chose
texts,
the at
and
the
afforded with
him their
justice
were their
and
elements.
and
valued
by
treatment
in a manner
a unique
subjective
of
and
Subsequently
works
peace
with
editor
s till
wa s
theology
Bothe.
which
of
natural
reaction
song
became
o f human e x i s t e n c e
objective
in
poems
love
(1740-1815)
studying
Wandsbecker
simplicity
literature day.
he
Jena
intellectuals
issues
combined
strove
in
endeavors.
Christian
c o mmo n p e o p l e of
After
position
nature,
Claudius
pastor.
De r
banking
literary
emphases
Matthias
university
influential he
poet
which
sensitive Claudius
Christian
character
in
rationalistic
classicism
of
least
including
one
eleven of
the
of
Claudius'
poet's
117
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
most
1 18
famous,
"Abendlied"
Abendlied
(1778),
which i s
discussed
below.^
o
De r Mond i s t a u f g e g a n g e n , Die g o l d n e n S t e r n l e i n p r a n g e n Am Hi mmel h e l l und k l a r ; De r Wal d s t e h t s c h w a r z u nd s c h w e i g e t , Und a u s d e n W i e s e n s t e i g e t De r we i B e N e b e l w u n d e r b a r . Wi e i s t d i e We l t s o s t i l l e Und i n d e r Dammr ung H i i l l e So t r a u l i c h und s o h o l d A l s e i n e s t i l l e Kammer , Wo i h r d e s T a g e s J a mme r V e r s c h l a f e n und v e r g e s s e n s o l l t . S e h t i h r d e n Mond d o r t s t e h e n ? ISr i s t n u r h a l b z u s e h e n Und i s t d o c h r u n d und s c h o n ! So s i n d w o h l ma n c h e S a c h e n , Di e w i r g e t r o s t b e l a c h e n , W e i l u n s r e Au g e n s i e n i c h t s e h n . Wi r s t o l z e M e n s c h e n k i n d e r S i n d e i t e l a r me S u n d e r Und w i s s e n g a r n i c h t v i e l ;
■'•Urban R o e d l , " C l a u d i u s , M a t t h i a s , " Ne ue d e u t s c h e D io g ra p h ie , vol. 3 (B erlin : D u n c k e r & H u m b l o t , 1 9 5 6 ) , pp. 266-267. Also, "Claudius, M a tth ia s ," Encyclopaedia B rita n n ic a (15th ed.), 2:976. In a d d i t i o n , D. C l a r k Me a s e l s , "The P o e t M a t t h i a s C l a u d i u s and S c h u b e r t ' s S e t t i n g s of iiis P o em s," in "Songs o f Sc h u b e r t " , e d . J e n n i f e r L. H e s s , T h e S o u t h e r n B a p t i s t T h e o l o g i c a l Seminary, Louisville, Ky . , a c o l l e c t i o n o f m a t e r i a l s p r e p a r e d a t t h e S c h o o l o f C h u r c h M u s i c , 1 9 7 9 , pp. 2 1 - 2 8 . Further, Max F r i e d l a e n d e r , D a s d e u t s c h e L i e d i_rn 1 8 . Jahrhundert: Q u e 1 1 e n und S t u d i en , v o l . 2 ( B e r l i n : J.G. C o t t a , 1902), pp. 255 - 2 5 6 . ^S c h u b ert chose to s e t only the f i r s t f iv e of Claudius' seven p o e tic s tro p h e s. The c o m p l e t e t e x t i s g i v e n i n D i e t r i c h F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u , The F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u B o o k o f L i e d e r , t r . G e o r g e B i r d a n d R i c h a r d S t o k e s ( Ne w York: L i m e l i g h t E d i t i o n s , 1984) , pp. 3 2 - 3 3 .
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
119
Wi r s p i n n e n L u f t g e s p i n s t e Und s u c h e n v i e l e Ki i n s t e Und kommen w e i t e r v on dem Z i e l . G o t t , l a b d e i n I l e i l uns s c h a u e n , Auf n i c h t s V e r g a n g l i c h s t r a u e n , N i c h t E i t e l k e i t uns f r e u n . La£ u n s e i n f a l t i g w e r d e n Und v o r d i r h i e r a u f E r d e n Wi e K i n d e r f r omm und f r o h l i c h s e i n . ^ Evening
Song^ Th e moon h a s r i s e n ; The s m a l l g o l d e n s t a r s s h i n e B r i g h t and c l e a r i n h e a v e n ; The f o r e s t s t a n d s b l a c k a n d i s And o u t o f t h e me adow a s c e n d s The w o n d r o u s w h i t e m i s t .
silent,
Kow v e r y s t i l l t h e w o r l d i s , And i n t h e t w i l i g h t ' s c o v e r i n g So i n t i m a t e a n d s o l o v e l y ! Li k e a q u i e t chamber Wh e r e you s h o u l d s l e e p away And f o r g e t t h e d a y ' s d i s t r e s s . Do y ou s e e t h e moon s t a n d i n g t h e r e ? I t i s only h a l f - s e e n , And y e t i s r o u n d a n d b e a u t i f u l ! So c e r t a i n l y a r e many t h i n g s , Wh i c h we c o n f i d e n t l y l a u g h a b o u t , B e c a u s e o u r e y e s d o n ' t s e e t he m. We p r o u d human c h i l d r e n Ar e o n l y p o o r s i n n e r s , And do n o t know v e r y mu c h .
O In the second l i n e of t h i s s t r o p h e th e t e x t as g i v e n i n F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u , L i e d e r , p. 3 3 , h a s t h e w o r d "ba ue n" ( t o b u i l d ) i n p l a c e of " t r a u e n " ( t o t r u s t ) . There i s no s i g n i f i c a n t c h a n g e i n t h e m e a n i n g o f t h e t e x t a s a result thereof. ^Other English translations are a v ailab le in F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u , L i e d e r , pp. 3 2 - 3 3 , a n d i n J o h n R e i d , The S c h u b e r t s o n g c o m p a n i o n (New Yo r k : U n i v e r s e Books, 1985) , p. 3.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
120
We s p i n a i r y n o t h i n g s And s e e k many a r t s , And a r r i v e f a r t h e r f r o m t h e
goal.
God, l e t u s s e e y o u r s a l v a t i o n , And t r u s t i n n o t h i n g o f t h e t r a n s i e n t , Let v a n i t y not c a u s e us to r e j o i c e ! L e t u s be s i m p l e And b e f o r e y ou h e r e on e a r t h Be j o y f u l a n d p i o u s l i k e c h i l d r e n . Theological salvation.
He c a n
assistance
in
God's
individuals
who o u g h t
separated
Nature but a
in
its
as
their
and in t h e c o n s t r u c t s them
their
presence put
from
beauty
source
of
by p e o p l e
who
request
his
in the
can s peak
to
theology
which
t o Go d .
joyfully
Unfortunately,
things
of
has
this
with
people concerning This
been
text
called
world
which keeps
relationship
existence.
Hu ma n
and d e v o t i o n -
o wn i n t e l l e c t of
pietistic
pleasing
live
goal
of
God.
unseen
represents a
type
of
Romanticism.
Musical each
the
children.
of t h e i r
realities
with
to
trust
the
is
lives
his
concrete
"nascent"
God
be a d d r e s s e d
making
beings are sinners a l l y in
s u mma r y .
of
analysis. the
five
This
lied
strophes
is
in
strophic
consisting
of
form
sixteen
R e e d , S c h u b e r t , p. 4 6 3 . The t w o u n u s e d s t r o p h e s c o n t i n u e a s a p r a y e r f o r an e a s y d e a t h , entrance to h e a v e n , f r e e d o m f r o m p u n i s h m e n t , and a p e a c e f u l s l e e p f o r t h e one p r a y i n g and f o r h i s or h e r s i c k n e i g h b o r . ^ The s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g i s a v a i l a b l e f o r s t u d y i n [S c h u b e r t J , S c h u b e r t - A l b u m , v o l . 7, e d . Max F r i e d l a e n d e r (Frankfurt: C . F . P e t e r s , n . d . ) , p. 3 0 .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
121
measures
for
a
melody
covers
major,
although
major ken
measure the
for
the
lowest
is
brief
voice
text-setting
is
hone
Other
of
the
settings.
numbe r o f c o m p o s e r s Friedrich
Christoph
(1784),
Johann
Schulz
(17 9 0 ) ,
iiornhardt
poem i n c l u d e d
(1779),
Friedrich
text
52,
1936-37).
of
G. E. G.
wa s
^Friedlaender, mentioned in t h i s source settings.
also
bro
The f o u r -
countermelody measures'
six
although
reminiscent
of a
repeated. text
was
set
era,
Johann
(1790), von
the
the
counter
syllabic,
large Johann Hobein
Wilhelm Abraham
(17 9 3),
and
settings
Kallenbach set
a
Friedrich
Johann
Dal b e r g
by
including
Friedrich
Nineteenth-century
those
This
of
F in
subtle hand.
treatment
(1780),
Adam H i l l e r
Rei necl ce. / 10;
This
Rheineck
(1794).
each
of
B-flat
features
right-hand
of t h e C l a s s i c a l
Reichardt
(1779),
is
a
left
basically
text
text
the a
of
with
angular
key of
tonicization
hand
for
portion
The
accompaniment
right
a use of n eu m at ic
folksong.
No.
a
incorporates
unaccented The
is
The k e y b o a r d
postlude
beats. there
the
of
there
figurations in
eighty measures. "I O o ctav e (f to f ) in th e
one
modality.
melody
on
total
(1801)
by O t h m a r
Rust Peter J.H.C.
of
this
and
Carl
Schoeck
(Op.
L ie d , vol. 2, p. 255. Also a r e s i x o t h e r unnamed c o m p o s e r s '
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
122
" Per W a c h t e l s c h l a g " ( Op. 6 8 ; D. 7 4 2 ; 1 8 2 2 ) Samuel schoolmaster satirized
in
Friedrich
from
Baden.
the
figure
Sauter
(1766-1846)
Because of
of
Gottlieb
Munich F l i e g e n d e
Blatter.
This
1796,
one
wa s s e t
Per
is
the
only
which
his
wa s a v i l l a g e
lifestyle
he
wa s
Biedermeier
in
the
Sauter
text,
written
by S c h u b e r t .
in
O
Wachtelschlag Ac h , w i e s c h a l l t ' s d o r t e n s o l i e b l i c h h e r v o r : Fiirchte Gott! Fiirchte Gott! R u f t mi r d i e Wa c ht e l i n s O h r . S i t z e n d im Gr i i n e n , von I i a l me n u m h i i l l t , Ma h n t s i e d e n H o r c h e r im S a a t e n - g e f i l d : Liebe Gott! Liebe Gott! Er i s t s o g i i t i g , s o m i l d . Vv1i e d e r b e d e u t e t i h r h i i p f e n d e r S c h l a g : Lobe G o t t ! Lo b e G o t t ! P e r d i c h zu l o h n e n v e r ma g . S i e h s t du d i e h e r r l i c h e n F r i i c h t e im F e l d ? Nimm e s z u H e r z e n , B e w o h n e r d e r W e l t : Ua n k e G o t t ! Da n k e G o t t ! P e r d i c h e r n a h r t und e r h a l t . S c h r e c k t d i c h im W e t t e r d e r H e r r d e r N a t u r : B it te Gott! B i t t e Gott! Ruft s i e , er sch onet die F l u r . Ma c h e n G e f a h r e n d e r K r i e g e r d i r b a n g ’ : Traue Gott! Traue Gott! S i e h ', er verzieh et nicht l a n g '.
The Q u a i l 1s Cr Ah,
p
how i t
John Reed,
Q
sounds
forth
S c h u b e r t , p.
so s w e e t l y
yonder:
475.
•"An E n g l i s h p r o s e t r a n s l a t i o n a v a i l a b l e i n Reed, S c h u b e r t , p . 135.
of
this
text
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
is
123
f e a r God! F e a r God! The q u a i l c a l l s t o me i n my e a r . S i t t i n g i n t h e g r e e n , e n v e l o p e d by g r a s s , She a d m o n i s h e s t h e l i s t e n e r i n t h e c o r n f i e l d : Lo v e God! Lo v e God! He i s s o g o o d , s o m i l d . Agai n h e r i n t e r m i t t e n t song means: P r a i s e God! P r a i s e God! He who i s a b l e t o r e w a r d y o u . Do you s e e t h e m a g n i f i c e n t f r u i t i n t h e Take i t t o h e a r t , c i t i z e n of t h e w o r l d : Th a n k God! T h a n k God! He who n o u r i s h e s a n d p r o v i d e s f o r y o u .
field?
The L o r d o f n a t u r e f r i g h t e n s you i n t h e w e a t h e r : P r a y t o God! P r a y t o God! Sh e c a l l s , h e s p a r e s t h e f i e l d . D a n g e r s t o t h e s o l d i e r ma ke y o u w o r r i e d : T r u s t God! T r u s t God! S e e , he d o e s n o t h e s i t a t e l o n g . Theological lie
is
good,
needs,
kind,
s u mm a r y . God and
provides
b o t h human and a n i m a l .
is
the
Lord
for
all
his
He i s
active
of
nature,
creatures'
on b e h a l f
t h o s e wh o t r u s t h i m a n d i s t h e r e w a r d e r o f p e o p l e . teaches
the
observer
fear,
love,
praise,
is
text
which
a
coupled
with
the
Musical modified with
a
thanksgiving, exhibits
beliefs
of
analysis.
strophic brief
how t o r e l a t e
use
form. of
the
the
t o Go d ,
prayer,
a nd
of
relative
in
is,
with This
Pietism
orthodoxy.
forty-measure
Written
Nature
trust.
influence
traditional This
that
of
the minor
song^
key in
of
is
in
A major
the
third
^ T h e m u s ic a l score i s a v a i l a b l e fo r study in [ S c h u b e r t j , S c h u b e r t - A1 b u m, v o l . 2, e d . Max F r i e d l a e n d e r ( Ne w Y o r k : C. F. P e t e r s , n . d . ) , p p . 1 3 4 - 1 3 5 .
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
124
strophe, sharp
to f
dotted cry.
th e song has a v o c a l r a n g e of a minor t e n t h ).
(d^-
The a c c o m p a n i m e n t m a k e s r e p e a t e d u s e o f a
rhythmic Schubert
figure set
which
the te x t
is
imitative
of
the
in a s tr a i g h tf o r w a r d
quail's manner,
h a v i n g r e p e a t e d o n ly t h e l a s t l i n e of m u s ic and t e x t p r i o r to
a
with the
brief only final
postlude slight
text
for
mirrors
changes of
the
the
song's
rhythmic
introduction
alignment
within
measures.
Other (1811),
which
settings.
and C a r l solo
Beethoven (1804), Ludwig A b e i l l e
Eduard Kering
voice
(1822)
have
also
set
with piano acc om panim ent.^
■'•■'■Max F r i e d l a e n d e r , L i e d , v o l .
2,
p.
451.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
this
Chapter
11
KARL GOTTLIEB REI SSI GER (1798-1859) Reissiger, first
studied
Subsequently success last in
music he
son at
briefly
years
musical
of
an
organist- choirm aster,
Thomasschule
studied
of h is
life
of
the
was a s a p i a n i s t ,
thirty
the
the
theology,
singer, life
the
in
Leipzig.
but
his
and c o m p o s e r .
For
he wa s an i m p o r t a n t
city
of
Dresden
first the
figure
where
he
was
n a me d t o be C a r l M a r i a von W e b e r ' s s u c c e s s o r a s t h e d i r e c t o r o f t h e c o u r t o p e r a a n d l a t e r c a m e t o be t h e H o f k a p e l l rne i s t e r
in
music,
sacred
Although public
which
his
music,
Ilis
received,
but
symphony,
Reissiger
solo
many
number of works
settings of
of
of
discussion
^John
in
was
wrote works
chamber
solo
lieder
this
Rutter,
responsible for
the
the
texts,
songs
were
eight for
of
of
particularly
piano
as
least
which
c o m well-
well
included
at
his
an o r a t o r i o ,
ilis
of
theater.
popular
ensembles.
t wo
chamber
most
and
operas,
solo
for
court
source
was a p r o l i f i c
for
religious
wa s
music
choral
he a l s o
and
collections
and
he
and
conducting
acclaim,
poser.
capacity
are
as
a a
fifty-eight seventeen the
subject
chapter.^
"Reissiger, 125
Karl
Gottlieb,"
Th e
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
New'
126
( Op. Th e t e x t
of
14,
this
" Noah" No. 2;
lied
is
1827) anonymous.
Noah A l s Noah a u s dem f a s t e n w a r , Da t r a t z u i hm d e r H e r r e d a r , De r r o c h d e s Noah O p f e r f e i n Und s p r a c h : ich w ill d ir gnadig sein, Und w e i l du e i n s o f r o m m e s H a u s , So b i t t d i r s e l b s t d i e Gn a d e a u s ! Da s p r a c h d e r No a h : l i e b e r Herr, Das W a s s e r s c h m e c k t m i r g a r n i t s e h r , Dieweil darinn e r s a u f e t sind, A l l ' s u n d h a f t Vi eh und M e n s c h e n k i n d , Drum m o c h t i c h a r m e r a l t e r Mann Ein a n d e r w e i t G e t r a n k e han. Da g r i f f d e r H e r r i n s P a r a d i e s Und g a b i hm e i n e n W e i n s t o c k s u s s Und g a b i hm g u t e n R a t h u nd L e h r , Und s p r a c h : d e n s o l l s t du p f l e g e n Und w i e s i h m a l l e s s o und s o , De r Noah w a r d o h n ' M a a s s e n f r o h ,
sehr,
Und r i e f z u s a mme n Wei b un d K i n d , Da z u s e i n g a n z e s l l a u s g e s i n d , P f l a n z t W e i n b e r g r i n g s urn s i c h h e r u m , De r Noah was f i i r w a h r n i t dumm, B a u t K e l l e r d a n n und p r e s s t d e n Wei n Und f i i l l t i h n g a r i n P a s s e r e i n !
G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f Mu s i c a n d Mu s i c i a n s , v o l . 1 5 , e d . S ta n le y Sadie (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , p p . 72 9 - 7 3 0 . A l s o , F o l k e r G o t h e l , " R e i B i g e r , K a r l G o t t l i e b , " Di e Mu s i k i n G e s c h i c h t e und G e g e n w a r t , v o l . 11, e d . F r i e d r i c h B l u me ( K a s s e l and B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1 9 6 3 ) , pp. 2 0 9 - 2 1 0 . O No d a t e o f p u b l i c a t i o n wa s g i v e n on t h e s c o r e o f t h i s song. T h e y e a r 1 S 2 7 w a s g i v e n by Max F r i e d l a e n d e r , Da s d e u t s c h e L i e d jlni 1 S . J a h r h u n d e r t : Q u e 11 e n u n d S t ud i e n , v o l . 2 ( B e r l i n : J . G . C o t t a , 1 9 0 2 ) , p. 444.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Der Noah wa r e i n f r o m m e r Ma nn, S t a c h e i n F a s s n a c h dem a n d e r n a n , Und t r a n k e s a u s z u G o t t e s E h r , Da s m a c h t i hm e b e n I cei n B e s c h w e r , Er t r a n k n a c h d e m d i e S i i n d f l u t h g a r D r e i h u n d e r t n o c h un d f i i n f z i g J a h r . E i n k l u g e r Mann h i e r a u s e r s i e h t , Da s s W e i n ' s g e n u s s i h m s c h a d e t n i c h t , Und i t e m d a s s e i n k l u g e r C h r i s t I n Wei n n i e m a l e n W a s s e r g i e s s t , Dieweil darinn e r s a u f e t sind A l l s i i n d h a f t Vi e h und M e n s c h e n k i n d !
No a h When Noah was o u t s i d e o f t h e a r k , When t h e L o r d w e n t t o hi m t h e r e , Who s m e l l e d N o a h ' s f i n e s a c r i f i c e And s p o k e : I w i l l be g r a c i o u s t o you And s i n c e you a r e s u c h a p i o u s h o u s e , Therefore request the favor for yourself! T h e n Noah s p o k e : Dear L o r d , I do n o t l i k e t h e t a s t e o f t h e w a t e r Whi l e t h e r e i n a r e drowned A l l t h e s i n f u l b e a s t s and p e o p l e , T h e r e f o r e may I , a p o o r o l d ma n, Ha ve a d i f f e r e n t d r i n k .
at
all,
Then t h e Lor d r e a c h e d i n t o P a r a d i s e And g a v e t o hi m a s w e e t g r a p e v i n e And g a v e t o hi m good c o u n s e l a n d i n s t r u c t i o n , And s p o k e : you s h o u l d r e a l l y c u l t i v a t e i t , And s h o we d h i m e v e r y t h i n g t h u s a n d s o , Noah b e c a me e x c e s s i v e l y j o y f u l And c a l l e d t o g e t h e r w i f e a n d c h i l d , In a d d i t i o n a l l h i s d o m e st i c s e r v a n t s , P l a n t e d a v i n e y a r d r o u n d a b o u t h i m, I n d e e d Noah was n o t s t u p i d , Th e n b u i l t a c e l l a r a n d p r e s s e d t h e wi n e And p o u r e d i t t o t a l l y i n t o k e g s . Noah was a mo r e p i o u s man, Tapped one keg a f t e r a n o t h e r , And d r a n k i t up t o G o d ' s h o n o r , Wh i c h c a u s e d hi m q u i t e c e r t a i n l y no t r o u b l e , A f t e r t h e f l o o d he d r a n k e v e n Ye t t h r e e h u n d r e d a n d f i f t y y e a r s .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
128
Fr om t h i s a s h r e w d e r man l e a r n e d T h a t t h e e n j o y m e n t o f w i n e d o e s hi m no h a r m , And l i k e w i s e t h a t a mo r e i n t e l l i g e n t C h r i s t i a n Never p o u r s w a t e r i n t o wi ne, As l o n g a s t h e r e i n a r e d r o w n e d A l l s i n f u l b e a s t s and p e o p l e . Theological and
give
also
good
teaches
given.
gifts
summary. to
people
People
can
those
how
please
Go d , t h e L o r d , with
to
use
is
whom h e i s the
gifts
God t h r o u g h
gracious
pleased. which
offering
he
He has
sacrifices.
At a t i m e o f n e e d t h e r e l i g i o u s p e r s o n c a n c a l l o u t t o God and
receive
the necessary
ing,
and
This
poem d e m o n s t r a t e s
theology
enjoying
based
on t h e
Musical form
six
spans minor.
in
motif
for
the
entire
and
the
piano
gifts
of
a popularized
events
narrated
The
110
in
the l e f t
song. in
hand.
The
God
(F-sharp
one
in
honors
Genesis
measures
of
form.
to d ^) in
him.
orthodox 7-9.
this The
song
O
mel ody
t h e key of B
w i t h a r h y t h m i c and
hand which s e r v e s as th e b a s i s
This
motif
a dialogical
is
ma nner
shared and
by
appears
the
voice
consist
w i t h r e p e a t e d c h o r d s p l a y e d by t h e
text-setting
of
this
humorous^
O The s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g i s a v a i l a b l e L i b r a r y o f C o n g r e s s i n W a s h i n g t o n , D. C.
element
cultivat
traditional
rnodified-strophic
thirteenth
e n t l y in t h e l e f t hand
the
By a p p r e c i a t i n g ,
The p i a n o a c c o m p a n i m e n t b e g i n s
melodic
right
good
analysis.
s t r o p l i es
a major
the
help.
for
study at
^ G o t h e l , " R e i B i g e r , " p. 2 0 9 , n o t e s t h i s h u m o r o u s o f R e i s s i g e r ' s wo r k a s p a r t o f h i s p o p u l a r a p p e a l .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
129
ballad text
is
strictly
repeated
in a l l
Other are
syllabic but
the
settings.
with
the
last
t wo m i d d l e
No o t h e r
two l i n e s
of
strophes.
settings
of
this
text
k nown t o be e x t a n t . " Wei n a u s W a s s e r " ( Op. 1 2 1 . Ho. 3 ) Most w i d e l y
Grotto"
on
Capri,
a transitional On t h e
basis
as
of
forms
developing
chose
at
the
poet
figure
international literary
known a s
least
a
in
with
the
Kopisch
history
those
of
his
in f a i r y
wa s
o f G e r ma n l i t e r a t u r e . and
interests tales
realistic poems a s
of t h e "Blue
(1799-1853)
education
he c o m b i n e d
humorous
five
discoverer
August
wide-ranging
travel
a
the
in c l a s s i c a l
as w ell
style.^
song
extensive
as
well
Reissiger
texts.^
We i n a u s Wa s s e r Auf d e r l i o c h z e i t z u K a n a a n , Da f i n g d e r Wei n z u f e h l e n a n , W i e ' s nun g e s c h a h : B r a u t , obs Br aut igam v e r s a h ? Es war z u w e n i g d a !
^Hans- Wolf J a g e r , "Kopisch, August," .Ne. u_e. d e u t s c h e B i o g r a p h i e , v o l . 12 ( B e r l i n : Uuncker & Ilumblot, 1979), pp. 5 6 4 - 5 6 6 . Also, Ernst Alker, Die d e u t s c h e Literatur i_m 1 9 . Jahrhundert (1832-1914) (Stuttgart: A l f r e d K r o n e r , 1 9 6 9 ) , p. 3 9 3 . J a g e r , p. 5 6 5 , n o t e d t h a t mu c h o f K o p i s c h ' s i n d i v i d u a l i t y c o m e s t h r o u g h i n h i s t e x t s d e a l i n g w i t h wi n e and t h e s o c i a l l i f e . ^ R e i s s i g e r ' s o t h e r s e l e c t i o n s of Kopisch's t e x t s , i n c l u d i n g " R o l a n d , " " He l d S a m s o n , " a n d " De r e r s t e R a u s c h , " a r e a l s o c o m b i n a t i o n s o f h i s t o r y , humor , and d i d a c t i c i s m .
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
130
Doch d e r H e r r m i t z u T i s c h e w a r , Und m a c h t e We i n a u s W a s s e r k l a r . Wi e d a s g e s c h a h ? I c h g l a u b e , d a s s es niemand s a h ; Ge nu g nu n wa r e r d a ! Nehmt i h r C h r i s t e n e s w o h l i n A c h t : Aus W a s s e r w a r d da Wei n g e m a c h t ; Wi e w u n d e r n s w e r t h ! Schenken h a t ' s der Feind g e l e h r t , I h r macht es u m g e k e h r t !
Wine out of Water At t h e w e d d i n g i n C a n a a n , T h e r e t h e w i n e b e g a n t o be w a n t i n g , As i t now h a p p e n e d : Wh e t h e r b r i d e o r g r o o m ma de a m i s t a k e ? T h e r e v/as t o o l i t t l e t h e r e ! Ho we v e r t h e L o r d wa s l i k e w i s e a t t a b l e And ma de w i n e o u t o f c l e a r w a t e r . How d i d i t h a p p e n ? I b e l i e v e , s i n c e no o n e s a w i t ; T h e r e was now e n o u g h w i n e t h e r e ! You The liow The You
C h r i s t i a n s , be w e l l on y o u r g u a r d : w i n e wa s ma de f r o m w a t e r ; worthy of wonder! ene my h a s t a u g h t i t t o p o u r o u t , make i t o p p o s i t e !
Theolo g ic al miraculous experience including power
of
powers needs
to
in
meet
Christ. is
In
his
traditional
Those
worthy
wary of th e a c t i v i t y
lives
such
of
of
needs.
for
needs
cases,
Lord,
has
Individuals
a variety
of
c a n be m e t
the
praise.
the
reasons,
through
miraculous
answer
Christians
are
the to
t o be
t h e d e v i l a n d do w h a t t h e y c a n t o
efforts.
theology
Jesus,
people's
their
h uma n e r r o r .
the s i t u a t i o n
nullify
summa r y .
based
This on t h e
poem
is
narration
expressing of
the
events
R eproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
a
of
John
2:1-11.
Mu s i c a l
an aly sis.
measures
are
strophes
having
concludes
with
the
key
octave
of
to
d ■*■).
the
the
the
right in
repeated.
Other
settings.
29,
No.
melody
piano
syllabic
younger
with
of f o u r
The
strophe
R eissiger's ( Op .
for
form
song's7
eight-measure
figurations
in a s t r i c t l y poetic
an
a postlude
chords
turn-like
strophie
D major,
(d
repeated
in
This
the
each
left
the
covers
a
punctuated hand.
with
the
This
text
has
Friedrich
also
song
W ritten range
of
consists
in one of
by r e c u r r e n t
The t e x t last
three
The
measures.
manner
brother,
of
prelude.
accompaniment hand
sixty-three
line
set
of each
been
August
is
set
by
Reissiger
2).
7 The s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g i s a v a i l a b l e L i b r a r y o f C o n g r e s s i n W a s h i n g t o n , D. C.
for
study at
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Chapter
12
FELI X MENDELSSOHN (1809-1847) After in
1816,
faith solo are
being
Mendelssohn
through voice in
Schools
born i n t o
his
with
the
works
piano.^
orchestra,
to
organ,
His s e v e n t y - t h r e e of
the
first
his
and
Protestant chorus,
published second
and
songs Berlin
composition,
to
him v i a
his
teacher
on
two
the
eight
religious
expression
for
tradition
of l i e d
of
gave
a J e w i s h f a m i l y and b a p t i z e d
w h o s e i n f l u e n c e wa s m e d i a t e d O Carl Zelter. This chapter focuses
of
these
lieder
which
reflect
his
orientation.
K arl-H einz K ohler and E v e lin e B a rtlitz , "Mendelssohn ( - B a r t h o l d y ) , ( J a c o b L u d w i g ) F e l i x , " Th e New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c a n d Mu s i c i a n s , v o l . 1 2 , e d . S t a n l e y Sadie (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , pp. 1 3 4 - 1 5 9 . A l s o , E r i c We r n e r , " M e n d e l s s o h n , J a k o b Lud wi g F e l i x , " Di e M u s i k i n G e s c h i c h t e und G e g e n w a r t , v o l . 9, e d . F r i e d r i c h Bl u me ( K a s s e l a n d B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1961), pp. 59 -9 8. p See p a g e s 37 - 3 8 a b o v e . O F r a n c i s L e w i s Wo o d w a r d , " Th e S o l o S o n g s o f F e l i x M e n d e l s s o h n " (D.M.A. d i s s e r t a t i o n , The U n i v e r s i t y o f T e x a s a t A u s t i n , 1972), pp. 4 - 5 , 8-31.
132
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
133
"M o r g e n l i e d " 8 6 , No. 2 ; 1 8 2 8 ) 4
( Op. The possibility 1884),^ and
the
text
exists
this that
song the
is
poet
anonymous, is
son o f an army c h a p l a i n ,
philosophy
alongside
of
at
the
university
Mendelssohn,
Mendelssohn s e le c te d a t basis
of
songs
years
18 2 8 a n d
during
whose
least
the
J.G.
home
two t e x t s
period
Droysen
who s t u d i e d in
but
Berlin he
the
(1808-
philology in
1828^
frequented.^
by D r o y s e n a s
bet we e n and i n c l u d i n g
the the
1830.
The s o n g was p u b l i s h e d p o s t h u m o u s l y i n 1851. Woodward, " M e n d e l s s o h n , " pp. 61, 65, follow s the s u g g e s t i o n s o f Max F r i e d l a e n d e r , Da s d e u t s c h e L i e d i m 18. Jahrhundert (Berlin: J.B. C o t t a , 1902), and L u i s e Leven, Mendelssohn a ls Lyriker (K refeld: B. M a h l e r , 1 9 2 6 ) a n d " M e n d e l s s o h n ' s U n p u b l i s h e d S o n g s , " T h e Mo n t h l y M u s i c Q u a r t e r l y , 88 ( 1 9 5 8 ) , 2 0 6 - 2 1 1 , t h a t i t w a s c o m p o s e d a s a c o m p a n i o n p i e c e t o " A b e n d l i e d " ( Op . 8 , No. 9 ) w h i c h w a s composed i n 1828. ^ Se e Woodward, " M e n d e l s s o h n , " pp. 61, 63, 65, f o r the d i s c u s s i o n of t h i s d e t e r m i n a t i o n . On e k e y f a c t o r i n t h e a r g u m e n t i s t h e u s e o f t h e p s e u d o n y m , " J . H . V o s s , " by Droysen. W o o d w a r d ' s own s o u r c e s a r e d i v i d e d on t h i s w i t h L eve n e v e n s u g g e s t i n g t h a t "J.H. Vo ss " i s M e n d e l s s o h n ' s pseudonym. J o h a n n H e i n r i c h Vo s s ( 1 7 5 1 - 1 8 2 6 ) wa s a Ge r ma n p o e t , t r a n s l a t o r , and p r o f e s s o r i n J e n a and H e i d e l b e r g . ^ T h e o d o r S c h i e d e r , " D r o y s e n , J o h a n n G u s t a v , " Neue deutsche B io g ra p h ie, vol. 4 (B erlin: Duncker & Humblot, 1957) , pp. 135-137.
Kohler,
^Woodward, "M endelssohn," " M e n d e l s s o h n , " p. 136.
p.
65.
See
also,
®The t o t a l n u m b e r o f D r o y s e n t e x t s u s e d by M e n d e l s s o h n woul d r i s e t o s e v e n i f t h i s anonymous t e x t and t h e f o u r V o s s t e x t s ( O p . 8 , No. 9 , 1 1 ; Op. 9 , No. 6 , 9) w e r e a l l by D r o y s e n .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
134
Morgenlied Erwacht in neuer S ta rke Begriiss i c h , G o t t , d e i n L i c h t Und w e n d ' a u f d e i n e We r k e Me i n f r o h e s A n g e s i c h t . Wi e h e r r l i c h s t r a h l t d i e S o n n ' e mp o r Und wecl ct d e s L e b e n s l a u t e n C h o r ! Von J u b e l l i e d e r n s c h a l l e n S c h o n F e l d , Ge b i i s c h und L u f t , Und a u s d e s Wa l d e s H a l l e n Stromt f r i s c h der Morgenduft. Da s V o g l e i n s c h i i t t e l t a b dem T h a u , F l i e g t a u f u nd s i n g t im h e l l e n B l a u . S c h o n ho h e r s c h w e b t d i e S o n n e In ihrem S i e g e s l a u f , Was l e b t d a s a t h r n e t Wonne , Und was da s c h l i e f , w a c h t a u f . 0 G ott , in deinem S o n n e n s c h e i n , Wi e h e r r l i c h i s t ' s l e b e n d i g s e i n !
M o r n i n g So n g Awa k e n e d i n new s t r e n g t h I g r e e t , Go d , y o u r l i g h t And t u r n t o y o u r wo r k My j o y f u l c o u n t e n a n c e . iiow g l o r i o u s l y b e a ms t h e s u n a b o v e And a w a k e n s t h e l o u d c h o r u s o f l i f e ! Fr om j o y o u s s o n g s r e s o u n d s Al r e a d y f i e l d , b u s h e s , and a i r , And o u t o f t h e f o r e s t ' s h a l l F r e s h ly flows the f r a g r a n c e of morning. The l i t t l e b i r d s h a k e s o f f t h e dew, F l i e s up a n d s i n g s i n t h e c l e a r b l u e s k y . A l r e a d y h i g h e r s o a r s t h e sun In i t s tri u m p h a l p r o c e s s i o n . Whatever l i v e s , i t b r e a t h e s j o y ; What ever s l e p t t h e r e , a wa k e s . 0 God, i n y o u r s u n s h i n e How g l o r i o u s i t i s t o be a l i v e . Theological varied
elements
s u m ma r y .
of n a t u r e .
God i s
the
I he r e j o i c i n g
creator of
the
of
the
created
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
135
order
brings
joy
it.
This
smells theology
of
to
t h e human b e i n g
text
represents
song^ c o n s is t
analysis.
of a b r i e f
strictly
strophic
folklike
melody
The
form,
spans
features
accompaniment
m o v i n g on t h e
pedal
tone
on
repeated repeated
of
a
form
Other are
the
except to
known t o
half
of
the
a
measures three
two
the
the
hands or
w i t h minor lyrical
of
this
strophes
in
right-hand beat.
in
the
last
the
basis
of
addition The
in
to
bass
answer half
from
of
parallel
a repeated
text-setting
The
two l i n e s
No o t h e r
last
played
variations
the
chords
In th e
tonic.
the
n o t e or o c t a v e
folksong.
for
settings.
a single
countermelody
dominant
syllabic
manner
with
is
fifty
b e g i n n i n g of each s t r o p h e
beat
there
between
basically the
weaker
strophe
sixths
orthodox
a se v e n -m e a s u re coda. The I O a minor n i n t h ( f - s h a r p to g ) in
lively
each
and
and
At t h e
on t h e
a traditional
introduction,
t h e icey o f D m a j o r .
ing
hears,
creation.
Mu s i c a l
line
who s e e s ,
that
v/ords
of t e x t
is
norm i n are
not
which are
coda. settings
of
this
text
be e x t a n t .
o yTh e s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g i s a v a i l a b l e f o r s t u d y i n e 1 i x i - i e n d e l s s o h n ] , S e v e n t y - N ine S ongs f o r V o i c e and Piano ( M e l v i l l e , N.Y.: Be l wi n M i l l s , n . d . ) , p. 84.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
136
"Trostung" 7 1 . No. 1; 1 8 4 5 )
( Op. This August
song
Heinrich
is
based
Hoffmann
which Mendelssohn chose only wrote
a highly
had an e m i n e n t l y
historian.
resulted
in
1i eds bis stood
in
His
well to
auf the
as in
Luther
lyrical
two
and
(1798-1874)
Ge r ma n
iiber a l l e s , "
studies
of
H o f f m a n n wa s n o t
patriotic
career
poems
poet
but
who
he a l s o
as a p h i l o l o g i s t in
this
latter
and area
collections
of
folk
his
the
German-language
study
Ze i t ,
of
a simple,
added
the
of
write
simple melodies
of
poetry
des d e u t s c h e n
1832).
tradition
which em phasized element
the
to music.
(G eschichte
Luthers
of
Fallersleben
Deuschland
numerous
as
h y mn p r i o r
to s e t
successful
literary
one
von
nationalistic
"Deustchland,
folksong
on
As
a
poet
Romantic
tunefulness,
even
to accompany h i s
going
KirchenHoffmann
G e r ma n
f o 1k 1ike q u a lity
to so
and
poetry
w h i c h he far
as
to
vol.
9
words.^
Trostung We r d e h e i t e r , me i n Ge mi i t e , Und v e r g i s s d e r A n g s t un d P e i n ! G r o s s i s t G o t t e s G n a d ' und Gi i t e , G r o s s mu s s a u c h d e i n H o f f e n s e i n . Komrnt d e r h e l l e , Hicht hervor aus
gold'ne dunkler
Mor g e n Racht?
A d a l b e r t L l s c h e n b r o i c h , " H o f f m a n n von F a l l e r s l e b e n , H e i n r i c h , " Ke u e d e u t s c h e B i o g r a p h i e , (Berlin: D u n c k e r & Hum b l o t , 1 9 7 1 ) , pp. 4 2 1 - 4 2 3 .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
137
Lag n i c h t e i n s t im S c h n e e v e r b o r g e n Tief des Friihlings Bliitenpracht? Durch d i e F i n s t e r n i s d e r Kl a ge n B ric h t der Freude Morgenstern; B a l d w i r d a u c h d e i n Mo r g e n t a g e n , G o t t e s Gi i t ' i s t n i mme r f e r n ! Consolation Become mo r e s e r e n e , my s o u l , And f o r g e t t h e a n x i e t y a n d p a i n ! G r e a t i s G o d ' s g r a c e and g o o d n e s s ; G r e a t m u s t a l s o be y o u r h o p i n g . Do e s n o t t h e c l e a r g o l d e n m o r n i n g Come o u t o f d a r k e r n i g h t ? Di d n o t o n c e h i d d e n d e e p i n s now Lay t h e b l o o m i n g s p l e n d o r o f s p r i n g ? Through t h e d a r k n e s s of l ament Breaks t h e morning s t a r of j o y . S oo n a l s o y o u r m o r n i n g w i l l s h i n e . G o d ' s g o o d n e s s i s n e v e r f a r away. Theological he
is
close
lives.
at
hand
God
and
work
Because of t h i s
anxiety,
pain,
hope
serenity
and
Even
seasonal,
affirm
emotion
influence
of
is
and
as
the
they
the
those
is
wait
for
of
truth. nearness
of
and
good
who l i v e can
better
nature,
This
good
for
and d e s p a i r
cycles
this
at
fact
lamentation,
tim es.
on
s u m ma r y .
text, God,
gracious,
in
people's
in a w o rld of find
and both
with
cause
for
mo r e j o y f u l daily its
and
emphases
demonstrates
the
Romanticism.
Musical
analysis.
This
^ T h e s c o r e of t h i s song | i ' *i e nde l s s ohn^J , S o n g s , p p . 6 0 - 6 1 .
song's^
is
minimally
available
for
study
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
in
138
modified-strophic range Th e
is
a major
piano
plays
arpeggiated bass
line
setting each
f i l l s f i f t y measures. I O t e n t h (c to e ) in th e key
an
idiomatic
diminished
which is
form
features
strophe
strophe
a
further
becomes
incorporated Other
are
known t o
muc h o c t a v e syllabic
repeated.
appearance into
settings.
of
vocal
C major.
consisting
of
s e v e n th chords above a c h r o m a tic
predominantly
poetic
accompaniment
The
of
doubling. with
In the
the last
a codetta-lilce iMo o t h e r
the
The
last
final line
text-
line
of
musical
the te x t 1p extension.
settings
of
of
this
text
be e x t a n t .
19
Both of t h e s o n g s of t h i s c h a p t e r a r e t y p i c a l of M e n d e ls s o h n 's song s t y l e as d e l in e a t e d by K o h l e r , "M endelssohn," p. 147, with strophic structure, c h a r a c t e r i s t i c p i a n o a c c o m p a n i m e n t , and a p l e a s i n g l y shaped, sin g a b le melodic l i n e .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Chapter
13
ROBERT SCHUMANN (1810-1856) Schumann's accompaniment sixteen text. this
of
number
these
Two o f
compositions in excess
dealing
these
for of
with
lieder
are
solo
voice
270 s o n g s
religious the
with
with
at
subjects
center
of
piano least in
discussion
the in
chapter. " P e r f r o h e Wande r s mann" ( Op. 7 7 , No. 1; 1 8 4 0 ) The Ge r ma n R o m a n t i c
18 5 7 ) was one of t h e
poet
Joseph Eichendorff
most p o p u la r a u t h o r s
of h i s
(178S-
day,
not
only
among song c o m p o s e r s b u t a l s o among t h e g e n e r a l y populace. E i c h e n d o r f f wa s a d e v o u t Roman C a t h o l i c w h o s e
faith
permeated his
approach
to
life
and
wa s e x p r e s s e d
in
G e r a l d Abraham and E r i c Sams, "Schumann, R o b e r t ( A l e x a n d e r ) , " T h e Ne w G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f Mu s i c a n d M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 16, e d . S t a n l e y S a d i e ( L o n d o n : Macmillan, 1 9 8 0 ) , pp. 8 5 9 - 8 6 0 , n o t e d t h a t t h i s s o n g was o r i g i n a l l y t h e f i r s t s o n g i n S c h u m a n n ' s E i c h e n d o r f f L i e d e r l c r e i s (Op. 39 ) b u t wa s d r o p p e d f r o m t h a t c y c l e i n 1 S5 0 a n d p u b l i s h e d i n 1 8 5 1 a s a p a r t o f Op. 7 7 . Jurgen Thym, "The Solo Song Settings of E ichendorff's Poems by S c h u m a n n a n d Wolf," (Ph.D. d i s s e r t a t i o n , C a s e W e s t e r n R e s e r v e U n i v e r s i t y , 1 9 7 4 ) , pp. 1 , 16. 139
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
140
his
writings.
expressions perfect cially and
in
the
Stimmung,
appeared
in in
"Der
the
novella,
texts
1817.^ of
which
at
frohe
of
and
after
religious
of
h u ma n e m o t i o n a l
states
This
ideal
which
having
Taugenichts probably of
others their
sixteen besides
is
originally
of E i c h e n d o r f f 's
a total
in
a state
espe
eines
three
striking
object,
Wandersmann"
Leben
least
ideal
n a tu re /
chapter
dem
are
subject
between
Schuma nn s e t
Wande r s mann" a r e De r
frohe
poems
Romantic
w ithin
opening Aus
lyric
between
a Good-for-Nothing")
around
the
relationship
conditions
expressed
of
of
folklike
correspondence
the
prose
His
important (" h e r a o i r s
been
written
Eichendorff "Der
frohe
content/
Wa n d e r s m a n n
Wem G o t t w i l l r e c h t e G u n s t e r w e i s e n Den s c h i c k t e r i n d i e w e i t e W e l t , Dem w i l l e r s e i n e Wu nd e r w e i s e n I n b e r g und Wal d und S t r o m u nd F e l d . Di e T r a g e n , d i e zu Ha u s e l i e g e n , Erquiklcet n i c h t das fiorgenrot, S i e w i s s e n n u r vom K i n d e r w i e g e n , Von S o r g e n , L a s t und Not urn B r o t .
O Hermann K u n is ch , " E i c h e n d o r f f , F r e i h e r r e n v.," i\; e u e d e u t s c h e ii i o g r a p h i e , v o l . 4 (Berlin: Duncker & Humblot, 1957) , pp. 37 1 - 3 7 2 . ^Th ym,
detailed
"Eichendorff,"
pp.
ii,
49-87.
■’ I b i d . , p. 3 8 2 . See a l s o , pp. 3 9 - 4 0 d e s c r i p t i o n of t h e l i t e r a r y c o n t e x t .
^These i n c l u d e " F r i i h l i n g s f a h r t " ( Op . ( Op . 8 3 , No. 3 ) .
for
a more
" De r S c h a t z g r a b e r " (Op. 45, No. 1 ) , 4 5 , No. 2 ) , a n d " D e r E i n s i e d l e r "
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
141
Di e Di e was Aus
B a c h l e i n von d e n B e r g e n s p r i n g e n , Le r c hen s c h w i r r e n hoch vor L u s t , s o l l t ' i c h n i c h t ini t i h n e n s i n g e n v o l l e r K e h l ' u nd f r i s c h e r B r u s t ?
Den Der Und Ha t
l i e b e n Gott nur l a s s ' ich w a l t e n ; B a c h l e i n , L e r c h e n , Wi nd u n d F e l d , E r d ' und Hi mmel w i l l e r h a l t e n , auch mein' Sach' a u f s B e s t ' b e s t e l l t .
The J o y f u l To He He In
Wanderer^ wh o me v e r God w a n t s t o s how t r u e f a v o r , s e n d s hi m i n t o t h e w i d e w o r l d , w a n t s t o s how h i s w o n d e r s t o h i m m o u n t a i n and f o r e s t and r i v e r and f i e l d .
The l a z y o n e s , who r e s t a t h ome , The dawn d o e s n o t r e v i v e , Th e y o n l y know o f t h e c r a d l e , Of w o r r y , b u r d e n a n d n e e d f o r b r e a d . The b r o o k l e t l e a p s f r o m t h e m o u n t a i n , The l a r k s f l y h i g h f o r e n j o y m e n t , Why s h o u l d I n o t s i n g w i t h t h e m Loudly and f r e s h - h e a r t e d ? I l e t t h e d e a r God do a s h e p l e a s e s ; lie who b r o o k l e t , l a r k s , wi n d a n d f i e l d , And e a r t h a n d h e a v e n w i l l p r e s e r v e , A l s o h a s o r d e r e d my a f f a i r s f o r t h e b e s t . Theological ta in er power. favor
of He
nature
has
in
chooses
by l e a d i n g
chosen.
which some
them
w onderful works. he
summary.
into
God he
the
creator
m anifests
people the
is
to
world
his
recieve and
and
sus
miraculous his
showing
special them
his
God w o r k s f o r g o o d i n t h e l i v e s o f t h o s e
People
who a r e
lazy
and
occupy
themselves
^Another E n g l i s h t r a n s l a t i o n i s a v a i l a b l e i n Sams, T h e S o n g s o f R o b e r t S c h u m a n n ( Ne w f o r k : H o r t o n , 1 9 6 9 ) , p. 106.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Eric W. W.
142
with
the
mundane
experience Those to
experience
the
his of
by t h e
to
it
whole
concept
of
O
are
in
song.
The are
and the
their
v/onders protected
and
family
cannot
created
order.
lives
oneness
This
theology
text
and
uespond
w i t h n a t u r e and of
nature,
and,
by God a n d
show
shows
a
Romanticism
combina
undergirded
election. analysis.
ABA' C
form the
The
fifty
with
intimated
at
the
end
of
disjunct
melody
has
a range
sharp)
in
a joyous
abilities.
traditional
home with
hand
universe,
creative
Musical song
in
of
spirit
leading
indeed,
tion
of
God a f r e e
voice
forth
unity
who g i v e
his
give
a
realities
elements
final of
in t h e key of D m a j o r ,
measures
section. a major
but
of
of
this
rondo
form
Th e
moderately
tenth
(d
the t o n a l i t y
1
to
also
f
9
-
moves
to t h e d o m i n a n t as w e l l as to E m in o r and F- s h a r p m inor in response
to
a
rhythm
march
interludes,
textual
and
ideas.^
which the
The a c c o m p a n i m e n t
occurs
postlude.
in
the
Within
is
based
introduction, the
first
and
on the
third
O The s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g i s a v a i l a b l e f o r s t u d y i n [ S c h u mann' J , S a m t l i c h e L i e d e r f ii r e i n e S i n g s t i m me m i t K l a v i e r b e g l e i t u n g , v o l . 2 , e d . A l f r e d D o r f e l ( Ne w Y o r k : 0 . F . P e t e r s , n . d . ) , pp. 167-169. ^Thym, " E i c h e n d o r f f , " s e e m e d t o f o l i o w W o l f g a n g B o e t t i c h e r , Robert Schumann: E i n f ii h r u n g i n P e r s o n l i c h k e i t u n d Wer I t ( B e r l i n : H a h n e f e l d , 1 9 4 1 ) i n u n d e r s t a n d i n g 1) m a j o r a s a key of " f r e s h n e s s and y o u t h f u l e n t h u s i a s m " f o r Schumann. Thym, pp. 1 8 7 - 1 8 9 , a l s o saw t h e s e q u a l i t i e s e x p r e s s e d i n t h e m e l o d i c r a n g e and s t y l e a s w e l l a s in t h e harmonic s u b t l e t i e s of the song.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
143
sections
the
disconnected is
changed
which
beginning
the
the of
line
is
In
by
first
each
section
mention
is
chords.^
slightly
quote
fourth
texture
basically the
the
imitative
five
of
notes
the
of
trust an
i n God.
entries
of
the
Onl y a t
appearance
postlude.
folksong
this
section's
o v e r l a p p i n g of v o c a l and p i a n o
in
of
section
vocal
two
with
texture
the
line
piano at
phrases.
the The
uses a hymnlike chordal accompaniment at
there
typical
second
homophonic
The
style
of
the
Schumann's
melodies
text-setting
with
only
end o f
the
the
characteristic
which l e a d s is
vocal
mostly
final
into
a
syllabic
poetic
line
repeated. Other Schoeck
( Op .
s e t t i n g s . This 17,
No.
8;
( Op. The of
three
which
text
of
depicts
lamenting
the
of
Heloise,
over
was a l s o
set
by O t h m a r
1909). " Keq u i e m " 9 0 , No. 7; 1 8 5 0 )
this
nine
text
lied
is
an
strophes accompanied
anonymous
of
an
old
translation Latin
by a c h o r u s
of
text mo n k s ,
Ab el ar d. 12
•*-^Thym, " E i c h e n d o r f f , " p p . 1 7 9 , 195-196, noted t h e s e as c h a r a c t e r i s t i c of Schumann's t r e a t m e n t of t h i s type of t e x t . 11
elements
A b r a h a m , " S c h u m a n n , " p. 8 5 1 , n o t e d of Schumann's song s t y l e .
12Sams,
S c h u ma n n ,
p.
256.
He a l s o
t h e s e as two included
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
the
144
Requiem R u h ' v o n s c h m e r z e n s r e i c h e n Miihen Aus un d h e i B e m L i e b e s g l i i h e n ! De r n a c h s e l i g e m V e r e i n Trug V e r l a n g e n , 1 s t gegangen Zu d e s H e i l a n d s Wohnung e i n . Dem G e r e c h t e n l e u c h t e n h e l i e S t e r n e in des Grabes Z e l l e , I h m, d e r s e l b s t a l s S t e r n d e r N a c h t Wi r d e r s c h e i n e n , Wenn e r s e i n e n Herrn e r s c h a u t in H immelspracht. Seid Fiirsprecher, h e i l ' g e Seelen! H eil'g e r Geist, lab Trost nicht fehlen. I l o r s t d u? J u b e l s a n g e r k l i n g t , Feiertone, Darein die schone Engelsharfe singt: R u h ' v on s c h m e r z e n s r e i c h e n Miihen Aus und h e i B e m L i e b e s g l i i h e n ! De r n a c h s e l i g e m V e r e i n Trug V e r l a n g e n , 1 s t gegangen Zu d e s H e i l a n d s Wohnung e i n . Requiem 1 3 Res t from s o r r o w f u l t o i l And h o t f i r e s o f l o v e ! He who f o r b l e s s e d u n i o n Carried longing, Has g o n e Into the S av io r's dwelling.
Latin
text
of
the
three
strophes
used
by t h e
translator.
^For another English tra n s la tio n , s e e Sams, S c h u ina n n , pp. 2 5 5 - 2 5 6 . O t h e r E n g l i s h t r a n s l a t i o n s c a n be f o u n d i n D i e t r i c h F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u , The F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u b o o k o f L i e d e r , t r . G e o r g e B i r d a n d R i c h a r d S t o k e s ( New Yo r k : L i m e l i g h t E d i t i o n s , 1 9 8 4 ) , p. 3 2 1 , a n d i n [ [ S c h u m a n n ] , 9 0 S o n g s , e d . S e r g i u s K a g e n ( Ne w Y o r k : International Mus i c , n . d . ) , p. x x i .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
145 To t h e r i g h t e o u s s h i n e c l e a r S t a r s i n t h e c e l l of d e a t h , To h i m, who h i m s e l f a s a s t a r o f t h e n i g h t Will ap pe a r, When h e h i s Lord b e h o l d s i n h e a v e n ' s s p l e n d o r . Be i n t e r c e s s o r s , h o l y s o u l s , Ho l y S p i r i t , l e t c o m f o r t n o t be l a c k i n g ! Do you h e a r ? j o y o us song r e s o u n d s , Festive tones, In which t h e b e a u t i f u l Ha r p o f t h e a n g e l s s i n g s : Rest from s o r r o w f u l t o i l And h o t f i r e s o f l o v e ! He who f o r b l e s s e d u n i o n Carried longing, Has g o n e Into the S a v io r 's dwelling. Theological wh o
dwells
Spirit,
in
the
blessed.
heaven angelic
longing,
dies,
those
taken
to heaven
to
into
those
This
in
and
text
a shining
expresses
are
in
are
the
lives
are
This
form.
Savior
by t h e
souls full
This The
Holy
of
the
of l a b o r , person
as th e i n d i v i d u a l Jesus
fact
grieving
a traditional
_s _s.
the
Wh e n a r i g h t e o u s
she sees
on e a r t h ,
Lord i s
and
put a s id e
entity.
ABCA'
the
accompanied
earthly
w h e r e he or
H jj_s_i£ a 1__ a^ji a_ measures
glory,
passion.
realities
who r e m a i n
Jesus
musicians,
Hu ma n b e i n g s '
sorrow,
formed
summary.
and
can
bring
over
orthodox
trans comfort
their
loss.
theology.
song's^ melody
is
is
sixty-five
spans
^ T h e s c o r e of t h i s song i s a v a i l a b l e f o r QjchumannJ, S a m t l i c h e L i e d e r , v o l . 3, pp. 5 0 - 5 3 .
a
major
study
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
in
146
tenth
I ( e - f l a t
piano
accompaniment
sound
of
a
supported into or,
this
harp)
fabric
sometimes, being
text
is
strophe
o g )
in is
are
treated
key
of
E-flat
consists
of
sustained
octaves.
melodic
double
totally
the
major.
m a r ke d "Wie H a r f e n t o n "
and
by o r g a n l i k e
ally
the
lines
vocal
syllabically
(like
arpeggiated
of
with
as the
the
Incorporated
well
as
voice entire
the
chords
which for eshad ow ,
line,
independent
The
echo,
occasion part.
first
The Latin
repeated.^ Other
are
to
known t o
settings.
No o t h e r
settings
of
this
text
be e x t a n t .
•'•■’T h i s r e p e t i t i o n s e e m s t o h a v e e x i s t e d i n t r a n s l a t i o n as i t came to Schumann r a t h e r th a n being decision, although th is is not t o t a l l y c e rta in .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
the his
Chapter
14
FRANZ LI SZT (1811-1886) Although composer
for
for
voice
of
solo these
Liszt's mately
are
the
led
with
Liszt
church
a p i a n i s t and
al s o wrote
piano accompaniment.
religious
in
nature
and
quest
for
spiritual
take
the
four
him t o
discussed
p r i m a r i l y as
piano,
lifelong
Catholic are
noted
in
186 5. *
Two o f
At l e a s t
thirteen
expression
security orders
his
a
a l m o s t 10 0 s o n g s
give
minor
as
which of
ulti
the
geistliche
to
Roman lieder
below. " Da s V e i l c h e n " ( 1857)
texts
in
While
in
Aac he n
in
the
mail
from
the
Muller.
These
became
May o f
otherwise
the
M uttergottes-StrauClein
Blessed
Virgin's
which were
written
later
Bouquet that
received
u n k n o wn
basis for
Liszt's
Little
1857 L i s z t
the
poet
t wo
Joseph
two songs
of
z u m Ma jL m oji a t e^ ( " T h e in
y e a r and
the
Month
first
of
Ma y " )
published
in
^ H u m p h r e y S e a r l e , " L i s z t , F r a n z , " The N e w G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f Hu s i c a n d M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 11, e d . S t a n l e y S a d i e ( L o n d o n : M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , p p . 2 8 - 7 4. A l s o , Hans E n g e l , " L i s z t , F r a n z v o n , " D i e Mu s i i c i n G e s c h i c h t e u n d G e g e n w a r t , v o l . 8, ed. F r i e d r i c h B l u me ( K a s s e l and B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1960) , pp. 9 6 4- 9 88. 147
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
148
1860.^
"Das V e i l c h e n "
Schliisselbluinen"
is
the f i r s t
(The P r i m r o s e s )
of the p a i r
being
the
w i t h "Die
second.
Da s V e i l c h e n S p e n d e , V e i l c h e n , d e i n e Dr i f t e Zu M a r i a s P r e i s und Ruhm! S t a t t d e s W e i h r a u c h s , s t a t t d e r Myr r he n Bring ich dich i n ' s Keiligtum. E i t l e r P r u n k und b u n t G e s c h m e i d e Sind n i c h t d e i n e r Scho nhe it Z i e r , I n dem e i n f a c h b l a u e n K l e i d e P r a n g s t du e d l e r a l s S a p h i r . S t i l l e bliihst D e i n e r Tugend Einsam w i l l s t A l l e r Mens chen
du und b e s c h e i d e n , unbewusst, du g e r n e v/ ohne n, F r e u d ' und L u s t .
So a u c h b l i i h t e s t d u , M a r i a , E i n s t e n a l s des Herren B ra ut , G o t t h a t a l l e r Wel t en Segen , A l l e l i i mmel d i r v e r t r a u t . K e u s c h e J u n g f r a u , Hi i n me l s p f o r t e , L a s s mi c h wi e d a s V e i l c h e n s e i n , Ohne S t o l z u n d o h n e H o f f a r t , S t e t s b e s c h e i d e n , k e u s c h und r e i n ! L a s s mi c h w i e d i e b l a u e n Bl i i mc h e n I mmer s a n f t s e i n , f r omm und g u t , D i e , M a r i a , s t e t s zu E h r e n Leben u n t e r d e i n e r Hut . Th e V i o l e t Give, v i o l e t , your perfume To M a r y ' s p r a i s e a nd g l o r y ! I n s t e a d of f r a n k i n c e n s e , i n s t e a d I b r i n g you i n t o t h e h o l y p l a c e .
of i nyrrh
Empt y s p l e n d o r a n d c o l o r e d j e w e l s Ar e n o t t h e o r n a m e n t o f y o u r b e a u t y ,
O Franz L i s z t s m usilcalische ¥ e r k e , vol. 7 (Leipzig: B r e i t k o p f u K a r t e l , n . d . ) , pp. x i - x i i .
part
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
2
149
In t he s i m p l e blue garment You s h i n e n o b l e r t h a n s a p p h i r e . Q u i e t l y you bloom and m o d e s t l y , Unconscious of your v i r t u e , A l o n e you d e s i r e g l a d l y t o l i v e , The j o y a n d d e s i r e o f a l l p e o p l e . T h u s a l s o y ou b l o o m e d , Ma r y , Once a s t h e L o r d ' s b r i d e , God h a s e n t r u s t e d a l l t h e w o r l d ' s And a l l o f h e a v e n t o y o u .
blessings,
Chaste v i r g i n , door of heaven, L e t me be l i k e t h e v i o l e t , W i t h o u t p r i d e and w i t h o u t a r r o g a n c e , C o n t i n u a l l y mo d e s t , c h a s t e and pu r e ! L e t me be l i k e t h e b l u e l i t t l e f l o w e r Al ways g e n t l e , p i o u s and goo d , You, Ma r y , c o n t i n u a l l y t o h o n o r To l i v e u n d e r y o u r c a r e . Theological of
the
his
blessings
bride,
perpetual is
the
of
earth
the
virginity,
worshipper
under
ma k e s
to
an
violet.
text
tic
This
concerning
impulses
the
the
lives
in
chaste
to heaven
Virgin
As
of
a
and
heaven
to
state
of
pure,
and
is gained.
aspires
the
analysis.
act
to
of
element
qualities
The
be c o n s i s t
Ma r y
created The
six
adoration of n a t u r e
o f Ma r y ,
traditional
Virgin the
an
that
espouses
concerning
Mu s i c a l
She
of
a n d g o o d s o a s t o h o n o r Ma r y a n d t o
offering
reflects
entirety
humble,
protection.
most p e r f e c t l y
theology
Mary.
whom a c c e s s
devout,
her
and
always
who p r a y s
ently gentle,
devotee
God t h e L o r d h a s g i v e n a l l
Virgin
t h e one t h r o u g h
live
s u mma r y .
which
namely,
Ro ma n
accompanied
the
the
Catholic by Ro ma n
order. poetic
strophes
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
of
150
Miiller have song
O
been grouped
consists
which
fill
a minor
of
three strophes
sixty-nine
ninth
by L i s z t
in
that
this
in raodified-strophic
form
measures.
( d * to e ^ - f l a t )
such
a way
The a r c h e d
melody
covers
in t h e key of E - f l a t
major.
The h o r n o p h o n i c p i a n o a c c o m p a n i m e n t b e g i n s and e n d s six
measures
bears
the
that
marking
parent
support
musical
strophe
in the
the
latter
phrase
rhythm. out of
for
the
while
endings
Th e
the
" sern p r e
voice
not
text-setting
which
for
germ
of
d o l c i s s i m o " and in
the
always is the
incorporates
and
doubles with
primarily
song.
half mo r e
the
vocal
trans of
vocal
each
line the
syllabic of
It
chromatic
precisely
reiteration
a slight
the
provides
first
thicker
The p i a n o
but
except
melodic
becoming
portion.
repetition text
quote
v/ith
s a me
and
the
with
last
flourish
at
line
on
the
word " l e b e n " ( t o l i v e ) . Other are
known t o
settings.
No o t h e r
settings
of
this
text
be e x t a n t . "Sei s t i l l " ( 1S77)
L ittle H enriette pseudonym
Franz 113.
von
is
l enown
Schorn
K. N o r d h e i m ,
of
(d. other
the 1869) than
author who the
of
this
wrote fact
text,
under
that
she
the was
O The s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g i s a v a i l a b l e f o r s t u d y i n L i s z t s m u s i k a l i s c h e W e r k e , v o l . 7, p a r t 2, pp. 1 1 1 -
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
151
one of
the
f e w We i m a r a r i s t o c r a t s
by t h e
relationship
between
Liszt
Sayn-W ittgenstein
and
daughter
von S c h o r n
Adelheid in
1869
Princess^
and
later
became
books
the
study
of
Generations") Classical Sei
and
and
remained
household
for
at
who wa s
the
scandalized
the Princess
faithful
to
Carolyn
them.
Her
became a member of L i s z t ' s
behest the
Liszt,
not
of
the
author
of
then-absent two
important
Z w e_i M e n s c h e n a l t e r
Das n a c h k l a s s i s c h e
We i ma r
( " T wo
("The P o s t -
Wei mar ") . ^
still Ac h , wa s Wann, was Ab e r s e i We i l G o t t
ist du stil es
Leben doch so s c h w e r , l i e b h a s t , i s t n i c h t me hr : l, will!
Ac h , wa s Wann, was Ab e r s e i We i l G o t t
ist du stil es
S t e r b e n doch so schwer , l i e b h a s t , w e i n t umher: l, will!
Ac h , L e b e n , S t e r b e n Ivenn u n s e r l i e r z n u r Darurn s e i s t i l l , We i l G o t t e s w i l l .
wa r n i c h t s c h w e r , s t i l l e war.
Be S t i l l 6 0,
Musician
what
is
difficult
in
life
^ ■Ro n a l d T a y l o r , F r a n z L i s z t : T h e Ma n a n d (New Y o r k : U n i v e r s e Bo o k s , 1 9 S 6 ) , p. 193.
the
~*F r a n z
3,
Liszts
musikalische
Werke,
vol.
7,
part
p. viii . DAn E n g l i s h t r a n s l a t i o n by V e r n o n H a r r i s o n i s a v a i l a b l e in Robert C o l l e t t , ed., S e le c te d S ongs, L i s z t S o c i e t y P u b l i c a t i o n s , vol . 6 (London: S c h o t t , 1 9 7 5 ) , n.p.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
152
I s when w h a t y o u h o l d B u t be s t i l l , B e c a u s e God w i l l s i t !
dear
is
no m o r e :
0, what i s d i f f i c u l t i n d e a t h I s when w h a t y o u h o l d d e a r w e e p s o v e r B u t be s t i l l , B e c a u s e God w i l l s i t !
it:
0 , l i f e , d e a t h , w o u l d n o t be s o d i f f i c u l t I f o n l y o u r h e a r t s were s t i l l . T h e r e f o r e be s t i l l , B e c a u s e God w i l l s i t . Theological heart
should
which makes so
difficult
individual
found
in
be
still.
the
losses
for
should
traditional
psalms within
Mu s i c a l fills
seek
fifty-three
a relatively is
the
interval
sparse
this
of
that of
the
h uma n
inner
peace
This
text
perspective
The Th e
can
a be
which al so
rationalistic
theologies.
AA' B f o r m
this
funereal
of a m i n o r
of
song
O
recitative-like
ninth
ambiguity
cadence
barren,
but
each
voices
which
Ol d T e s t a m e n t , ^ and
and d e a t h
Consequently,
repose.
tonal
stable and
is
lack
bear.
inward
measures.
reaches
paniment
to
analysis.
context
will
and th e s o r r o w s of l i f e
pietistic
spans the
the
is
theological of
melody n d ) in
God' s
It
people
orthodox
the
has a pla ce
summary.
(c^-sharp
which
to
finally
i n D m a j o r . Th e a c c o m
consisting
of
sustained
^ S e e , f o r e x a m p l e , Ps. 3 7 : 3 - 7 ; Ps. 4 6 : 1 0 ; and Ps. 5-8. O The s c o r e o f t h i s s ong i s a v a i l a b l e f o r s t u d y i n F r a n z L i s z t s m u s i k a l i s c h e W e r k e , v o l . 7, p a r t 3 , p p . 6 3 - 6 4 . 62:1-2,
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
% 153
chords
and
lengthy
handled s y l l a b i c a l l y the
words
"sei
reiterating
all
passages
s i l e n c e .
with the f i r s t
still" but
of
the
(be
The
t wo s e c t i o n s
still)
first
^
text
repeating
and
the
last
of
the
third
line
is
section poetic
stanza. Other
settings.
L a s s e n and J o a c h i m Ra f f
This ( Op .
text 173,
wa s No.
also
set
by E d u a r d
8 ).^
^Searle, " L i s z t , " p. 4 9 , noted t h a t the songs which L i s z t w r o te in th e 1870s a re c h a r a c t e r i z e d by " a u s t e r i t y , r e s t r a i n t , and a c e r t a i n w o r l d - w e a r i n e s s . " T h i s song f i t s such a d e s c r i p t i o n . ■ ^ H i l d e g a r d J u n g , " D a s g e i s t l i c h e S o l o l i e d i n 19. J a h r h u n d e r t : Ein E e i t r a g zur G e s c h i c h t e des d e u t s c h e n K u n s t l i e d e s " ( I n a u g u r a l - D i s s e r t a t i o n , U n i v e r s i t a t Ko 1 n , 1 9 5 1 ) , p p . 4 8 , XL I V .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Chapter
15
CARL GOTTFRIED WILHELM TAUBERT (1811-1891) Though prominent between
Opera
figure the
fulfilled
now
virtually
in
the
years
under
Mendelssohn
court
Kapellmeister
of
Arts.
In a d d i t i o n
nies, 300
composer.
various solo
Berlin
intimate liche
lieder
and to
as
style
■^See p a g e s
his
and
most
is His
his
at
at
six
this
the
style
well-known
of
Royal
Ac a d e my
four he of
145,
reflected
in
s ome o f
was
the
numbe r
s o me
Second are
160)^ his
a
sympho
wrote
these
0pp.
songs
Royal
serving
Songs;"
religious
he
as
operas,
the
time
Taubert
works
a
Berlin
Berlin
well
a pianist,
wa s
native
the
as
chamber in
Taubert
During
teaching
prim arily
well.
1885.
being
("Children's
lyrical
of
Meyerbeer
Besides
S c h o o l . T h e
Kinderlieder
and
concertos,
songs,
and
life
responsibilities
as
prolific
musical
1830
conducting
unremembered,
his
whose geistat
37-38 above.
^"Taubert, ( C a r l G o t t f r i e d ) W i l h e l m , " T h e He w G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f Mus 1 c a n d M u s i c i a n s , 18: 5 9 5 . Also, Richard S ietz, " T a u b e r t , C a r l G o t t f r i e d W i l h e l m , " Die Mu s i 1c i n G e s c h i c h t e und Ge g e n wa r t , v o l . 13, e d . F r i e d r i c h Bl u me ( K a s s e l a n d B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1 9 6 6 ) , pp. 1 4 7 - 1 4 9 . ^ H i l d e g a r d J u n g , " Da s g e i s t l i c h e S o l o l i e d i m 19. Jahrhundert: Ein B e i t r a g zur G e s c h i c h t e des d e u t s c h e n 154
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
155
least thirteen. 11C h r i s t k i n d l e i n 11 ( Op. 8 8 , No. 6 ) Taubert's "Ch. B i r c h . " to
score
The m o s t
gave likely
the
author
referent
theater
(1799-1868) in Berlin
from
who
was
her
poem a s
Charlotte
associated
1844 u n t i l
this
ma y b e c o n s i d e r e d
be t h e P r o t e s t a n t a u t h o r a n d a c t r e s s
Pfeiffer
of
with
Birch-
the
court
Universitat
Koln,
death.^
Christkindlein K i n t e r a l l ' den S t e r n e l e i n Di e d o r t oben g e h e n , S i t z t das holde C h r i s t k i n d l e i n , Lieblich anzusehen. H i i t h e t a n dem H i m m e l s z e l t A ll' die lic h te n Schafe; Ii ii t h e t a u c h z u r N a c h t d i e Dass s i e r u h i g s c h l a f e .
Welt,
S c h l a f ' d r u m s u s s und f i i r c h t e n i c h t i'Jenn du f r o mm u nd b i e d e r , S c h a u t im g o l d n e n S t e r n e n l i c h t Christkindlein hernieder.
Th e L i t t l e
Christ
Child
Behind a l l the l i t t l e s t a r s Which pass up there S its the gracious l i t t l e C h rist Lovely to look a t .
Kunstliedes" (Inaugural-D issertation, 1 9 5 1 ) , p. 48.
child
^ I( a r 1 R i c h t e r , "Birch-Pfeif fer, J o h a n n a , " _W_e__u__e_ c[ e__u t_s_cji e. _B_i o^_g. r_ja J) h. i. e^, v o l . Duncker & Humblot, 1953), pp. 252- 253.
Charlotte 2 (Berlin:
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
156
I n t h e v a u l t o f h e a v e n he k e e p s All the s h i n i n g sheep; He a l s o k e e p s t h e w o r l d a t n i g h t So t h a t i t may s l e e p p e a c e f u l l y . T h e r e f o r e s l e e p s w e e t l y a n d do n o t f e a r P r o v i d e d you a r e p i o u s and u p r i g h t , In t h e g o ld e n s t a r l i g h t The l i t t l e C h r i s t c h i l d l o o k s d own . Theological Jesus,
is
through
in
or
she
heaven
the
inhabitants is
mental
stars
devout
in
measures. 1
a
e )
in
modulations
sixths.
basis
of
an
Pietism,
with for
key
of
three
text
only
is
the
the
last
movi ng m u s i c a l l y
~*The s c o r e o f t h i s Wi 1 h e 1 m T a u b e r t , Klanae Trautwein, n . d .).
and
to
bring
its
irenically
text
shows
if
a
he
senti
traditional
texture in
poetic song^
but
Roman
strophes
of
there
beginnings
The p i a n o
set
stars
of
are the
generally
of
second
and
doubles
the
incorporating
text
to a s t r o n g e r
parallel syllabic
repeated final
tenth
fleeting
a straightforward
line
have
tw enty-six
mel ody s p a n s a m a j o r
C major,
homophonic
the
world
of
child,
and R o m a n t i c i s m .
through-com posed
strophes.
The
This
Christ
all
may r e s t
amalgam
The
to E minor at
poetic
the
righteous.
analysis.
the
mel ody i n a t h i n
style
over
Th e s o m e w h a t a n g u l a r 9
to
third
and
beautiful
he o v e r s e e s
The b e l i e v e r
theology,
set
The
watches
peace.
Musical
(c
where
popularization
Catholic
been
summary.
as
the
cadence.
song i s a v a i l a b l e f o r a u s d e r K i n d e r we l t
study in (Berlin:
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
157
Other a r e known t o
settings.
No o t h e r
settings
of
this
text
be e x t a n t . " Di e H e r r l i c h k e i t d e r E r d e " ( Op. 1 4 2 b . No. 3 ; 1 8 6 0 - 1 8 6 7 ) 6
The a u t h o r 1664),
of t h i s
wa s a l e a d i n g
the Baroque era. faith
in
his
transitory
writings, nature
proper
Taubert
c a me
all
Vanitatum
poetic
dramatist
central
in
G e r ma n y
during
t h e m e o f w h i c h wa s t h e
earthly
to encourage
relationship
Gryphius'
fourth
of
the
with
wa s d r a w n f r o m t h r e e
"V anitas! from
and
Andreas Gryphius (1616—
As a L u t h e r a n h e g a v e e x p r e s s i o n t o h i s
wo r k s he a t t e m p t e d in
poet
text,
things.
his
readers
God.^
The
of the f i f t e e n
Oden
of
his
to lead a l i f e
text
V an itas" (Vanity!
Geistliches
Through
set
strophes
Vanity Q 1643° and
of
by of
Vanities)
an anonymous
strophe.
^ T h i s d a t e , w h i c h was n o t f r o m J u n g , " S o l o l i e d , " p. LV.
printed
on t h e
score,
^ W o l f g a n g M o n a t h , " G r y p h i u s , A n d r e a s , " Ne u e deutsche B io g ra p h ie, vol. 7 (B erlin: Duncker & Humblot, 1965), pp. 242-246. ® J a me s H e a r n s , " G r y p h i u s , A n d r e a s , " D i c t i o n a r y o f Hy m n o l o g y , v o l . 1, e d . J o h n J u l i a n ( 1 9 0 7 ; r p t . Grand Rapids: K r e g e l , 1 9 8 5 ) , p. 4 7 3 . Hearns gave th e d a te as 1 6 5 0 r a t h e r t h a n 1 6 4 3 a s g i v e n by M o n a t h , " G r y p h i u s , " p. 243. The c o m p l e t e t e x t o f G r y p h i u s ' poem c a n be f o u n d i n Hermann Palm , ed. G r y p h i u s ' W e r k e , D e u t s c h e N a t i o n a l Literatur: H i s t o r i s c h k r i t i s c h e A u s g a b e , v o l . 29 ( B e r l i n and S t u t t g a r t : W. S p e m a n n , n . d . ) , p p . 4 0 3 - 4 0 6 .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
158
Di e H e r r l i c h k e i t
der
Erde
Di e H e r r l i c h k e i t d e r E r d e Mus s S t a u b und A s c h e w e r d e n , ICein F e l s , k e i n E r z b l e i b t s t e h n . D a s , was u n s h i e r e r g o t z e t , Was man a l s e w i g s c h a t z e t , Mus s w i e e i n l e i c h t e r Tr a u m v e r g e h n . Was s i n d d o c h a l l e S a c h e n , Di e u n s s o t r o t z i g m a c h e n ? S i e wahren k u r z e Z e i t . Was i s t d e r M e n s c h e n L e b e n ? h i t P r a c h t u nd G l a n z u m g e b e n , I s t ' s d o c h n u r Ta n d und E i t e l k e i t . Es h i l f t n i c h t K u n s t un d W i s s e n , Wi r w e r d e n h i n g e r i s s e n , Der m o r g e n , d i e s e r h e u t ! Was h i l f t d e r S c h l o s s e r Me ng e ? Wem h i e r d i e We l t zu e n g e , Dem w i r d e i n e n g e s Gr a b z u w e i t . D i e s l a s s t u n s wo h l b e d e n k e n , Das K e r z zum Hi r amel l e n l c e n , Wo A l l e s e w i g s t e h t . Wer d o r t h i n w i l l g e l a n g e n , D a r f a n d e r We l t n i c h t h a n g e n , We i t s i e m i t i h r e r L u s t v e r g e h t .
The G l o r y o f
the E a rth ^
The g l o r y o f t h e e a r t h Mu s t b e c o me d u s t a n d a s h e s , No s t o n e , no m e t a l r e m a i n s s t a n d i n g . T h a t , which h e r e d e l i g h t s us , Wh i c h i s v a l u e d a s e t e r n a l , Mu s t v a n i s h a s a f a i n t e r d r e a m . What a r e h o w e v e r a l l t h i n g s Whi c h make u s s o d e f i a n t ? Th e y l a s t a s h o r t t i m e .
9 Me a r n s , " G r y p h i u s , " p. 4 7 3 , r e f e r r e d t o two E n g l i s h h y m n i c t r a n s l a t i o n s o f t h i s t e x t by Dr . h . M i l l s ( " E a r t h ' s b o a s t e d j o y s a n d s p l e n d o u r , " 1 8 4 5 ) a n d by C a t h e r i n e Wi n k w o r t h ( " A l l g l o r i e s o f t h i s e a r t h d e c a y , " 1869) .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
159
What i s huma n l i f e ? S u r r o u n d e d w i t h pomp a n d s p l e n d o r , I t i s , h o w e v e r , o n l y t r i f l e s and v a n i t y . N e i t h e r s k i l l nor knowledge h e l p s , We w i l l be o v e r c o m e , Tomor row, t h i s v e r y day! Of w h a t h e l p i s a n u m b e r o f p a l a c e s ? F o r wh o me v e r h e r e t h e w o r l d i s t o o n a r r o w , A n a r r o w g r a v e becomes t o o w i d e . Le t us w e l l c o n s i d e r t h i s , To t u r n t h e h e a r t t o h e a v e n , Wh e r e e v e r y t h i n g s t a n d s e t e r n a l l y . Wh o e v e r w a n t s t o be a d m i t t e d t h e r e , May n o t be d e v o t e d t o t h e w o r l d , Since i t vanishes with i t s d e l i g h t . Theological everything defiance skill
of
eternal. God
light
values
is of
so
world
of
very this
that
passes
impact
song's^
the
worldly
with key
fact,
p o mp
and
This
is
and
in
heaven
which
soon
ends
should
entrance a
in
to
text
and
on
heaven
which
its
personal sensual
certain
focus
where
builds
splendor,
possessions,
people
may g a i n
away.
dwells
existence,
m aterial
short
they
death.
heavenly wh e n t h i s
reflects
the
Pietism.
Mu s i c a l
form
on
God
Human
and k n o w l e d g e ,
delights, In
is
summary.
analysis.
seventy-three a vocal of
four
measures are
compass
A minor.
The
firs t
of
this
in m o d i f i e d - s t r o p h i c
of a m i n o r
The
strophes
ninth
three
(e
1
to
f
strophes
9
) in are
The s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g i s i n W i l h e l m T a u b e r t , Sechs g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r (Neu-Ruppin: P e t r e n z , n.d.) which is a v a i l a b l e fo r stu d y a t the Boston P u b lic L i b r a ry in Boston, M assachusetts.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1 6 0
accompanied melody
by
chorale-like
while
the
fourth
accompanimental v arie ty , the
left
hand of
ily
syllabic
with
Other Carl
Friedrich
G e r ma n 170.
the
strophe
including
pianist.
the
homophonic
last
chords
incorporates
triplet
settings.
This
text
Briegel
(1670).^
line
repeated
has also
double more
figurations
Th e t e x t - s e t t i n g
textual
which
been
is
for
primar twice.
set
by
^ R i c h a r d H i n t o n Tho mas , P o e t r y and Song i n t h e Baroque (Oxford: C l a r e n d o n , 1 9 6 3 ) , pp. 8 0 - 8 2 , 1 6 8 -
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
the
Chapter
16
FRANZ COMMER (1813-1887) Although music the
historian
choral
ries,
Commer
exclusively
of
choruses music.
piano,
of
the
also
historical with
a
sixteenth a
singing
vocal
music
addition
and
and
instructor
least
and
compositions
included
secular
160 l i e d e r
fifty-three
as
interest
seventeenth
to M a s s e s and o t h e r
He w r o t e a l m o s t
which a t
significance
particular
o wn n o w - f o r g o t t e n
in
choral
editor
of
was
His
greatest
and
music
musician.
and
of
a in
centu church
consisted partsongs
liturgical
for
voice
and
were r e l i g i o u s . ^
"Kreuz-Lied" ( Op. 6 5 , No. 1 ) The P r o t e s t a n t (182 0 - 1 8 9 1 ) least
religious ("Sixty
poet
Friedrich
Heinrich
was o n e o f C o m m e r ' s f a v o r i t e a u t h o r s
twenty-three
composer's
Swiss
songs. poetry,
Songs
of
of
his
Oser
texts
published
beginning the
used
Cross
with and
as
the
several
basis
Oser
with at for
the
collections
of
6j3 K r e u z - und T r o s t l i e d e r Comfort")
which
not
only
^ K a r l G u s t a v F e l l e r e r , " Co mme r , F r a n z , " Di e ITu s i k i n G e s c h i c h t e und G e g e n w a r t , v o l . 2, e d . F r i e d r i c h B l u m e ( K a s s e l and B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1 9 5 2 ) , pp. 1 5 8 3 -1 5 8 8 . 161
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
16 2
offered also the
comfort
provided joyful
"Kreuz-Lied" are
and e n c o u r a g e m e n t
general
message in
of
spiritual Jesus
Commer ' s
"Trost-Lied"
(Song
Drei
in
to the
suffering,
refreshment a new
Lieder
form.
2
v on F r .
of C o n s o l a t i o n )
but
by p r e s e n t i n g Accompanying Oser
and " L ie d
(Op.
65)
auf
des
K i n d e s T o d " ( S o n g on t h e D e a t h o f a C h i l d ) . Kreuz-Lied S e e l e , was b e t r i i b s t du d i c h , Und v e r z e h r e s t d i c h i n S e h n e n ? S p e i s e s t dich mit b i t t e r n Thranen, Vi/as b e t r i i b s t du a l s o d i c h ? K a r r 1 auf Gott nur e w ig l ic h ! W i l l s t du d i c h v e r g e s s e n w a h n e n ? 0 dein Herr, er schauet dich, K e n n e t , e h du r u f s t , d e i n S e h n e n ! S e e l e , was b e t r i i b s t du d i c h ? L a s s e b r a u s e n n u r d i e Wogen! Wi e d i e F l u t a u c h lcommt g e z o g e n , Dennoch n i c h t b e t r u b e d i c h ! H a r r ' auf Gott nur e w ig l ic h ! Wen h a t j e s e i n Wo r t b e t r o g e n ? Eh du s i n k s t , e n t r e i s s e t d i c h S e i n e s t a r k e Hand d e n Wogen! S e e l e , wa s b e t r i i b s t Lo b e n w i r s t du n o c h Kann d e r e w ' g e F e l s U betriib n i c h t fiir
du d i c h ? und d a n k e n ! denn wanken? der dich!
H a r r ' auf Gott nur e w i g l i c h , S t a t t dem R o h r e g l e i c h z u s c h w a n k e n : F r e u e n , f r e u e n w i r s t du d i c h L i t r r o h l o c k e n und m i t D a n k e n !
2
F r i e d r i c h N i p p o l d , Das d e u t s c h e C h r i s t u s l i e d d e s neunzehnten Jahrhunderts (Leipzig: E r n s t Wu n d e r l i e h , 1 9 0 3 ) , pp. 64, 2 2 1 - 2 2 2 .
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
163
Song o f
the
Cross
S o u l , why a r e y o u a f f l i c t i n g y o u r s e l f And p i n i n g a wa y i n l o n g i n g ? You a r e e a t i n g w i t h b i t t e r t e a r s , So why a r e y o u a f f l i c t i n g y o u r s e l f ? Wa i t o n l y f o r God e t e r n a l l y ! Do you w a n t t o p r e s u m e t o n e g l e c t y o u r s e l f ? 0 y o u r L o r d , he s e e s y o u , Kn ows , b e f o r e y o u c a l l , y o u r l o n g i n g ! S o u l , why a r e y o u a f f l i c t i n g y o u r s e l f ? Onl y a l l o w t h e wa v e s t o r o a r ! I n w h a t e v e r way t h e f l o o d a l s o c o me s t w i s t e d l y , N e v e r t h e l e s s do n o t a f f l i c t y o u r s e l f ! Wa i t f o r God e t e r n a l l y ! Who h a s h i s wo r d e v e r d e c e i v e d ? B e f o r e you s i n k , h i s s t r o n g hand R e s c u e s you f r o m t h e wa v e s ! S o u l , why a r e y o u a f f l i c t i n g y o u r s e l f ? You w i l l y e t p r a i s e a n d t h a n k hi m! Can t h e e t e r n a l r o c k w a v e r ? 0 d o n 't a f f l i c t y o u rs e lf about th a t! Wa i t o n l y f o r God e t e r n a l l y , I n s t e a d of shak ing l i k e the r e e d : You w i l l r e j o i c e , r e j o i c e , Wi t h s h o u t s o f j o y a n d w i t h t h a n k s ! Theological
s u mm a r y .
aw are of th e s i t u a t i o n s life.
lie
is
powerfully Human
face God
to
meet
existence
rations, cause
always
and
these
and
his
to
faithful the
grieve
answer,
to
needs
replete
conditions
the
and d e t a i l s
threatening
a person of
is
God
with
of
word
those
sorrow,
circumstances, and one
which
become should
will
be
Lord
is
each i n d i v i d u a l ' s
his
of
eternal
and
who
will
trust
unfulfilled all
of
resolutely cause
him. aspi
which
depressed.
a
act
can
In
the
wait
for
for
joyous
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
164
praise text
and
thanksgiving
expresses
a pietistic
Mu_jS j; ,a_l _ a__n £i_l measures each
form
three
musical
strophes. Commer ' s second
three
emotional
s^_i s^.
strophe of
the
This
believer.
in
song's^
strict
This
first
is
the
key
owing
between
to
form
two of O s e r ' s
the
in
sixty-three
strophic
this
E major
content
of
incorporating
strophes
in
part
theology.
strophes
Because
half
on t h e
of
the
successive
half
of
£ minor
poetic each
of
with
the
of
the
alteration
poetic
with
strophes.
The
l y r i c a l 'voice p a r t covers the i n t e r v a l of a major n in th I O (e to f -s h arp ) a g a i n s t a piano accompaniment c o n s i s t i n g of
arpeggiated
bass
line.
poetic
chords
The t e x t
lines
repeated
Other
above
is
set in
settings.
a
slowly-moving,
syllabically
each This
single-note
with
the
last
two
was a l s o
set
by L o u i s
strophe. text
Schindelmeisser.^ "Herr, ( Op. This v o n F.
the
Oser
song ( Op .
is 76)
der 76,
from where
du r u f s t " No. 1 )
C o m m e r ’s D r e i it
appears
geistliche in
the
J Th e s c o r e of t h i s s ong i s a v a i l a b l e L i b r a r y o f C o n g r e s s i n W a s h i n g t o n , D. C.
Lieder
company
for
of
study at
^ H i l d e g a r d J u n g , " Da s g e i s t l i c h e S o l o l i e d im 19. Jahrhundert: Ein B e i t r a g zur G e s c h i c h t e des d e u t s c h e n K u n s t l i e d e s " ( I n a u g u r a l - D i s s e r t a t i o n , U n i v e r s i t a t Koln, 1 9 5 1 ) , p. I L .
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
165
" A u f m e i n e m L a g e r " ( On My B e d ) a n d " H a t t '
ich Fliigel"
(If
I Had W i n g s ) . Herr,
der
du r u f s t
H e r r , d e r du r u f s t dem M o r g e n r o t h , Und r i e g e l s t z u d a s T h o r d e r N a c h t , D a s s d a s Ge wo l k a u f d e i n G e b o t B r e n n t , w i e von A n d a c h t s g l u t e n t f a c h t : 0 s e n d e d e i n e r Gn a d e S t r a h l Auc h m i r i n ' s H e r z und m a c h ' s b e r e i t , Na c h a l l e m J a m m e r , a l l e r Qu a l Zu p r e i s e n d e i n e G i i t i g k e i t . H e r r , d e r dem Aa r du f l i e g e n h e i s s t Aus s e i n e m H o r s t z u r S o n n e g l e i c h : H n t r e i s s ' a u c h mi c h d u r c h d e i n e n G e i s t , De r f i n s t e r n H a c h t und i h r e m R e i c h ! Aus f e r n s t e r Hoh l a s s ' o h n e Gr a u n Mi c h b l i c k e n a u f d e r E r d e Mo t h , Und j a u c h z e n d i r im N i e d e r s c h a u n , A l s wi e d i r j a u c h z t d a s M o r g e n r o t h . Lord,
You Who C a l l L o r d , you who c a l l t h e dawn And b o l t s h u t t h e d o o r o f t h e n i g h t , So t h a t t h e c l o u d a t y o u r command Burris, a s i f f r om d e v o t i o n ' s p a s s i o n 0 send your r ay of g r a c e A l s o i n my h e a r t a n d make i t r e a d y , After a l l trembling, a l l pain, To p r a i s e y o u r g o o d n e s s .
kindled:
L o r d , yo u who command t h e e a g l e t o f l y Fr om h i s a e r i e s i m i l a r t o t h e s u n : R e s c u e me a l s o by y o u r S p i r i t Fr om t h e d a r k n i g h t a n d i t s k i n g d o m ! Fr om t h e mo r e d i s t a n t h e i g h t l e t me w i t h o u t Lo ok on t h e e a r t h ' s d i s t r e s s And r e j o i c e i n yo u i n t h e d o wn wa r d v i e w , As e v e n t h e dawn r e j o i c e s i n y o u . Theological created
order.
as a source
He i s
of g r a c e
s u m ma r y . good
and
God t h e may
Lord
controls
be a d d r e s s e d
and d e l i v e r a n c e .
After
fear
in
the
prayer
he a n s w e r s
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
by
166
sending lives
are
fear God
the
Koly
controlled
and
pain,
and
Spirit,
not
but
fear
by
he
to
forces
faith the
is
be
of
allows
praised.
despair
accompanied
individuals
exigencies
of
People's
to
life.
focus
The
by on
created
o r d e r r e j o i c e s i n God a n d m i r r o r s t h e wa y i n w h i c h God c a n act
in
the
influence
life of
of
song
ir
in
introduction, measure (e
1
text
demonstrates
the
analysis.
strict a
postlude.
The
strophic
four-measure Th e
forty-three
form
include
interlude,
undulating
me l ody
measures a
of
one-measure
and spans
a
seven-
an
octave
9 i to e ) in a t o n a l f r a m e w o r k w hich b e g i n s and ends in E
major
w i t h an i n t e r m e d i a t e
song
has
that
of
and
This
Pietism.
Musical this
a believer.
an
arpeggiated
"Kreuz-Lied."
without
The
modulation
piano text
t o li m a j o r .
accompaniment is
presented
This
sim ilar
to
syllabically
repetition.
Other
settings.
No o t h e r
settings
are
known t o
the
J The s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g i s a v a i l a b l e L i b r a r y o f C o n g r e s s i n W a s h i n g t o n , D. C.
of
this
text
be e x t a n t .
for
study at
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Chapter
17
FRANZ ABT (1819-1885) As tor, ing
Abt
the
wa s
son
a
educated
theological
furthering
of
musical!, y - t r a i n e d
in
Leipzig
training
his
musical
at
with
the
in
in
music,
education
Bernburg,
national
serving
Zurich,
reputation.
as
the
at
the
a successful
a composer
Ab t
wa s
for
male c h o ru s,
solo
lieder. likened
voice,
but
including
his compositional to
that
of
the
was v o c a l he a l s o at
least
style
cheaply
wrote
in
awkward
declamation,
s o ngs were e x t r e m e l y s o me
even
gaining
and
particularly
over
400
thirty
songs
geistliche
these
songs
has
sentimental
salon
music
trite
p o p u l a r a mo n g h i s
an a c c e p t a n c e
with
3000 i n d i v i d u a l
his time with p rim itiv e accompanimental forms, nies,
an i n t e r
prolific
music,
for
also
conductor
developing
pieces. works
while
choral
over
interest
receiv
Thomasschu1e .
m o r e t h a n 6 00 o p u s n u m b e r s ma d e up o f Kis main
of
pas
he d e v o t e d h i m s e l f t o a
and B r u n s w i c k and As
goal
university
F o ll o w i n g the d e a t h of h i s f a t h e r , career
Protestant
akin
but
contemporaries that
of
we a k h a r m o
melodies,
to
been
of
Abt's with
folksong.^
^ W i l l i Ka h l , "Abt , F r a n z , " Di e Mus i k i n G e s c h i c h t e u n d G e g e n wa r t , v o l . 1, e d . F r i e d r i c h B l u m e ( K a s s e l a n d Basel: Darenreiter, 1949-51), pp. 6 7 - 6 9 . Also, Carl B e n e d i c t , " A b t , F r a n z , " Me u e d e u t s c h e B i o g r a p h i e , v o l . 1 167
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1 6 8
Two o f
his
mo r e p o p u l a r
lieder
are
considered
below.
"Waldandacht" ( Op. 2 1 1 . No. 3 ) 2 Abt's "L.
score
Drewes."
It
gave
may
the
Eichendorff and
O
included
a
poet
close
whom h e
His
simple
Anklangen
Lieder
der
that
otherwise-unknown the author
Leberecht
shared
works,
an
personal a
and
friend
which
he
of
the
Dreves Joseph
of
thought
sought
Harmony, "
("Songs
is
of
modern s e c u l a r
("Lyrical Ki r c h e
Bliicher
similarity
through
Christianity
Lyrischen
collection,
1846),
was
with
feeling.^
reconcile
the
who
as
be c o n j e c t u r e d
Protestant-turned-Catholic (1816-1870)
poet
1i f e , ^
1837)
the
to
and
Church,"
w h i c h he e d i t e d . * ^
(Berlin: Duncker & Humblot, 1952), pp. 2 5 - 2 6 . In a d d i t i o n , E d w a r d F. K r a v i t t , " A b t , F r a n z W i l h e l m , " The New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f Mu s i c a n d Mu s i c i a n s , v o l . 1, ed. S t a n l e y S a d ie (London: Macmillan, 1980), pp. 29-30. F u r t h e r , H i l d e g a r d J u n g , " Da s g e i s t l i c h e S o l o l i e d i m. 19. Jahrhundert: Ein B e i t r a g zur G e s c h i c h t e des d e u t s c h e n K u n s t l i e d e s " ( I n a u g u r a l - D i s s e r t a t i o n , U n i v e r s i t a t Koln, 1 9 5 1 ) , p. 45. K r a v i t t , " A b t , " p. 3 0 , l i s t s a p a r t s o n g f o r u n s p e c i f i e d v o i c i n g by t h e s a me t i t l e a s Op. 1 7 5 , N o . 2. ^See
pp.
an
138-139 above.
^ P a u 1 R a a b e , " D r e v e s , L e b e r e c h t B l i i c h e r , " Neue deutsche B io g ra p h ie , vol. 4 (B erlin : Duncker & Humblot, 1 9 5 7 ) , p. 116. ^ Au g us t H e i n r i c h Kober, G e s c h i c h t e d e r r e l i g i o s e n D ichtung in D eutschland (Essen: G.D. B a e d e k e r , 1 9 1 9 ) , p. 250. ^Ernst
Alker,
j)
i__e
ji
e^j j _t s^ c^Ji e_ L, i j t _ejr ja _t _u r
i m _1 9 .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
169
Waldandacht F r i i h mo r g e n s , wenn d i e Ha h n e k r a h ' n , E h ' n o c h d e r W a c h t e l Ru f e r s c h a l l t , E h ' w a r me r a l l ’ d i e L i i f t e w e h ' n , Vom J a g d h o r n r u f d a s Ec h o h a l l t : Dann g e h e t l e i s e Na c h s e i n e r We i s e De r l i e b e H e r r g o t t d u r c h d e n Wa l d ! D i e Q u e l l e , d i e i h n kommen h o r t , H a l t i h r Ge mu r me l a u f s o g l e i c h , Auf d a s s s i e n i c h t i n A n d a c h t s t o r t So G r o s s a l s K l e i n i n W a l d b e r e i c h . Di e Baume d e n k e n : Nun l a s s t u n s s e n k e n Vor ' i n l i e b e n K e r r g o t t d a s G e s t r a u c h ! Di e B l i i m l e i n , wenn s i e a u f g e w a c h t , S i e ahnen auch den l i er r n a l s b a l d Und s c h i i t t e l n r a s c h d e n S c h l a f d e r N a c h t S i c h a u s d e n Au g e n m i t G e w a l t . Sie f l i i s t e r n l e i s e Ei n g s u m im K r e i s e : Der l i e b e G o t t g e h t d u r c h d e n Wal d! Forest
Devotion E a r l y i n t h e m o r n i n g , when t h e c o c k s c r o w , Before yet the q u a i l ' s c a l l resounds, B e f o r e w a r me r a l l t h e b r e e z e s b l o w , The e c h o f r o m t h e h u n t i n g h o r n s o u n d s : At t h a t t i m e g o e s s o f t l y I n h i s own way The d e a r L o r d God t h r o u g h t h e f o r e s t ! The s p r i n g , w h i c h h e a r s h i m c o m i n g , S t o p s h e r murmuri ng w e l l e nough, In o r d e r t h a t she d o e s n ' t d i s t u r b Large t h i n g s as well as small t h i n g s forest region. The t r e e s t h i n k : Now l e t u s l o w e r The b u s h e s b e f o r e t h e d e a r L o r d God!
Jahrhundert p . 237.
(1832-1914)
(Stuttgart:
Alfred
in
the
Kroner,
1969),
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
170
The l i t t l e f l o w e r s , when t h e y a r e a w a k e , Th e y a l s o s e n s e t h e L o r d i m m e d i a t e l y And q u i c k l y s h a k e t h e s l e e p o f n i g h t Out o f t h e i r e y e s w i t h m i g h t . Th e y w h i s p e r s o f t l y All around the c i r c l e : The d e a r God g o e s t h r o u g h t h e f o r e s t ! Theological passes
through
of
created
the
Each
part
of
This te x t
the
the
measures
are
major
vocal
to
g^).
in
strict
Th e
piano
in
four
point.
lines
of
Lord
morning.
senses
worships
silently
him
in
The w h o l e
his
presence.
reverent
This
strophic
song's^
triads The text
awe.
form.
In
ninety-three the
key
melody has a compass of a p e r f e c t
the
one
the
God a n d
a n a l y s i s.
broken chord
at
in
the
i d e a s of Romanticism.
utilizing voice
God
early
loves
forest
the
Mus i c a l
(c^
forest
order
shows
the
s u mma r y .
accompaniment patterns
or
thirds,
and
text-setting are
in
repeated
is in
is
highly
both even
the
idiomatic,
echoing
last
F
twelfth
hands,
syllabic,
of
doubling the
voice
but
the
last
half
of
each
strophe. Other this
text
are
settings. k n o wn t o
No o t h e r
solo
voice s e t t i n g s
of
be e x t a n t .
^The s c o r e of t h i s s ong i s a v a i l a b l e the n id d le b u ry College Music L i b r a r y in Vermont.
for study at Middlebury,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
171
" Ave M a r i a " ( Op. 4 3 8 a ) The
text
paraphrase Catholic of
the
angel
added
this
Latin
song prayer
in
G abriel
the for
be f o u n d
is
an
which
anonymous was
used
The L a t i n t e x t c o n s i s t e d from
fr o m Luke 1 :4 2 ,
standardized and can
the
worship.
Elizabeth was
of
of
in
1:28,
in
century.
the
use
The L i b e r
in
the
The
Ro ma n
of the words words
and a p r a y e r of p e t i t i o n
fifteenth liturgical
Luke
German
text
following
of
which
became O century
Usualis.^
Ave M a r i a G r u s s d i r , M a r i a , M u t t e r d e r Gnaden, 0 B e n e d e i t e , d ie der Herr vor a l i e n Auserwahlet h a t ! D i e e r e r k o r e n , u n s zum H e i l z u g e b e n Unsern Heiland J e s u s . H e i l 'g e Maria, Gottes Mutter! Inbriinstig flehn wir: 0 f le h ' fur u n s're Siindenschuld! B i t t e im L e b e n , wi e i n d e r T o d e s s t u n d e , B i t t : f u r u n s Ar me v o r G o t t e s T h r o n . H e i l ' g e M a r i a , b i t t ' f i i r u n s Ar me , B i t t e f i i r u n s im L e b e n , Wi e i n d e r S t u n d e d e s T o d e s . Ame n .
®" Ave M a r i a , " and M u s i c i a n s , 1 : 7 4 4. ^ The L i b e r ( T o u r n a i , Belgium:
The
New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y
of
Music
Usua1i s , ed. B e n e d i c t i n e s of Solesmes D e s c l e e , 1947) , p. 1861.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
172
Hail
Ma r y H a i l t o y o u , Mar y, m o t h e r o f g r a c e , 0 b l e s s e d o n e , whom t h e L o r d b e f o r e a l l has chosen! Whom h e c h o s e , i n o r d e r t o g i v e u s s a l v a t i o n By o u r S a v i o r J e s u s . Ho l y Ma r y, Fervently 0 entreat Intercede Intercede o f God.
m o t h e r o f God! we e n t r e a t y o u : f o r t h e g u i l t of our s i n s ! in l i f e , as in the hour of d e a t h , f o r us poor ones b e f o r e t h e t h r o n e
Ho l y Ma r y, i n t e r c e d e f o r I n t e r c e d e f o r us i n l i f e Ame n . Theological V i r g i n Ma r y s o t h a t race
us poor o nes , as in the hour
summary.
God
she could
bring
through Jesus.
Mary,
wh o i s
the
of
Lord h a s
salvation blessed,
chosen
to is
death.
the
the
h u ma n
the mother
o f God a n d ma y b e e n t r e a t e d t o i n t e r c e d e i n h e a v e n f o r t h e forgiveness
of
people's
sins,
both
at
the tim e s of t h e i r
individual
is
sinful
calling
ness.
and n e e d y ,
This
text
expresses
during deaths.
out
to
their
and
The h u ma n r a c e
heaven
traditional
lives
for
forgive
Ro ma n
Catholic
theology.
Mu s i c a l fills
analysis.
forty-eight
a major
tenth
(e
This through-composed s o n g ^
m e a s u r e s . Th e s o a r i n g 1
to
9
g-sharp)
in
Th e s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g th e M iddlebury C olleg e Music Vermont.
the
vocal
melody
spans
key of E Maj or .
is available L i b r a r y in
for study at Middlebury,
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
173
The
piano
accompaniment
sixteenth-note ending p o r t i o n s the
central
then
with
between
patterns of t h e
portion,
voice
first
and
does
complete
the
melodic
section.
The
text
with
notes.
a
last
with
of
section Other
of
is
This the
double
is
set
entitled
particular
G e r ma n
vocal
at a
the
the
middle
close
style
extended
through
While
many
rhythms section.
but
of
and
it
the
does first
reminiscent
of
over
three
repetition
ideas
chords
cross
melody,
and
permeating
block in
in
two but
or even
paraphrase
an
more in
the
song.
settings.
songs are
text
textual
the
in
in
chords
beginning
rhythm
results
the
often
some
the
the
repeated
piano
line
syllable
There
reiteration
not
arpeggiated
throughout
arpeggiation.
the
of
song w i t h t r i p l e t
The p i a n o
aria
consists
other
" Ave M a r i a , " no o t h e r text
is
k n o wn t o
German
setting
of
be e x t a n t .
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
solo this
Chapter
18
JOHANN GEORG HERZOG (1822-1909) Herzog, organ the
a virtuoso
pedagogue,
most
has
important
been
in
capacity
the
a church
for
position
reforming
of
the hymnal.
liturgically-oriented Herzog
penned
keyboard Gesange below
s o me
of
organ
twenty
50) o f
musician
1879 i n
sacred
church
which
his
in
through
a c o m p o se r of
sacred
songs
for
the
in
involved
music
and
his
While
of E r l a n g e n ' s
prim arily
including
been
G e r ma n y
later
he wa s a c t i v e l y
works
in
century.
the U n i v e r s i t y
Although
have
to
Munich and
Protestant
accompaniment, (Op.
church
in
Church Music,
revitalization
by s o me
of th e n i n e t e e n t h
as the d i r e c t o r
Institute
considered
Protestant
during the second h a lf serving
o r g a n i s t and h i g h l y r e s p e c t e d
choral solo
1_0
music
voice
a nd
geistliche
t wo l i e d e r
discussed
appeared.^ "Passionsgesang" ( Op. 5 0 , No. 5; 1 8 7 9 ) For
the
text
of
this
lied
Herzog chose
the
first
Franz K rautw urst, " H e r z o g , J o h a n n G e o r g , " Die M u s i k i n G e s c h i c h t e und G e g e n w a r t , v o l . 16, e d . F r i e d r i c h Bl ur ue ( K a s s e l a n d B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1 9 5 7 ) , pp. 2 9 9 - 3 0 2 . 174
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
175
and
third
of
tausendmal
the
gegriisset"
1676).^
After
Lutheran
school
University tutor
in
as
pastor
a
spiritual of
the
having and
of
Berlin
a
number
by
trained
of h i s
a s by t h e
writings
prayer
his
parishes
inspired
Latin
One
within such
as
where
during
134 t e x t s ,
books.0
studies
served
It
he
the
offered the
wa ke
within
the
wrote
the
by t h e B i b l e a s w e l l devotional
collections
collection
sanctorum
at
he s e r v e d
and i n
that
(160 7-
a private
he
was
mir
orthodox
Subsequently
m inistry
contained
"Sei
Gerhardt
theological
165 1.
of
poem
in a s t r i c t l y
Wa r ( 1 6 1 8 - 1 6 4 8 ) .
Me d i t a t i o n e s
medieval
Paul
pastoral
Holy F a t h e r s , "
the
Gerhardt
16 43 t o
Years
majority
part
been
of
n u r t u r e and e n c o u r a g e m e n t
of
the
w ritten
completing
from
in
Thirty
fioller's
stanzas
Wittenberg,
context
and
five
was
M artin
p a t r u m ( " M e d i t a t i o n s on
1584-1591)^ which in c lu d e d poem " K h y t h m i c a
the seven-
O r a t i o ," o n c e c r e d i t e d
O The c o m p l e t e t e x t of t h i s poem i s a v a i l a b l e i n A l b e r t F i s c h e r , Das d e u t s c h e e v a n g e l i s c h e K i r c h e n l i e d d e s 1 7 . J a h r h u n d e r t s , v o l . 3 , e d . W. T r i i m p e l ( H i l d e s h e i m : G e o r g 0 1 m s , 1S6 4 ) , p. 4 0 5 . Herzog used the f o u r t h s t a n z a o f t h e poem a s t h e t e x t f o r t h e f o u r - v o i c e c h o r a l e w h i c h f o l l o w s " P a s s i o n s g e s a n g " i n h i s _10_ g e i s t l i c h e G e s a n g e . ^ T r a u t e M a a s s M a r s h a l l , " G e r h a r d t , P a u l , " The New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f Mu s i c a n d Mu s i c i a n s , v o l . 7, ed. S t a n l e y S a d ie (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , pp. 2 5 5 - 2 5 6 . A l s o , T h e o d o r e Brown H e w i t t , P a u l G e r h a r d t a s a_ Hymn Wr i t e r a n d h i s I n f l u e n c e o n E n g l i s h H y mn o d y ( Ne w H a v e n : Yale U n i v e r s i t y P r e s s , 1 9 1 8 ) , pp. 1 - 2 6 . Mohn,
^Gerhard Podding, 1 9 8 1 ) , pp. 3 4 - 3 6 .
_P_a_u .1
£ n i l fLL llJl
(Giitersloh:
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
176
to
Bernard
been
of
written
Clairvaux by A r n u l p h
lated.
"Sei
of
poem's
seven
"0 H a u p t
voll
the
text,
English final
as
mir
"0
(1091-1153), of
tausendmal parts Blut
Sacred
Louvain,
and
und
Head
experience
of
which
gegriisset"
se c tio n .G e rh a rd t's
devotional
now d e e m e d
the
to
Gerhardt
car ne f r o m
famous
Wounded,"
trans
the
first
Gerhardt
h y mn
Wunden," commonly
Now
have
known
came
from
in the
e m p h a s i s on t h e p e r s o n a l a n d
the
individual
believer
and
his
trust
i n t h e l o v e o f God m a r k e d h i m a s a p o e t wh o p a r t i c i
pated
in
to
the t r a n s i t i o n
Pietism
his "Sei
reading mir
edition 16 5 3 . ^
of
influence
earlier
of
Criiger's
Johann also
set
of
text
" Wach a u f ,
The in
pietatis
Gerhardt
mein
Years
appeared
Praxis
another
Lutheranism
authors.^
first
Gesange, "Norgenlied" the
orthodox
the Thirty
devotional
gegriisset"
Herzog
with
the
strictly
tausendmal
geistliche ning
under
from
( Op . Herz,
50,
text No.
War a n d text
the
fifth
me 1 i c a in 1),
his
und s i n g e . "
S e i m i r t a u s e n d ma l g e g r i i s s e t , De r mi c h j e und j e g e l i e b t , J e s u , d e r du s e l b s t g e b i i s s e t Das w o mi t i c h d i c h b e t r i i b t . Ac h , w i e i s t m i r d o c h s o w o h l ,
^ J o h n J u l i a n , " S a l v e mundi s a l u t a r e , " D i c t i o n a r y o f Bymno1 o g y , v o l . 2 , e d . J o h n J u l i a n ( 1 9 0 7 ; r p t . Gr and Rapids: K r e g e l , 1985), pp. 9 8 9- 991. "Gerhardt,"
p.
^ F i s c h e r , K i r c h e n l i e d , pp.
256. 295,
i n 10
begin
Passionsgesang
^Marshall,
of
405.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
177
Warm i c h k n i e n un d l i e g e n s o l i An dem K r e u z e , d a du s t i r b e s t Und am m e i n e S e e l e w i r b e s t . H e i l e mi ch, 0 H e i l d e r S e e l e n , Wo i c h k r a n k und t r a u r i g b i n : Nimm d i e S c h m e r z e n , d i e mi c h q u a l e n , Und d e n g a n z e n S c h a d e n h i r i , Den m i r Adams F a l l g e b r a c h t , Und i c h s e l b e r m i r g e m a c h t , W i r d , 0 A r z t , d e i n B l u t mi c h n e t z e n , Wi r d s i c h a l l m e i n J a mme r s e t z e n . So n g
of
the
Passion^
Be g r e e t e d by me a t h o u s a n d t i m e s , He who l o v e d me on a n d o n , J e s u s , who y o u r s e l f a t o n e d f o r T h a t by w h i c h I ma de yo u s a d . A l a s , how c e r t a i n i t i s t o me, When I s h o u l d k n e e l a n d l a y At t h e c r o s s , w h e r e yo u d i e d And won o v e r my s o u l . C u r e me, 0 r e d e m p t i o n o f t h e s o u l , When I am s i c k a n d s a d ; B e a r t h e p a i n , w h i c h t o r t u r e s me, And a l l t h e h u r t , Wh i c h A d a m ' s f a l l b r o u g h t t o me, And w h i c h I m y s e l f c a u s e d f o r me, 0 p h y s i c i a n , your blood w i l l s p r i n k l e A l l my m i s e r y w i l l s u b s i d e . Theological redeemer
of
the
summary.
soul,
atoned
Jesus, for
the each
me,
physician person's
and sin.
b e c a u s e o f h i s l o v e he d i e d on t h e c r o s s a n d w i l l now b e a r
^Hewitt, G e r h a r d t , p. 4 0 , listed two E n g l i s h hym nic t r a n s l a t i o n s of t h e German t e x t , one in the h o r a v i a n Hyinn Book o f 1 7 5 4 a n d r e p e a t e d i n l a t e r e d i t i o n s u n d e r t h e t i t l e " T h o u s a n d t i m e s by me b e g r e e t e d " a n d a n o t h e r by A. T . R u s s e l l i n h i s P s a l m s a n d Hj_mn_s o f 1 8 5 1 u n d e r t h e t i t l e " E v e r by my l o v e be o w n e d . " Russell t r a n s l a t e d o n l y t h e f i r s t , t h i r d , and f o u r t h s t a n z a s of G e r h a r d t ' s poem.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
178
the
believer's
b u r d e n s and r e l i e v e
o n e who s u f f e r s well
from
as from t h a t
the g u i l t
of p e r s o n a l
forgiveness
in
experiences
these
benefits
and
sadness
of
or her
pain.
The
and p a i n of Adam's s i n
misdeeds
relationship
humbly and p r a y e r f u l l y
his
with of
can f i n d
Jesus.
C hrist's
relief
T’h e
as a nd
believer
death
by
corning
to th e c r o s s a t t i m e s of s i c k n e s s
heart.
This
text
is
pietistic
in
its
theology . ^
Hu. ®. i £ ilJL_ fLUffi X s . i .s . measures Within tion
form
two
a basic
to
melody
and is
one
chorale-like
strophes
tonality
from
octave
keyboard
the
vocal
syllabic
and
without
text
are
^Rodding, the
strict
D major
(d
I
The
to
d
O
)
The
th irty -six
strophic
there
occurs
range with
accompaniment
line.
of
form.
a modula
the
angular
a
honiophonic,
which
consistently
text-setting
is
primarily
repetition. No o t h e r
solo
settings
of
this
be e x t a n t .
( Op. text
so n g 's^
in
major.
settings.
known t o
The
of
F-sharp
doubles
Other
This
of
50.
"Arie" Ho. 9;
this
song
1879) consists
of
L uther's
G e r h a r d t , p . 36.
■^The s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g i s a v a i l a b l e L i b r a r y o f C o n g r e s s i n W a s h i n g t o n , D. C.
for
study
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
at
179
translation
of
Psalm
25:
16,
2 0,
followed
by a n
anonymous
poem. Ar i e Wende d i c h z u m i r u nd s e i m i r g n a d i g , Denn i c h b i n e i n s a r n und e l e n d . B e w a h r e m e i n e S e e l e u nd e r r e t t e m i c h , L a s s mi c h n i c h t z u S c h a n d e n w e r d e n , Denn i c h t r a u e a u f d i c h . Kein b e s s e r Tr e u a u f Er den i s t , Denn n u r b e i d i r , H e r r J e s u C h r i s t . I c h w e i s s , d a s s du m i c h n i c h t v e r l a s s t ; Dei n W a h r h e i t b l e i b t mi r ewi g f e s t , Du b i s t me i n r e c h t e r t r e u e r H i r t , De r e w i g mi c h b e h i i t e n w i r d .
Aria T u r n y o u r s e l f t o me a n d be g r a c i o u s F o r I am a l o n e a n d d i s t r e s s e d . P r e s e r v e my s o u l a n d s a v e me, L e t me n o t be r u i n e d , For I t r u s t i n you.
t o me,
No b e t t e r f a i t h f u l n e s s i s on e a r t h Th a n o n l y w i t h y o u , L o r d J e s u s C h r i s t . I k n o w, t h a t y o u w o u l d n e v e r f o r s a k e me; Your t r u t h e t e r n a l l y r e m a i n s f i r m f o r me, You a r e my mo r e g e n u i n e , t r u e r s h e p h e r d , Who w i l l a l w a y s p r o t e c t me. Theological faithful
and
true
protects
those
shepherd
who t r u s t
be
petitioned
by h i s
is
eternally
true.
solitude her. to
and
anxiety
Protection Christ
and
s u mma r y .
and
who c o n s t a n t l y in
people The
him. in
time
believer
which
his
He i s of
are
abides
need,
to
presence.
to be
is a
with
gracious
lives
threatens
salvation
seeking
The L o r d J e s u s C h r i s t
and
and can
for
his
a
world
in
destroy
wo r d of
him or
found
by
turning
This
text
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
is
a
180
combination of
traditional
Musical
analysis.
m e a s u r e s of s e c c o 103
measures.
its
final
major the
B-section thus
da
form.
capo
diminished melody
in
its
aria
frequently echoes the is
singer
and
more
keyboard
part. but
notes.
There
out
aria
the
I1
the
1
-sharp a
the
voice
slightly
of has
in F
while
the
are
melodic
The
cross-rhythms
accompanist,
and
in
often
text
is
basically
one s y l l a b l e
extensive
is
repetition
none o c c u r s
in
the
the
with
a
set
to
three
of
the
text
and
between
B-section
independence set
in
keyboard
are
rhythmic
and
foreshadows
the
a
homophonic
presented
thereto.
of
angular 1 O (c to g ) .
there
and
altered
the
basically
both
in
third
range
twelfth
is
the
also
Th e
while
for
but
melodic
is
and
begins
vocal
f )
which
introduction
the
a
perfect
aria
the
and
9
to
contains
Occasionally
muc h
approach,
(c
and
doubles
it.
of f i f t e e n
F major
F major
has
accompaniment
of
eight-m easure
in
the a ria
an a b b r e v i a t e d
spans
piano
to
recitative
eleventh
germs
while
ideas.
by a n ABA* a r i a
begins
returning
The
conception
rhythmic
pietistic
t o C ma j o r and A mi nor s u c c e s s i v e l y
yielding
Th e i d i o m a t i c
followed
in A minor,
before
the
of
with
song'*''*' c o n s i s t s
The r e c i t a t i v e
modulates
section,
This
recitative
cadence
and
orthodoxy
there in
the
syllabic or
four
through
recitative.
The s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g i s a v a i l a b l e L i b r a r y o f C o n g r e s s i n W a s h i n g t o n , D. C.
for
study
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
at
131
Other are
known t o
settings.
No o t h e r
settings
of
this
be e x t a n t .
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
text
Chapter
19
PETER CORNELIUS (1824-1874) Having performers, early
been
in
both
family
experiences
of
the
works
of
his
his
and
literary
Eichendorff^
Franz
in
and
brought
who w e r e
music him
education
talents
Weimar
household,
with Richard
relationship
to
with
under
to
which
he
discovered
there
influence
musical
received
his with
Joseph
poets.
led
v on
I n 1852
to his year.
Cornelius
a
own p o e t i c
became a member
ultimately
t w o men t h a t
earliest
a
also
Wa g n e r i n t h e f o l l o w i n g
these
the
his
w h e r e he c o m p l e t e d
among o t h e r
and
his
pursue
acquaintance
Heyse,
stage
Following the death
there
and
through
and P a u l to
decided
While
both
Cornelius received
mo ve d t o B e r l i n
studies.
moved
Liszt's
meeting
having
Cornelius
literary
Cornelius
acting
subsequently
musical
thorough
parents
o f M o z a r t a n d Go e t h e . ' * '
father, and
to
the poet-composer Peter
training
career
born
of
first It
lived
was the
^ R o b e r t J a m e s S e e l e y , "The Song C y c l e s of P e t e r C o r n e l i u s ( 1 8 2 4 - 7 4 ) w i t h E m p h a s i s on t h e Two S a c r e d So n g Cycles: Vaterunser and We i h n a c h t s l i e d e r " ( D . M . A . dissertation, Southwestern B a p t is t Theological Seminary, 1 9 8 0 ) , p . 2 . F o r i n f o r m a t i o n a b o u t G o e t h e , s e e p. 101 above. O F o r mo r e i n f o r m a t i o n c o n c e r n i n g E i c h e n d o r f f , s e e pp. 1 3 8 - 139 above. 182
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
183
rest
of h i s
life,
tor,
and c o p y i s t
his
o wn p e r s o n a l
serving while
Roman C a t h o l i c
choral
works
penning
secular
comic
opera
Der
lieder
that
he i s
the
secretary,
interm ittently
Cornelius
choral
music.
Bar b i e r
von
primarily
solo
songs,
his
are
nineteen
It
transla
to a s s e r t O independence. As a
wrote
encouragement
seventy-eight own t e x t s ,
friend,
and c o m p o s i t i o n a l
devout
at
as
seeking
a
numbe r
of L i s z t , ^ is,
of as
sacred w ell as
however,
for
his
Ba g d a d ( 1 8 5 5 - 1 8 5 8 )
and
his
remembered ma n y o f
today.^
which are
geistliche
Among h i s settings
of
lieder.
" E r l o s e u n s vom U b e l " ( Op. 2 , No. 9; 1 8 5 4 ) This song
cycle
song
is
the
Vaterunser
final ( Op .
Bernhardshiitte near
We i m a r
wa s
composer
written
fication
by t h e
on t h e L o r d ' s
O
For relationships,
in
Prayer
component
2),
which
1854.
he
Th e t e x t
and s e r v e s as
in
Cornelius'
composed of
each
as a p o e t i c
recorded
in
Lu k e
at song
ampli 11:2-4.
a more d etaile d account of these s e e S e e l e y , " C o r n e l i u s , " pp. 6 - 2 1 , 2 9 - 4 6 .
^ S e e l e y , " C o r n e l i u s , " pp. 1 5 - 1 5 . See a l s o , Hans E n g e l , " C o r n e l i u s , P e t e r , " Die Mu s i k i n G e s c h i c h t e und G e g e n w a r t , v o l . 2, e d . F r i e d r i c h B l u m e ( K a s s e l a n d B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1 9 5 2 ) , p. 1 6 8 4 . ^Giinther M assenkeil and G unther Wagner, " C o r n e l i u s , ( C a r l A u g u s t ) P e t e r , " The New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c a n d M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 4, e d . S t a n l e y S a d i e ( L o n d o n : M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , pp. 7 8 1 - 7 8 4 . Also, Engel, " C o r n e li u s ," pp. 1684-1689.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
184
In
the
each
history
of
the
A.
melodic
in
under
in
Masses
of
the
Erlose
uns
a
songs
found
cycle
is
of
fifteenth
unique
musically
an
in
based
Ambrosian
These c h a n t
individual
manuscript
manner
is
that
on
chant
lied have
reminiscent
and s i x t e e n t h
titles been
of
phrases
the
by N. which
and
used cantus
the
Pater-
in a te x tb o o k w r i t t e n
chant.
the
Cornelius'
composer
this
phrase
on G r e g o r i a n
included
noted
lied
which C o r n e liu s
Janssen
were
the
individual
corresponding noster
of
foot by
the
f i r mu s
centuries.^
vom U b e l
H e i l ' g e L i e b e , f l ammend H e r z , Wol l e ganz d i e We l t d u r c h d r i n g e n , Dass d i e S e e l e n a l l e r w a r t s Liebegliihend s i c h umschlingen. V a t e r , d e r den Sohn g e s a n d t , D a s s e i n Weg zum H e i l u n s b l i e b e , R e t t ' u n s a u s d e s B o s e n Hand Durch d i e L i e b e ! H e i l ' g e r Glauben, K reu zes b ild , L e i t ' uns f e s t d ur ch L e b e n s s t i i r m e , Ob a u c h d r o h e n d s i c h un d w i l d Woge r i n g s a u f Woge t i i r m e . Sohn, d u r c h den wi r G o t t e r k a n n t , Lass uns d i e s e n Hort n i c h t r a u b e n , R e t t ' uns a u s d i e Bosen hand Durch den Gl a u b e n ! H e i l ' g e H o f f n u n g , A n k e r Du, Senl ce t i e f D i c h i n d i e H e r z e n ,
^Seeley,
"Cornelius,"
pp.
52-53.
^Gt i nt her M a s s e n k e i l , "Cornelius a l s Liederkompon i s t , " in P e t e r C o r n e l i u s a l s Komponist, D i c h t e r , K r i t i k e r Hi l ll E s s a y i s t , e d . H e l l m u t F e d e r h o f e r a n d K u r t O e h l (Regensburg: G u s t a v B o s s e , 1 9 7 7 ) , p. 163.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
185
G i b i m Kampf u n s s i i s s e R u h ’ Und i n Wonnen w a n d l e S c h m e r z e n . G e i s t des T r o s t e s , unverwandt Z e i g e u n s d e n Hi mmel o f f e n , R e t t ' u n s a u s d e s B o s e n Ha n d : Dur ch d a s H o f f e n . Deliver
Us f r o m t h e
E v i l One
O
Hol y l o v e , g l o w i n g h e a r t , Be w i l l i n g t o p e n e t r a t e t h e w h o l e w o r l d , So t h a t s o u l s e v e r y w h e r e Embrace t h e m s e l v e s , g l o w i n g w i t h l o v e . F a t h e r , who s e n t t h e S o n , T h a t a way o f s a l v a t i o n c o n t i n u e s f o r u s , Save us f r om t h e hand of t h e e v i l one Through l o v e . Mo r e h o l y f a i t h , i m a g e o f t h e c r o s s , Lead us f i r m l y t h r o u g h l i f e ' s s t o r m s , A l t h o u g h a l s o t h r e a t e n i n g l y and w i l d l y Wave u p o n wa v e p i l e s h i g h . S o n , t h r o u g h whom we p e r c e i v e d God, L e t u s n o t be d e p r i v e d o f t h i s r e f u g e , Save us from t h e hand of t h e e v i l one Through f a i t h . H o l y h o p e , yo u a n c h o r , S e t t l e deep in t he h e a r t , Gi v e us s w e e t r e s t i n t h e b a t t l e And c h a n g e p a i n i n t o d e l i g h t . S p i r i t of c o n s o l a t i o n , u n s w e r v i n g l y Show u s t h e o p e n h e a v e n , Save us f r om t h e hand of t h e e v i l one Through hope. Theological in
prayer,
sent
the
is
Father,
Son s o t h a t
summary. Son, through
God,
who c a n
and S p i r i t . divine
be a d d r e s s e d
As F a t h e r
he h a s
love in d iv id u a ls
might
O E n g l i s h t r a n s l a t i o n s by Mr s . B. S h a p l e i g h w h i c h ma y b e u s e d f o r t h e p e r f o r m a n c e o f e a c h o f t h e s o n g s o f t h i s c y c l e may be f o u n d i n J ^ P e t e r C o r n e l i u s ] ] , M u s i k a l i s c h e We r k e , v o l . 1, ed. Max H a s s e ( L e i p z i g : Breitkopf & H a r t e l , 1 9 0 5 - 1 9 0 6 ) , pp. 3 4 - 6 0 .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
186
find
salvation
Jesus, from the
deliverance
he h a s r e v e a l e d
the
evil
cross
ated
and
one,
where
by t h e
Satan.
Jesus
of hope
of
the
the
Devil
is
threateningly
ance,
and
battles the
from hope. Christ. by
of
Rom antic
thus
active.
can
bespeaks
theology
spiritual be f o u n d
such
as
looks
offers
saving
the
present
them from
in a world the
where
resultant
faith's
guid
which
comes
relationship orthodoxy
that
to
appropri
their
rest
in
traditional
is
he
Amidst
Son
deliverance
of
People liv e
and
these
text
Spirit
believers
the
which
human b e i n g s n e e d l o v e ,
emotional
All
This
one.
As
deliverance
w i t h God,
power
and
evil
faith
Holy
by a s s u r i n g
the
storms
this
As t h e
relationship
evil.
and p r o v i d e d
Through
died,
believer.
consolation and f u t u r e
himself
from
with
tempered
espoused
by
Schleiermacher. Mu s i c a l this
lied^
melody
are
with
resulting
in
three
The
ninety-nine
strophes
of
varied
accompaniment
a
of
E-flat
in
a
harmonic
major
tonalities,
type
but
strophic
measures
almost for
identical
each
framework
which
also
particularly
variation
of
strophe,
The 1 o a n g u l a r m e l o d y h a s a c o m p a s s of one o c t a v e (e - f l a t t o e flat)
in
analysis.
which hints
D-flat
cadences at
form.
strongly
a variety
major.
^ Th e s c o r e of t h i s l i e d i s a v a i l a b l e j C o r n e l i u s J , W e r k e , v o l . 1, p p . 5 8 - 6 0 .
The
in
of o t h e r keyboard
for study in
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
187
accompaniment fe a tu re s f i r mu s i n like
the
chords,
octave
uppermost with
strophe
which
some i n t e r p r e t e r s
the
the
in
the
setting
is
basically
and
chorale sometimes
strophe.
descant
In
figures
the
occur
d e e m t o b e a k i n t o t h o s e u s e d by
"Lacrymosa"
of
syllabic
settings.
of t h e c a n t u s
pianist's
second
a p p o g g i a tu r a - 1ike
Mozart
known t o
of
displacement
during
final
are
notes
rhythmic
displacement
Other
twelve r e p e titio n s
his and
Req u i e m . ^ ^ without
No o t h e r
The
text-
repetition.
settings
of
this
text
be e x t a n t .
( Op. This
" Di e K o n i g e " 8 , No. 3; 1 8 7 0 )
song comes from th e
( Op . 8 )
which C o rn e liu s
1856 a t
Bernhardshiitte,
cycle
originally but
which
W eihnachtslieder
wrote
wa s
not
in
November
published
of
until
1870
with i t s f i r s t public performance the follow ing IO year. I n a l e t t e r t o h i s m o t h e r i n 1860 C o r n e l i u s
^Seeley,
"Cornelius,"
p.
90.
1 1The
d a t e 1870 r e f e r s to t h e t i m e a t w h ic h C o r n e l i u s c o m p l e t e d h i s f i n a l r e v i s i o n of t h i s song and a r r i v e d a t t h e f o r m i n w h i c h t h e s o n g was f i r s t p u b l i s h e d . T h i s f i n a l v e r s i o n w a s p r e c e d e d by t w o o t h e r s , o n e f r o m t h e y e a r 1856 and a n o t h e r f r o m 1859. Similar revisions w e r e m a d e i n " D i e H i r t e n " ( Op . 8 , No. 2) o v e r t h e s a m e p e r i o d of t i me . 1 ? Max H a s s e ,
We r k e , v o l . p. I X.
ed., P e t e r C o r n e l i u s : M usikalische 1 (Leipzig: B reitkopf & H a rte l, 1905-1906),
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
188
described and
proper
family they
these
life
settings
with
their
of h i s
roots
in
and i n an u n s t u d i e d
communicated
their
o wn p o e m s a s the
beauties
piety.
contents
thoughtful of
German
He b e l i e v e d
from
one
heart
that to
a n o t h e r . 1^
Die Koni ge Dr ei Kon'ge wandern aus Morgenland, E i n S t e r n l e i n f i i h r t s i e zum J o r d e n s t r a n d . I n J u d a f r a g e n un d f o r s c h e n d i e D r e i , Wo d e r n e u g e b o r e n e K o n i g s e i ? S i e w o l l e n W e i h r a u c h , M y r r h e n u n d Go l d Dem K i n d e s p e n d e n zum O p f e r s o l d . Und h e l l e r g l a n z e t d e s S t e r n e s S c h e i n ; Zum S t a l l e g e h e n d i e K o n ' g e e i n ; Das K n a b l e i n s c h a u e n s i e w o n n i g l i c h , Anbetend n ei g en d i e Kon'ge s i c h ; S i e b r i n g e n W e i h r a u c h , M y r r h e n und Go l d Zum O p f e r d a r dem K n a b l e i n h o l d . 0 Menschenkind! h a l te t r e u l i c h S c h r i t t ! Di e K o n ' g e w a n d e r n , 0 w a n d ' r e m i t ! De r S t e r n d e r L i e b e , d e r Gn a d e S t e r n E r h e l l e d e i n Z i e l , s o du s u c h s t d e n H e r r n , Und f e h l e n W e i h r a u c h , M y r r h e n u nd G o l d , S c h e n k e d e i n H e r z dem K n a b l e i n h o l d ! Schenk'
i hm d e i n
Herz!
( P e t e r C o r n e l i u s ] , L i t e r a r i s c h e W e r k e , v o l . 1, ed. C a r l M ar ia C o r n e l i u s ( L e i p z i g : Breitlcopf & H artel, 1904), p . 441.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
189
Th e K i n g s ^ Three k i n g s t r a v e l from t h e E a s t ; A l i t t l e s t a r l e a d s them t o t h e s h o r e of Jordan. In J u d a h t h e t h r e e q u e s t i o n and s e a r c h , Wh e r e m i g h t t h e n e w b o r n k i n g b e ? Th e y w a n t f r a n k i n c e n s e , m y r r h a n d g o l d To g i v e t o t h e c h i l d a s o f f e r i n g .
the
And c l e a r l y s h i n e s t h e l i g h t o f t h e s t a r ; The k i n g s e n t e r t h e s t a l l ; The d e a r c h i l d l o o k s a t t h e m b l i s s f u l l y , W o r s h i p p i n g , t h e k i n g s bow; Th e y o f f e r f r a n k i n c e n s e , m y r r h a n d g o l d For t h e o f f e r i n g t o t h e l o v e l y l i t t l e boy. 0 human c h i l d ! f a i t h f u l l y k e e p s t e p ! The k i n g s a r e t r a v e l i n g , o h t r a v e l w i t h t h e m! The s t a r o f l o v e , t h e s t a r o f g r a c e I l l u m i n a t e s y o u r g o a l , t h e r e f o r e you s e e k t h e Lord, And l a c k i n g f r a n k i n c e n s e , m y r r h a n d g o l d , G i v e y o u r h e a r t t o t h e l o v e l y l i t t l e b oy ! Gi v e him y o u r Theological born
in a s t a l l
and
loved.
give
their
God's lives. with
entire
the
This ideas
summary.
in Judah.
People
control,
heart!
are
He i s
t o be l e d
selves
can
Jesus
to
direct
text
voices
of
Pietism.
h i m.
to
the
Lord
be s o u g h t ,
by h i s
traditional
king
wa s
worshipped,
l o v e and g r a c e
Th e c r e a t e d
individuals
and
to
order,
under
throughout
their
orthodoxy
coupled
A n o t h e r E n g l i s h t r a n s l a t i o n ma y be f o u n d i n D ietrich Fischer-Dieskau, Th e F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u Book o f L i e d e r , t r . G e o r g e B i r d a n d R i c h a r d S t o k e s ( Ne w Y o r k : L i m e l i g h t E d i t i o n s , 1 9 8 4 ) , pp. 3 9 6 - 3 9 7 . A t r a n s l a t i o n by Mr s . B. S h a p l e i g h f o r u s e i n p e r f o r m a n c e i s t o be f o u n d i n t h e s c o r e i n [ " C o r n e l i u s ! , M u s i k a l i s c h e We r k e , v o l . 1, pp 136-137. J
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
190
Musical ures
hold
totally in
an
t wo
analysis. virtually
new s e t t i n g AAB f o r m .
spans
of The
a perfect
This
song's
identical the
third
melody,
eleventh
strophes
poetic with
(b t o e
i n t h e key of G m a j o r
subtly
E minor
paniment
consists
Philipp
Nicolai
which i s
readily
where C ornelius text-setting is
no
text
is
in
the
of a v i r t u a l l y (1556-1608) identifiable alters
th e song has i t s
but
until
fleetingly
section.
homophonic
chorale
WIE the
syllabic, Cornelius
and
a
phrases,
and
The a c c o m
setting
of
the
SCHON LEUCHTET15
final
six
measures
the acc o m p anim enta1 melody.
primarily
repetition.
final
by
resulting
arched
) while
meas
followed
strophe,
its
harmonic center tonicizes
twenty-eight
technically
does,
however,
The there call
a t t e n t i o n to the c e n t r a l idea of the l a s t s tr o p h e with the addition your
of
words "Schenk'
ihm d e i n H er z! " (Give him
heart!) Other
this
the
text
is
settings. Cornelius'
The o n l y o t h e r first
version
of
known s e t t i n g this
of
song.^
■'■■’T h i s u s e o f t h e c h o r a l e a s a c a n t u s f i r m u s , s u g g e s t i v e of th e V a te r u n s e r c y c l e , w a s s u g g e s t e d by Liszt. S e e [ C o r n e l i u s J , L i t e r a r i s c h e W e r k e , v o l . 2, p . 640, f o r C o r n e l i u s ' r e p o r t of t h i s f a c t i n a l e t t e r t o Carl Riedel. 1 zr
The s c o r e o f t h e o r i g i n a l s e t t i n g i s a v a i l a b l e f o r s t u d y i n { C o r n e l i u s ^ , Mu s i k a l i s c h e We r l c e , v o l . 1, p p . 134-135. T h a t 1856 v e r s i o n was s t r i c t l y s t r o p h i c and f e a t u r e d a n a n g u l a r m e l o d y a c c o m p a n i e d by an a r p e g g i a t e d t r e b l e p a r t above a c h o r d a l , m a r c h - l i k e ba s s l i n e f o r the pianist.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Chapter
20
CARL REINECKE (1824-1910) Following education
under
the completion
the
tutelage
(1795-1883),
Reinecke
1859 t o u r i n g
Europe
C o l o g n e and s e r v i n g
as
B a r me n a n d B r e s l a u . taught
at
Gewandhaus
the
the
1 8 60 h e
in
as
1895.
works
for
well
mo v e d
J.P.
as
to
1845
in
and c o n d u c t o r
in
Leipzig
where
1902 and c o n d u c t e d As
the
a
composed
secular which lieder their
orchestral
choral
consist
works. of
composer
piano,
popularity
G e r ma n p e o p l e . ' * ’
a nd
operas,
Among h i s
songs
("Children's
works,
for
solo
Songs"), are
many o f
regarded
He w r o t e a t
least
as
he the
Reinecke
both as a s o lo
and
288 o p u s e s voice
and
teaching
i n s t r u m e n t and a s a member of a c h a m b e r e n s e m b l e , also
music
Reinecke
between
director
until
until
father,
years
a musical
conservatory
was m o s t p r o l i f i c
his
a pianist
In
Orchestra
of
spent
as
of a t h o r o u g h b a s i c
sacred
there
besides
b u t he
his
are
and ten
Kinder-
which have r e t a i n e d folksongs
fourteen
a mo n g
the
geistliche
-J
Reinhold S ie tz , "Reinecke, Johann P eter Rudolf, " D i e Mu s i k i n G e s c h i c h t e u n d G e g e n wa r t , v o l . 11, ed. F r i e d r i c h Blume ( K a s s e l and B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1963), pp. 1 8 7 - 1 9 2 . Also, R einhold S ie t z , "R einecke, Carl ( H e i n r i c h C a r s t e n ) , " The New G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f M u s i c a n d M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 15, e d . S t a n l e y S a d i e ( L o n d o n : Macmillan, 19 8 0 ) , pp. 7 1 8 - 7 1 9 . 191
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
192
lieder, Two o f
several these
are
of
which a re
the
focus
included
of
the
in his
following
Kinderlieder. discussion.
"Weihnachtslied" The t e x t
of
this
song c o n s i s t s
s t r o p h e s of th e seven s t r o p h e s song,
"Engellied
zu
of th e
of
the
first
four
S o u th German f o l k -
Weihnachten.
Weihnachtslied Ihr Seid Di e Vom Di e Der
Hirten erwacht, munter un d l a c h t , Engel s i c h schwingen Hi mme l un d s i n g e n : Freude i s t nah, H e i l a n d i s t da!
Ihr Hirten geschwind, Kommt , s i n g e t dem K i n d , Blast in die Schalmeien, S e i n H e r z zu e r f r e u e n , Auf s u c h e t i m F e l d Den H e i l a n d d e r W e l t . S i e h o r t e n d a s Wor t Und e i l t e n s c h o n f o r t , S i e ka me n i n H a u f e n Im E i f e r g e l a u f e n , Und f a n d e n d a a l l ' Den H e i l a n d im S t a l l . Sie Das Sie Und Und Di e
lcannten ges chwi nd h i m m l i s c h e Kind, fielen darnieder s a n g e n i hm L i e d e r , bleiben dabei P f e i f und S c h a l m e i .
For t h e c o m p l e t e t e x t of t h e poem, s e e A n d r e a s K r e t z s c h m a r a n d A n t o n W i l h e l m von Z u c c a l m a g l i o , D e u t s c h e V o l k s l i e d e r mi t i h r e n O r i g i n a l - W e i s e n , vol. 2 (1840; r p t . Hildesheim: G e o r g 0 1 m s , 1 9 6 9 ) , pp. 2 6 6 - 2 6 7 .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
193
Christmas
Song
You s h e p h e r d s a w a k e , Be m e r r y a n d l a u g h , Th e a n g e l s v a u l t Fr o m h e a v e n a n d s i n g : Joy i s n e a r , The S a v i o r i s h e r e ! You s h e p h e r d s q u i c k l y , Come, s i n g t o t h e c h i l d , P l a y t h e s ha wm, To g l a d d e n h i s h e a r t , Up, s e e k i n t h e f i e l d Th e S a v i o r o f t h e w o r l d . Th e y h e a r d t h e wo r d And h a s t e n e d f o r t h i n d e e d , Th e y c a me i n h e a p s Ran i n e a g e r n e s s , And a l l f o u n d there The S a v i o r i n the s tab le. Th e y q u i c k l y kn e w The h e a v e n l y c h i l d , Th e y f e l l down t h e r e And s a n g s o n g s t o h i m, And p l a y e d t h e r e b y Th e p i p e a n d s hawm. Theological
s u mm a r y .
world,
was bo rn i n a s t a b l e .
whence
the
in
music
the
angels of
coming of J e s u s who o f f e r s proclaim
c a me those
is
wh o
a source
to
worship
20,
expresses
arrival
his
adore of
joy.
Savior
origin
birth.
him.
For
to l i s t e n
traditional analysis.
the
He r e j o i c e s people,
to
t e x t , b a s e d on
the
the
one
those
who
and s e e k himw i t h e a g e r h a s t e This
of
in heaven
B e c a u s e he i s
they are
and s e r v e h i m.
Musical
the
He h a d h i s
to announce
them s a l v a t i o n , his
Jesus,
so
as
Luke 2 : 8 -
orthodoxy. The
forty-two
measures
of
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
this
194
song
O
consist
The
spritely,
one
octave
of
(c ^ to
and
right-hand
song.
the
voice, thirds,
pianist
In the supplies
while
the
filigree
The t e x t - s e t t i n g Other kn o wn t o
is
key
the
of
the
right
suggestive and
or
plays of
the
the
left
a
hand
for
quick,
playing
is
remain
support
a
the
accom-
paralleling
without
No o t h e r
there
the
t wo
in
altered
throughout
harmonic
hand
syllabic
thirds
two s t r o p h e s
it
The p i a n o
strophe an
spans
the f i r s t
in
introduces
last
in
form.
used^
C major.
melody
continues
strophic
Reinecke
second
doubling
settings.
the
it
in
running, of
a flute.
repetition.
settings
of
this
text
be e x t a n t . " De r
The
which
the
which
which
periodically
monophonic
are
doubles
interlude
der of
the
Following
texture
the
mel ody
c ^) in
often
panimental of
in modified
homophonically conceived
part.
four-measure
strophes
folksong
accompaniment is strophes
four
poet
served
as
private
tutor
of
liebe
this
aP rotestant and
later
Gott
text,
im H i mm e l "
Wilhelm
p a s to r in
He y
(1789-1854),
addition
a school a d m i n i s t r a t o r .
to
being He
a
wrote
^ T h i s s o n g i s t h e s e v e n t e e n t h i n C a r l R e i n e c k e 1s K i n d e r l i e d e r , Neue G e s a m t a u s g a b e ( L e i p z i g : Breitlcopf & H a r t e l , 1 8 9 9 - 1 9 0 9 ) , pp. 20-21, which is a v a i l a b l e for study in Washington, D.C., a t the Li b r a r y of Congress. ^ Th e o r i g i n a l f o l k s o n g m e l o d y c a n be f o u n d K r e t z s c h m a r and Z u c c a l m a g l i o , V o l k s l i e d e r , p . 266.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
in
195
several it
p o e ms
wa s h i s
for
both
a general
t wo v o l u m e s
(1833,
and
a collection
of
religious
which Reinecke s e l e c t e d
Der l i e b e
Gott
religious
1837) of
w h i c h he was m o s t w i d e l y known.
appended from
of
this
fables
nature, for
but
children
To t h e s e v o l u m e s h e poems
for
children^
text.
im Hi mmel
Aus dem Hi mmel f e r n e Wo d i e E n g ' l e i n s i n d , S c h a u t doch G o t t so g e r n e Her a u f j e d e s K i n d , Horet sei ne B i t t e T r e u b e i Tag u n d N a c h t , Nimmt' s b i e jedem S c h r i t t e V a t e r l i c h in Acht. G i e b t mit V a t e r h a n d e n Ihm s e i n t a g l i c h B r o d , H i l f t an a l i e n En d e n Ihm a u s a l l e r N o t h , S a g t den K i n d e r n a l i e n , Da s s e i n V a t e r i s t , Dem s i e wo h l g e f a l l e n , De r s i e n i e v e r g i s s t . D e a r God i n He a v e n Ou t o f h e a v e n a f a r Wh e r e t h e l i t t l e a n g e l s a r e , God y e t l o o k s s o g l a d l y H e r e on e a c h c h i l d , Hears t h e i r r e q u e s t s F a i t h f u l l y by d a y a n d n i g h t , Takes c a r e of them w i t h e a c h Like a f a t h e r .
step
Gives wi t h hands of a f a t h e r To t h e m t h e i r d a i l y b r e a d , F inally helps
^ A d a l b e r t E1 s c h e n b r o i c h , "Hey, W i l h e l m , " We ue deutsche B io g ra p h ie , vol. 9 (B erlin : D u n c k e r & Hum b l o t , 1971), p p . 62-63.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
196
Them o u t o f a l l n e e d , T e lls a l l the c h ild re n , That t h e r e i s a f a t h e r , To whom t h e y a r e w e l l - p l e a s i n g , Who n e v e r f o r g e t s t h e m . Theological looks
down
each
one,
giving
provision, He
tells
they of
on e a c h
which they This
in
is
dwells
and
that
his
he
sight. in
in
fatherlike
is
to each their
but
cares
for
of
b oy a n d
have
t o God,
representative
protection,
father
Children
prayer
heaven
He g l a d l y
and a t t e n t i o n
can speak text
God
child.
unfailing
children
pleasing
father.
earthly
assistance, the
are
s u mm a r y .
girl.
and
that
many
their
needs
heavenly
traditional
ortho
doxy and P i e t i s m . Musical measures scalar
in
mel ody
major.
The
throughout, chorale-like strictly
strict
known t o
This
strophic
song
piano
accompaniment
homophonic
The
texture.
The
in
sixteen
key of G
the
voice
sixths,
in
text-setting
any r e p e t i t i o n
No o t h e r
the
doubles it
of
predominantly
7 d ) in
to
paralleling
and w i t h o u t
settings.
(d
1
one o c t a v e
sometimes
consists
form.
covers
syllabic Other
are
analysis.
settings
of
text.
of
this
a is
text
be e x t a n t .
^This song i s th e e i g h t e e n t h in C arl R e i n e c k e 's K i n d e r l i e d e r , p. 2 2 , w h i c h i s a v a i l a b l e f o r s t u d y a t t h e L i b r a r y o f C o n g r e s s i n W a s h i n g t o n , D.C.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Chapter
21
JOHANNES BRAHMS (1833-1897) The c o m p o s i t i o n a l original
solo
songs
ments
of f o l k s o n g s
ment.
At
have
least
religious
output
of
Brahms
a n d an a d d i t i o n a l for
solo
fourteen texts.
of
voice
the
Two o f
ninety-five
with
total these
includes
arrange
piano accompani
number^ are
1 96
of
his
considered
songs
below.
" Di e h e i l i g e E l i s a b e t h " ( 1858) The German f o l k s o n g , ideal In
song
1858
form,
Brahms
Kinderlieder Robert
and
favorite
folksong
Volkslieder with
Their
played
a large
set
collection
a
("Children's
Clara
mi t
which Brahms h eld
As h i s
collection,
Original
in
the
t wo
musical
fourteen
for
source
Original-Weisen
Melodies")
his
of
Folksongs")
Schuma nn.
ihren
part
t o be t h e
the
of
( " Ger man
2
Volks-
children
Brahms
volumes
life.
used
of his
Deutsche Folksongs
by A n d r e a s K r e t z s c h m e r
and
• ' • Hei nz B e c k e r , " B r a h m s , J o h a n n e s , " T h e N e w G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f Mu s i c a n d M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 3, e d . S t a n l e y S a d i e (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , pp. 1 5 5 - 1 9 0 .
Philips
2W alter Niemann, ( New Y o r k : Alfred
Brahms, tr. C atherine Alison A. K n o p f , 1 9 2 9 ) , p p . 3 5 9 - 3 6 0 .
197
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
198
Anton
Zucca1mag1i o ,
Earlier
in
twenty-eight heilige
other
Brahms
entitled
published
Di e h e i l i g e
in
had
had
folksongs
Elisabeth"
collection first
1858
which
is
the
been
also from
published arranged
this
seventh
2J3 d e u t s c h e
s ame in
a
in
1840.
group
source. that
Volkslieder
O
of " Di e
earlier which
was
1926.
Elisabeth
Die h e i l i g e E l i s a b e t h An i h r e m H o c h z e i t s f e s t e , Verliefi den s t o l z e n F i i r s t e n s a a l , Verlie/3 h e i m l i c h d i e G a s t e , G i n g i n d e n d u n k e l n Wal d h i n a u s , Wo e i n e h e i l ' g e K a p e l l e r b a u t , De r M u t t e r G o t t e s zu d i e n e n ! 0 Mutter G o tte s, welches Leid, I c h mu s s j e t z t v o n d i r s c h e i d e n ! D i e l e t z t e n B l u me n b r i n g i c h h e u t e , F o r t mu s s i c h , i c h mu s s m e i d e n J e t z t deinen h e ilg e n Gnadenort, Mus s w e i t h i n i n d i e F r e m d e f o r t . Ade du H e i l a n d s m u t t e r ! Du B i l d , s o h e i l i g , g n a d e n r e i c h , Me i n Aug s t e h t v o l l e r Z a h r e n , D a s s i c h j e t z u n d d i c h r i i c h t i nehr s c h a u , Das w i l l m i c h s c h i e r v e r z e h r e n ; Le b w o h l , l e b w o h l , du M u t t e r m e i n , Mi t de i n e m l i e b e n K i n d e l e i n ! Ad e , z u t a u s e n d m a l e n ! Sie b e t e t , f l e h e t also lang Und v / i l l d a r o b n i c h t b e b e n ,
^ Ma x F r i e d l a e n d e r , B r a h ms ’ s L i e d e r : A_n I n t r o d u c t i o n t o t h e S o n g s f o r On e a n d X YL2. V o i c e s , t r . C. L e o n a r d L e e s e ( 1 9 2 8 ; r p t . New Y o r k : AMS P r e s s , 1 9 7 6 ) , p p . 1 9 2 194, 2 0 0 - 2 1 0 . F r i e d l a e n d e r g i v e s an e x t e n s i v e d i s c u s s i o n of t h i s f o l k s o n g c o l l e c t i o n and d i s c u s s e s B ra h m s' use of i t i n c o n j u n c t i o n w i t h h i s t r e a t m e n t o f B r a h m s ' _49 d e u t s c h e V o l k s l i e d e r of 1894.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
DaB s i c h e i n s c h a r f e s b l a n k e s S c h w e r t J e t z t iiber i h r e r h e b e t ; I n r e i n e r Gn a d e s c h w e b t i h r B l i c k , Und a c h t e t n i c h t d e s R a u b e r s T u c k , De r s i e da w i l l e r m o r d e n ! Als der Rauber d i e s e n B l i c k vernahm, Und s c h a u t d i e h e i l g e F r a u e n , S c h w e r e Re u e i h n da i i b e r k a m, S e i n H e r z b e g i n n t zu g r a u e n . L e g t ab s e i n S c h w e r t und s e i n e n S p i e B , Auf s e i n e K n i e s i c h n i e d e r l i e f i , Wagt d a n n s i e a n z u b l i c k e n . Um d i c h s i n d G o t t e s E n g e l r i n g s , Den L o c k e n s c h m u c k zu s c h i i t z e n , I c h muB me i n L e b e n l a n g d i e s K n i e 0 F ra u e, vor d i r beugen, 0 T u g e n d r e i c h e , b e t f u r mi ch, DaB G o t t d e r H e r r e r b a r m e t s i c h Und mi c h i n Gn a d e n s e g n e t . Saint
Elisabeth Saint Elisabeth At h e r w e d d i n g c e l e b r a t i o n Left the s t a t e l y p r i n c e 's h a l l, Left s e c r e t ly the guests, Wa l k e d o u t i n t o t h e d a r k f o r e s t , Wh e r e was b u i l t a h o l y c h a p e l , To s e r v e t h e m o t h e r o f God! 0 m o t h e r o f God, w h a t s o r r o w , 1 mu s t now l e a v e y o u ! I bring today the l a s t flowers, I m u s t be o f f , I m u s t f l e e Now f r o m y o u r h o l y p l a c e o f p i l g r i m a g e , Mu s t be f a r o f f i n t h e d i s t a n c e . F a r e w e l l , you m o t h e r o f t h e S a v i o r ! You i m a g e , s o h o l y , r i c h i n g r a c e , My e y e s t a n d s f u l l o f t e a r s , T h a t I now s e e y ou no m o r e , Wh i c h w i l l a l m o s t c o n s u me me; F a r e w e l l , f a r e w e l l , yo u m o t h e r o f m i n e , Wi t h y o u r d e a r l i t t l e c h i l d ! Farew ell, a thousand times. Sh e p r a y s , t h u s i n t e r c e d e s f o r And w i l l n o t t r e m b l e b e c a u s e A s h a r p s h i n i n g s wo r d
a long
time,
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
200
Now r i s e s a b o v e h e r ; In pure grace her v i s i o n s o a r s And p a y s no a t t e n t i o n t o t h e r o b b e r ' s Who w a n t s t o m u r d e r h e r t h e r e .
malice,
When t h e r o b b e r p e r c e i v e d t h i s v i e w And s a w t h e h o l y woman, S e r i o u s r e p e n t a n c e o v e r c a me him t h e r e , His h e a r t b e g i n s to s h u d d e r . He l a y s down h i s s w o r d a n d h i s m o r t a r , S e t t l e s on h i s k n e e , Then d a r e s t o l o o k h e r i n t h e f a c e . The a n g e l s o f God a r e r o u n d a b o u t y o u , To g u a r d t h e h a i r d e c o r a t i o n s , A l l my l i f e I mu s t b e n d t h i s k n e e , 0 l a d y , b e f o r e you, 0 r i c h l y v i r t u o u s o n e , p r a y f o r me, T h a t God t h e L o r d w i l l h a v e p i t y And b l e s s me i n g r a c e . Theological addressed
in
repentant The Go d .
prayer.
sinner
Virgin
parental
the
wh o
is
figure
for
in a world
filled
dangerous
events.
one's
highest
He i s
through
Mary,
She,
s u mma r y .
with
grace.
mother
the
and
one
t h e L o r d who c a n be
m erciful
his
holy
God i s
of
and
will
Jesus
is
Jesus,
full
of
is
priority
the
these
becomes a s o u r c e of g r a c e and p r o t e c t i o n
for
the
part
an
of
those
expression
repentance who b e h o l d
of
traditional
Musi c a l
ana ly s is .
and a p l e a
for
Roman C a t h o l i c six
People
a
live
as with
Mar y the
which devotee
intercession
such a d o r a t i o n .
The
becomes
of
circumstances of
which evokes
the
Savior.
as w e ll
worship
and
is
of
the
mother
grace,
who w o r s h i p s h e r .
midst
the
the
joyous c e l e b r a t i o n s
In
bless
This
text
on is
orthodoxy.
strophes
of
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
this
201
strophic
song^ f i l l
minor
the
sharp
to
scalar e^).
moving
low
eighty-four
melody
The bass
sixteenth-note
has
piano
a range
of
beneath
of
broken
In the
a minor
accompaniment
octaves
patterns
measures.
key of A
tenth
features
(c^-
steadily-
continuously-moving
chords
which
sometimes
p a r a l l e l t h e m e l o d y a t t h e i n t e r v a l o f e i t h e r an o c t a v e or a
sixth.
without
The
text-setting
strictly
syllabic
and
repetition. Other
are
is
known t o
settings.
No o t h e r
settings
of
this
text
be e x t a n t . " Wenn i c h m i t M e n s c h e n - und Engelszungen r e d e t e " ( Op. 1 2 1 . No. 4; 1 6 9 6 )
The texts
as
the
including 45,
religiously basis
open-minded
for
a
Ein d e u t s c h e s
1857-1868)
1870-1871),
and
but
Gesange
("Four
texts.^
The
Triumphlied
Serious two
of
his
used
biblical
choral
works,
R e q u i e m ( "A G e r m a n R e q u i e m ; " Op. ("Song
of
solo
songs
only
Songs,"
Op.
121)
have
scriptural
of
this
opus
come
a mo n g h i s
first
number
Brahms
texts
T r i u m p h ; ” Op. the
Vier
55,
ernste
from
^The s c o r e of t h i s song i s a v a i l a b l e f o r s t u d y in J o h a n n e s B r a h m s s a mt l i c h e We r k e , v o l . 2 6 , e d . E u s e b i u s M a n d y c z e w s k i ( 1 9 2 6 - 1 9 2 7 ; r p t . Ann A r b o r : J . W. E d w a r d s , 1 9 4 9 ) , p. 194. ^ S e e M i c h a e l M u s g r a v e , "The c u l t u r a l w o r l d o f Brahms," in Brahms: b i o g r a p h i c a l , d o c u men tar y and a n a l y t i c a l s t u d i e s , ed. R o b e r t P a s c a l 1 ( C a m b r i d g e : Cambridge
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
202
Ecclesiastes, ticus, 13:
the
third
and t h e f o u r t h
1-3,
from
the
apocryphal
Ecclesias-
f r o m L u t h e r ’s t r a n s l a t i o n
of 1 Cor.
12-13.
Wenn i c h m i t M e n s c h e n - und Engelszungen r e d e t e Wenn i c h m i t M e n s c h e n - und E n g e l s z u n g e n r e d e t e , und h a t t e d e r L i e b e n i c h t , s o wa r i c h e i n t o n e n d E r z oder e in e lclingende S c h e l l e . Und wenn i c h w e i s s a g e n k o n n t e und w i i s s t e a l l e G e h e i m n i s s e und a l l e E r k e n n t n i s und h a t t e a l i e n G l a u b e n , a l s o , daE i c h B e r g e v e r s e t z t e und h a t t e d e r L i e b e n i c h t , so ware i c h n i c h t s . Und wenn i c h a l l e m e i n e Habe d e n Ar men g a be und l i e B e m e i n e n L e i b b r e n n e n und h a t t e d e r L i e b e n i c h t , so ware m i r ' s n i c h t n i i t z e . Wi r s e h e n j e t z t d u r c h e i n e n S p i e g e l i n e i n e m d un ke i n Worte, dann a b e r von A n g e s i c h t zu A n g e s i c h t e . J e t z t erkenne i c h ' s stiickweise, dann a b e r werd i c h ' s e r k e n n e n , g l e i c h wi e i c h e r l c e n n e t b i n . Nun a b e r b l e i b e t G l a u b e , H o f f n u n g , L i e b e , diese d r e i : aber die Liebe i s t die groBte unter ihnen.
University Press, 1983), pp. 5 - 6 , f o r a t r e a t m e n t of Brahms' r e l i g i o u s o r i e n t a t i o n . See a l s o , Ni emann, B r a h m s , pp. 1 8 2 - 1 8 3 , f o r a d i s c u s s i o n of B r a h m s ' r e l a t i o n s h i p t o the Bible.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
203
If
I Spoke w i t h Tongues Hen a n d A n g e l s
of
I f I spoke w i t h t o n g u e s o f men a n d a n g e l s , and d i d n o t h av e l o v e , t h u s I w o u l d be a r e s o u n d i n g b r a s s or a r i n g i n g b e l l . And i f I c o u l d p r o p h e s y a n d kne w a l l s e c r e t s a n d a l l k n o w l e d g e and had a l l f a i t h so t h a t I r e mo v e d m o u n t a i n s and d i d n o t h a v e l o v e , t h u s I w o u l d be n o t h i n g . And i f I g a v e a l l my p o s s e s s i o n s t o t h e p o o r a n d a l l o w e d my bo dy t o b u r n and d i d n o t ha ve l o v e , t h u s i t w o u l d g a i n me n o t h i n g . We s e e now t h r o u g h a m i r r o r i n a d a r k w o r d , but then face to f a c e . Now I u n d e r s t a n d i t p i e c e m e a l , but t he n I w i l l u n d e r s t a n d i t j u s t a s I am now u n d e r s t o o d . S u t now r e m a i n f a i t h , h o p e , l o v e , t h e s e t h r e e : b u t l o v e i s t h e g r e a t e s t among t h e m .
Theological known
through
fully
seen
and
of a p e r s o n ' s worthless
love
endure,
the
voice
word
known
in by
God,
is other
the
believer.
to
the
by a n d
being
theology
of
only will
abilities,
greatest
two
is
present,
motivated the
who
the
accomplishments,
unless
because
gives
his
summary.
partially one
The
those
faith
and
by
qualities hope.
traditional
be
greatest
or s a c r i f i c e s
accompanied
of
day
is
love, which
This
text
orthodoxy.
^Another E n g l i s h t r a n s l a t i o n of t h i s t e x t i s a v a i l a b l e i n D i e t r i c h F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u , The F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u Book o f L i e d e r , t r . G e o r g e B i r d a n d R i c h a r d S t o k e s ( Ne w Y o r k : L i m e l i g h t E d i t i o n s , 1 9 8 4 ) , p. 38 8 , a s w e l l a s i n Brahms , 7 0 S o n g s , e d . S e r g i u s K a g e n ( Ne w Y o r k : International h u s i c C o . , n . d . ) , p. X I I .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
204
Musical this
song^
brief
are
song.
begins
line
The
piano
degree
of
the
of
song
the
accompaniment coupled
like
the
of r h y t h m i c
echoing
with
the
repetition
at
midst
is
melody. based
on
which
and
in
C
conclusion
the
texture,
which
approach each
of
has
an
incorpois
aria
with
the
or
triplets
The t e x t - s e t t i n g
of
first
a high
section
triads
The
doubling
arpeggiated
and
returns
quoted.
style
second
basically-syllabic the
in
of
framework
is
chordal
chordal
lines.
the
major
and o c c a s i o n a l
octaves
of
a
a
B major,
melody
The
of
of
with
measures
a compass
to
a dense
activity,
form
of the second s e c t i o n
orchestral
with
measures
binary two
has
original
c o u n te r m e 1odic a
first
modulates
supporting
within
the
melody
major,
when
ninety-nine
t o g ■*■) i n a h a r m o n i c
accompaniment
section
rates
in
(A-flat
E -flat
of
angular
in E - f l a t
The
through-composed
return
vocal
fourteenth
to
in
melodic
opening the
analysis.
song's
text two
sections. Other are
known t o
settings.
No o t h e r
settings
of
this
text
be e x t a n t .
^ Th e s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g i s a v a i l a b l e f o r s t u d y i n J o h a n n e s Br a h ms s a m t l i c h e W e r k e , v o l . 2 6 , p p . 5 7 - 6 1 . ®F o r a m o r e d e t a i l e d h a r m o n i c a n d s t r u c t u r a l a n a l y s i s of t h i s s o n g , s e e A r n o l d Whi t t a l l , "The V i e r e r n s t e G e s a n g e Op. 1 2 1 : e n r i c h m e n t and u n i f o r m i t y " in B r a h m s , ed. P a s c a l l , pp. 2 0 1 - 2 0 4 .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Chapter
22
ALBERT BECKER (1834-1899) Becker's of
Berlin
tories dral
in
Although
he
during
the
prolific
nature.
In a d d i t i o n
in his choral solo
twenty-one
last
eight
a
wide
with
of which
two
the
cathe
his
life.
musical
media,
years of
conserva
of
forces,
work was done i n t h e
frequent wrote
keyboard
were
at
and o p e r a t i c
particularly to his
around the c i t y
directed
variety
chamber,
music Becker
voice
composition 1869 and
and s u c c e s s f u l
composition,
centered
in
for
orchestral,
choral
for
taught
beginning
he c omp o s e d
including most
which
seriatim choir
musical career
in
that
of
use of excess
a
settings
field
soloists
of eighty
of r e l i g i o u s
of
religious
vocal
accompaniment,
his
at
songs least
texts.^
^ Ad a m A d r i o , " B e c k e r , A l b e r t E r n s t A n t o n , " Die M u s i k i n G e s c h i c h t e und G e g e n w a r t , v o l . 1 5 , ed. F r i e d r i c h Bl u me ( K a s s e l a n d B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1973), pp. 593-595.
205
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
206
"W eihnachtslied" ( Op. 1 1 , No. 2 ) This
s ong was p u b l i s h e d
of t h r e e l i e d e r 11).^
The p o e t
as
by B e c k e r e n t i t l e d is
the
the
second
of a group
H e r z h i m m e l w a r t s ( Op .
otherwise-unknown Theodor
Kohler.^
Weihnachtslied Zu B e t h l e h e m i m K r i p p e l e i n Da l i e g t e i n l i e b e s K i n d , Das s o i l me i n F r e u d ' u n d K r o n e s e i n , B i s m i c h d e r Tod e i n s t f i n d ' t . Ei j a ! Ei j a ! B i s mi c h d e r Tod e i n s t f i n d ' t . Das K i n d e l e i n vom H i m m e l s z e l t , L i e g t d a a u f Heu u n d S t r o h , Und i s t d e r r e i c h e W e i h n a c h t s h e l d De r a l l e W e l t m a c h t f r o h .
^No d a t e o f p u b l i c a t i o n a p p e a r s on t h e s c o r e , b u t f r o m s t u d y i n g t h e l i s t o f w o r k s i n A d r i o , " B e c k e r , " pp. 593-594, i t a p p e a rs t h a t a l i k e l y d a te of c o m p o s itio n i s i n t h e m i d - 1 8 7 0 s o w i n g t o t h e f a c t t h a t B e c k e r ' s Opus 13, w h i c h c o n s i s t s o f f i v e s o l o s o n g s , was p u b l i s h e d i n 1877. ^Albert Sulzbach, n . d .) ,
Becker, pp. 4 - 5 .
Herz
h i m me l w a r t s
(Berlin:
W.
^ F r i e d r i c h N i p p o l d , Da s d e u t s c h e C h r i s t u s l i e d d e s neunzehnten Jahrhunderts (Leipzig: Ernst Wunderlich, 1903), pp. 64, 197, r e f e r r e d to t h r e e p o e t s surnamed K ohler w i t h o u t s p e c i f y i n g any g iv e n names. O n e , whom Nippold i d e n t i f i e d as hav i ng been a c t i v e be t we e n t h e y e a r s of 1858 and 1878, was a p a s t o r i n Q u e d l i n b u r g , B e c k e r ' s birthplace. T h e o t h e r t w o a u t h o r s m e n t i o n e d by N i p p o l d w e r e a S t u t t g a r t p a s t o r and h i s s o n , a p h y s i c i a n , whose c o m b i n e d p o e t i c o u t p u t e x c e e d e d 1500 r e l i g i o u s poems w h i c h o f t e n t r e a t e d of c o n s o l a t i o n amid d i f f i c u l t or u n p l e a s a n t circumstances. I t i s te m p tin g to t h i n k t h a t the au th o r w h o s e w o r k wa s c h o s e n by B e c k e r f o r t h i s s o n g wa s t h e man who s e r v e d a s a p a s t o r i n Q u e d l i n b u r g , b u t s u c h a c o n c l u sion remains unproven.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
207
Ei j a ! Ei j a ! Der a l l e We l t m a c h t f r o h . Mi t s e i n e n H a n d ' l e i n k l e i n u n d f e i n B e z w i n g t e s H o l l und Tod, R e g i e r e t S o n n ' u nd S t e r n e n s c h e i n , Mi t s e i n e m Mi i n d l e i n r o t h . Ei j a ! Ei j a ! Mi t s e i n e m M i i n d l e i n r o t h . De r E n g e l S a n g u nd H i m m e l s l u s t U mt o n t s e i n r a u h e s B e t t , Doch i n d e r a r m e n S i i n d e r b r u s t Sucht es d ie R u h e s t a t t ' . Ei j a ! Ei j a ! Sucht es d ie R u h e s t a t t * . Und w e r d a s H i m m e l s k i n d e l e i n F e i n g l a u b i g n i mmt a n ' s H e r z , Dem l e u c h t e t G n a d ' u n d F r i e d e n s s c h e i n , Dem s c h w i n d e t j e d e r S c h m e r z . Ei j a ! Ei j a ! Dem s c h w i n d e t j e d e r S c h m e r z . Drum s o i l i m r a u h e n K r i p p e l e i n Das l i e b e h e i l ' g e Ki n d Auch m e i n e s L e b e n s K r o n e s e i n B i s m i c h d e r Tod e i n s t f i n d ' t . Ei j a ! Ei j a ! B i s m i c h d e r Tod e i n s t f i n d ' t .
Christmas
So n g
I n B e t h l e h e m i n a l i t t l e ma nger There l i e s a dear c h i l d Who s h o u l d be my j o y a n d c r o w n U n t i l d e a t h o n e d a y f i n d s me. Ah, y e s ! Ah, y e s ! U n t i l d e a t h o n e d a y f i n d s me. The l i t t l e c h i l d f r o m h e a v e n ' s t e n t L i e s t h e r e on h a y a n d s t r a w And i s t h e r i c h C h r i s t m a s h e r o Who m a k e s t h e w h o l e w o r l d g l a d . Ah, y e s ! Ah, y e s ! Who m a k e s t h e w h o l e w o r l d g l a d . Wi t h h i s d e a r h a n d s t i n y a n d d e l i c a t e He c o n q u e r s h e l l a n d d e a t h , Rules s u n - and s t a r s h i n e , Wi t h h i s l i t t l e r e d m o u t h .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
208
Ah, y e s ! Wi t h h i s
Ah, y e s ! l i t t l e r e d mouth.
The a n g e l s ’ s o n g a n d h e a v e n ' s j o y Resounds ar o u n d h i s rude bed, Yet i n t h e b r e a s t o f p o o r s i n n e r s He s e e k s a r e s t i n g p l a c e . Ah, y e s ! Ah, y e s ! He s e e k s a r e s t i n g p l a c e . And w h o e v e r t h e d e l i c a t e l i t t l e h e a v e n l y c h i l d Devoutly ta k e s i n t o the h e a r t , To h i m s h i n e g r a c e a n d t h e l i g h t o f p e a c e , For him e a c h p a i n d i s a p p e a r s . Ah, y e s ! Ah, y e s ! For him e a c h p a i n d i s a p p e a r s . T h e r e f o r e i n t h e r u d e l i t t l e ma nger The d e a r h o l y c h i l d S h o u l d a l s o be my l i f e ' s c r o w n U n t i l d e a t h o n e d a y f i n d s me. Ah, y e s ! Ah, y e s ! U n t i l d e a t h o n e d a y f i n d s me. Theological
summary.
Jesus
born in a manger
in Bethlehem.
size
he i s
rules
a s an i n f a n t the universe
word.
inhabit
the h e a rt
of
sinners
who f a c e
a certain
however,
the
personal
ideas
each
This
will
text
is
over
death
individual. death.
find
of h is
His u l t i m a t e
o n e wh o m a k e s J e s u s
possession
gladness.
In s p i t e
victorious
by h i s
c a me f r o m h e a v e n t o be physical
and h e l l desire
People
is
are
l i f e ’s
his
most
grace,
peace,
expressive
of
the
to
needy
Throughout or her
and
pain,
valued
comfort,
and
theological
of P i e t i s m . Mus i c a l
Stanford
a n a l y s i s.
This
song's^
^The s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g i s a v a i l a b l e U n iv ersity in Palo Alto, C a l i f o r n i a .
seventy-two
for
study at
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
209
measures
comprise
six
strophes
in s t r i c t
strophic
form.
The f o l k l i k e m e l o d y i n t h e key o f B - f l a t m a j o r h a s a r a n g e of
one
octave
chorale-like, homophonic without
( f^
f^).
doubling
the
texture.
The
piano
melody
The
text
accompaniment
throughout is
set
the
is
song i n
syllabically
a
and
repetition. Other
are
to
settings.
No o t h e r
settings
of
this
text
a phrase
from
known t o b e e x t a n t . " Du,
The t e x t Luther's written
Herr, b is t ( Op. 5 1 ,
of
this
translation
song,
which
of I s a ia h
entitled
G e h e i m n i s vom v e r l o r n e n und m i t
Parable
of
the
G eistliche
Lieder
in
No f u r t h e r
title,
Son.
and O f f e r e d
with
information
Placed
i n 1858
a n d Das an's
dargereicht on
the
a Supplement concerning
was
who p u b l i s h e d
S o h n e . Dem C h r i s t e n v o l k e
Prodigal
People
its
(1829-1891)
e i n e r Zugabe in L iedern
Christian 1888.
quotes
63:16 f o r
by G e o r g W i l h e l m S c h u l z e
a collection
gelegt
unser V a te r!" No. 4 )
him
Herz ("The
Heart
of
in Lieder") is
avail
able.
^No d a t e o f p u b l i c a t i o n a p p e a r s o n t h e s c o r e , b u t B e c k e r ' s 0 p p . 49 a n d 50 w e r e p u b l i s h e d i n 1887 a c c o r d i n g t o A d r i o , " B e c k e r , " pp. 5 9 3 - 5 9 4 , w hi ch makes a s i m i l a r d a t e l i k e l y f o r t h e p u b l i c a t i o n o f h i s Op u s 5 1 .
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Du,
Herr,
bist
unser
Vater!
Me i n V a t e r i s t r e i c h , u nd m e i n V a t e r i s t g u t , Da s m a c h t m i r s o f r o h l i c h , s o s e l i g d e n M u t h . Me i n V a t e r i s t R a t h e r , d e r H e r r a l l e r W e l t , De r K o n i g e H e r z e n i n H a n d e n e r h a l t . Me i n V a t e r i s t m a c h t i g , m e i n S c h i l d , m e i n e We h r , Er s e n d e t zum S c h u t z m i r s e i n h i m m l i s c h e s H e e r ; Er w a c h t un d h a t A c h t a u f s e i n b a n g e n d e s K i n d ; Im K r i e g e v i e l S i e g e m i t M a c h t e r g e w i n n t . Me i n V a t e r i s Fiir m i c h h i n Er l e i h t m i r Und h a l t m i r
t g n a d i g : e r g i e b t s e i n e n So h n i n S c h m e r z e n , i n S p o t t u n d i n Ho h n ; und w e i h t mi r e i n k o s t l i c h e s K l e i d , ein Zelt h ie r zur Zuflucht b e r e i t .
0 V a t e r v o l l Gnade, i c h l i e b ' d i c h a l l e i n , D i c h r u f ' i c h , d i c h s u c h ' i c h , d i c h e i n z i g i c h me i n N i c h t K r o n e n , n i c h t T h r o n e n s i n d , H e r r , me i n Be g e h r Mi r b a n g t , m i c h v e r l a n g t n u r n a c h d i r , o , s o s e h r ! Ob w i l d r a u s c h t d i e W e l l e , g a r h e l l e s t r a h l t Dein F r i e d e n h i e n i e d e n , d e i n L i e b e s p a n i e r ! Du z e i g e s t , du n e i g e s t d i c h h u l d v o l l m i r z u , 0 selig: me i n R a t h e r , m e i n V a t e r b i s t d u ! Yo u ,
Lord,
mi r
Ar e Our F a t h e r ! ^
My f a t h e r i s r i c h , a n d my f a t h e r i s g o o d , Wh i c h m a k e s me s o j o y f u l , my mood s o b l i s s f u l . My f a t h e r i s c o u n s e l l o r , t h e L o r d o f t h e whole wo rld, He h o l d s t h e h e a r t s o f t h e k i n g s i n h i s h a n d s . My f a t h e r i s m i g h t y , my s h i e l d , my d e f e n s e , He s e n d s h i s h e a v e n l y h o s t t o p r o t e c t me; He w a t c h e s a n d p a y s a t t e n t i o n t o h i s a n x i o u s child; I n t h e w a r f a r e h e w i n s many v i c t o r i e s w i t h m i g h t .
which is included A u s g e wa h Breitkopf
An E n g l i s h t r a n s l a t i o n b y J . A l f r e d P e n n i n g t o n d e s i g n e d t o be u s e d i n p u b l i c p e r f o r m a n c e i s in th e s c o re which a p p e a rs in A lb e rt Becker, l t e G e i s t l i c h e liije r_ u n d G e s_a_11£ e^ ( L e i p z i g : & H a r t e l , n . d . ) , pp. 27 - 34 .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
211
My f a t h e r i s g r a c i o u s : he g i v e s h i s son F o r me t h e r e i n p a i n , i n m o c k e r y a n d i n s c o r n ; He l e n d s me a n d o r d a i n s f o r me a c o s t l y r o b e And h o l d s i n r e a d i n e s s f o r me a t e n t h e r e f o r refuge. 0 f a t h e r f u l l o f g r a c e , I l o v e you a l o n e , To y o u I c a l l , f o r y ou I s e e k , I t h i n k o n l y of you, Not c r o w n s , n o t t h r o n e s a r e , L o r d , my d e s i r e 1 am a n x i o u s f o r , I l o n g o n l y f o r y o u , o h , s o muc h! A l t h o u g h t h e wa v e w i l d l y r o a r s , a b s o l u t e l y c l e a r l y s h i n e s f o r me Yo u r p e a c e h e r e b e l o w , y o u r b a n n e r o f l o v e ! You a p p e a r , y ou b e n d g r a c i o u s l y t o me, 0 blessed: my c o u n s e l l o r , my f a t h e r y o u a r e ! Theological earth,
controls
By m e a n s o f riches
he
manner, and
attends
peace.
place
for
relationship
with
prayer,
with
the
the
Musical
of
gift
death
world's
believers
of
wh o
is
ambition,
each b e l i e v e r of
and
protection,
provision,
his
the
son
Jesus
cross
be and is
in the
in
a
prepares
a
In s p i t e
which
joy
traditional
orientation
analysis.
counsel,
a fatherly
storms
to
entire
in
of
on
the
governments.
goodness,
may e x p e r i e n c e
God,
Lord o f
of God's c h i l d r e n .
full
theology
devotional
grace,
presence,
is
the
the
his
thought,
such a r e l a t i o n s h i p
of
needs
each
life
God,
the
ultim ate
individuals
expresses
love,
humiliating
that
anxiety,
human
them
heaven
fact
affairs
to
God's
and
in
the
power,
giving
painful
the
his
summary.
give
rise
of to
a parent-child sole
focus
devotion. blessed.
of
Within This te x t
orthodoxy
coupled
of P i e t i s m .
Becker's
treatment
of
the
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
five
212
strophes
of
Schulze
composed
song
of
results
114 m e a s u r e s ,
s t r o p h e s have been s e t to form
which
ma y
framework major it
of
be
the
in which i t
song
wanders
A minor,
A-flat
major,
which
frequently
but
the
as
through-
third
same m u s ic ,
and f o u r t h
resulting
ABCCD.
centered
harmonic
the
key
around
and
other
tonalities,
E-flat
in a
The
of
b e g i n s and ends but from into
doubles
and
virtuoso
three
manner
and p a t t e r n s ,
or
major.
C
which
including
Within
these
which
utilizes
martial
arpeggiated
change
in
response
text-setting
is
prim arily
at
echoes
the
ends
the
melody,
is
scored
m a n u a l s and p e d a l s i n an i d i o m a t i c
including
motifs,
occurring
basically
a n g u l a r m e lo d y c o v e r s a r a n g e o f an •1 O e l e v e n t h (e - f l a t t o a ). The a c c o m p a n i m e n t ,
an o r g a n w i t h
which
a
the
for
scalar
is
clearly
briefly
augmented
the
symbolized
often
param eters
in
to
variety
of
syncopations,
triplets,
and
varying
textual
syllabic
of
a
the
chromatic
block
and
chords,
ideas.
with tex t
second
textures
The
repetition
fifth
poetic
strophes. Other are
settings.
No o t h e r
settings
of
this
known t o be e x t a n t .
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
text
Chapter
23
ALEXANDER WINTERBERGER (1834-1914) Prior im portant
and
Weimar
becoming
piano
Winterberger 1843
to
and
studied
1849
at
and
where
he
Leipzig,
he
vocal
duets
sixty-one
gious
texts,
sion
O
in
t wo
solos
of h i s of
day,
his
native
of
Liszt.
After
Franz
wrote
as
teaching
songs the
are
at
returned
a music
p i a n o and o r g a n
keyboard
are
his
to
for
with
most
returned
Winterberger
works
which
of
the
in Leipzig during
Vienna and
and
solo
one of
virtuosos
pupil
years
include
and
least
a
taught
as
conservatory
Petersburg,
riis c o m p o s i t i o n s as
the
became
in
where
organ
subsequently
s p e n d i n g a number of conservatory
recognized
subject
of
the
to
critic.^ as
we 11
accompaniment. settings
the
of
At
reli-
discus
below.
^ ■"Wi nterberger, A l e x a n d e r , " M u s i l c a l i s c h e s C o n v e r s a t i o n s - L e x i k o n , v o l . 11, ed. H e r ma n n M e n d e l and A u g u s t R e i s s m a n n ( B e r l i n : R o b e r t O p p e n h e i m , 1 8 8 7 ) , p. 3 8 0 . A l s o , " W i n t e r b e r g e r , A l e x a n d e r , " The I n t e r n a t i o n a l C y c l o p e d i a o f Mu s i c a n d M u s i c i a n s , 1 1 t h e d . , e d . B r u c e B o h l e ( Ne w Y o r k : D o d d , M e a d e , S C o . , 1 9 8 5 ) , p. 2 4 7 2 . H i l d e g a r d J u n g , " Da s g e i s t l i c h e S o l o l i e d im 19. Jahrhundert: Ein B e i t r a g zur G e s c h i c h t e des d e u t s c h e n K u n s t l i e d e s " ( I n a u g u r a l - D i s s e r t a t i o n , U n i v e r s i t a t Koln, 1 9 5 1 ) , pp. LX-LXI. 213
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
214
" Da s Wo r t G o t t e s " 5 6 , H e f t I , No. 1; 1 8 7 6 ) 3
( Op. Angelus song's
text,
Roman on
Silesius
was o r i g i n a l l y
Catholicism
the
in
w ritings
greatly
ships cal
with poets
and
as well
("Holy
formed Kiddle
a
this
of
Ages
and is
of
decision
his
by h i s
Soul")
relation mysti von
conversion,
religious
1657,
the
n o t known t o h a v e s e t
He wa s
expe
thoughts
t h e H e i 1 gen S e e l e n -
the
of
Jakob
Abraham
emotional
of
between
Pietism
as
who w e r e
his
intimate
including
the
such
particularly
to
reflection
(1533-1588).
Following
transition the
Wei gel
enthusiastically
writings,
Desire
personal
contemporaries
expressed as h is
point
W interberger
his
(15 9 3 - 1 6 5 2 ) .
a b o u t God i n h i s 1us t
of
muc h
of t h i s
but c o n v e r te d
theologians
in h is
theologians,
Silesius
riences
after
and V a l e n t i n
a number
the author
a Lutheran,
m ystical
influenced
Franckenberg Angelus
16 5 3
of
Bohme ( 1 5 7 5 - 1 6 2 4 ) also
(1624-1677),
whereby
mysticism
of
Baroque
any o t h e r
he the
e r a /
texts
of
poet.
Das Wo r t G o t t e s Treuer K eister,
no d a t e
deine
Wo r t e
O The d a t e c o m e s f r o m a p p e a r s on t h e s c o r e .
Jung,
"Sololied,"
p.
LX,
as
^Wolfgang Stammler, "Angelus S i l e s i u s , " Neue deutsche B io g ra p h ie , vol. 1 (B e rlin : D u n c l c e r & Hum b l o t , 1 9 5 2 ) , pp. 2S8 - 2 91.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
215
Sind die r e c h t e H im m els pforte; Deine Lehren sind der Pfad De r u n s f i i h r t z u G o t t e s S t a d t . 0 w i e s e l i g , we r d i c h h o r e t , Wer v o n d i r w i l l s e i n g e l e h r e t , Wer i n De mu t h j e d e S t u n d H o r c h t a u f d e i n e n t r e u e n Kund! H e r r , d e i n Wo r t m i r n i c h t v e r h e h l e ! Rede l a u t zu m e i n e r S e e l e , I i i i l f m i r h a l t e n b i s zum Tod D e i n e r Li ebe s u s s Gebot!
Th e Word o f God M a s t e r of t h e t r u t h , y our words Ar e t h e t r u e d o o r o f h e a v e n ; Your teachings are the path Wh i c h l e a d s u s t o t h e c i t y o f God. U how b l e s s e d , w h o e v e r h e a r s y o u , Wh o e v e r w i l l be t a u g h t by y o u , Wh o e v e r i n h u m i l i t y e a c h h o u r H e a r k e n s t o y o u r u p r i g h t mo u t h ! L o r d , do n o t c o n c e a l y o u r wo r d f r o m me! S p e a k l o u d l y t o my s o u l , H e l p me k e e p u n t i l d e a t h The s w e e t c o mma n d me n t o f y o u r l o v e ! Theological prayer,
is
words, lead life,
the
which
the
individuals obey
his
theology
Lord
will
spirituality
end
who w i l l
in
the
with
who c a n
source
heaven.
In
death,
of a l l
the
God
truth.
This
orthodoxy became
a
midst
seeks
blessed
humility.
later
be a d d r e s s e d
t o l o v e God a n d e a c h
be g r e a t l y
traditional which
God,
people
toward
teachings of
who i s
command
believer
which
summary.
if
to
his
other,
of
human
speak
to
they hear
and
combines
the
text
with
in
the
central
personal
concern
Pie t ism.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
of
216
Musical the
thirty
modified song
analysis.
measures
strophic
is
the
key
of
form. of
the
accompaniment
song^
G major,
it
is
but
does
four
idiomatic
double
voices
The t e x t
sustained times tant
over
repeated musical Other
are
the
in B minor.
highly
the
which
manner and p r e s e n t song.
are
fundamental
which
fill
presented tonality
first
of
in the
two
strophes
Within th is
harmonic
known t o
is
the set
three so
as
so t h a t four
to
at
is
self-contained, times.
enter
one s y l l a b l e and
synchronize
germ of
is
the
with
with
as
i n an i m i t a t i v e
and r h y t h m i c
notes,
The b a s i c
contrapuntal
sometimes
melodic
or
and
melody
c o n c e p t i o n of the acc om panim ent ma ny a s
strophes
a r i a - l i k e melody has a compass of a minor O (e to c ) f o r a low a l t o v o i c e . The k e y b o a r d
thirteenth
although
three
this The
aiodulat.e to and f i n i s h design
The
frequently
text
the
the
is
mor e
some impor
phrase. settings.
No o t h e r
settings
of
this
text
his
era,
the
be e x t a n t . "T odessehnsucht" ( Op.
In strongly
contrast orthodox
13b,
to
Mo.
the
Lutheran
1;
1909)
P ietists poet
and
of
theologian
The s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g i s a v a i l a b l e the Library of Congress in Washington, D .C .
for
Hinrich
study at
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
217
Elmenhorst regard
to
( 1 6 3 2 - 1 7 0 4 ) had an o p e n - m i n d e d a p p r o a c h
the
In a d d i t i o n chaplain,
involvement
to s e r v i n g
Elmenhorst
participating
in
which
wrote
he a l s o
published
in
G eistliche (1700).^
three
texts
as a d e a c o n ,
expressed
the
founding libretti.
are
of
the
and with
rigid
and w e l l - d e f i n e d
and
This
Elmenhorst
interests
Hamburg
by
Opera
for
poetry
was
Lieder
(1661);
Geistreiche
Lieder
metaphor
and
understanding
text,
events.
and h o s p i t a l
his musical
an e x t r e m e l y wrong.^
secular
pastor,
Geistliche
(1685); replete
in
His r e l i g i o u s
collections:
Gesangbuch
Th e
of C h r i s t i a n s
v/ith
express of r i g h t
which o r i g i n a l l y
had
eleven
s t r o p h e s of which W i n t e r b e r g e r used only the f i r s t O and l a s t , i s t h e o n l y t e x t by t h i s p o e t w h i c h t h e c o m p o s e r is known to have set to music. Todessehnsucht H a n c h e r Ta g i s t m i r v e r g a n g e n Und m i t S e u f z e n ma n c h e Wa c h t Unter sehnlichem Verlangen
£
For a d i s c u s s i o n of t h e s e t t i n g s of t h e s e t e x t s by J o h a n n W o l f g a n g F r a n c k a n d o t h e r s , s e e p . 33 a b o v e . ^Kate L o r e n z e n , sche B iographie , vol. 19 5 7 ) , p . 4 6 1 .
"Elmenhorst, 4 (Berlin:
K i n r i c h , " i\:e u e d e u t D u n c k e r fi Hu m b 1 o t ,
The c o m p l e t e t e x t i s a v a i l a b l e i n Hi n r i ch E l me n h o r s t s G eistliche L i e d e r k o mp o n i e r t von J o h a n n Wolfgang F ra n ck, .Ge.£_r.il Bjpjhni jun.d_ F^£t_££ L a u r e n t i u s > Denkmaler d eu tsch e r Tonkunst, vol. 45 (Wiesbaden: B r e i t k o p f u I i a r t e l , 1 9 6 1 ) , p p . 1 4 5 - 1 4 6. A n u m b e r o f c h a n g e s h a v e b e e n made i n t h e t e x t a s i t a p p e a r s in W i n t e r B e r g e r ' s s c o r e , most of which c o n s i s t of a d d i n g e x p l i c i t r e f e r e n c e s t o t h e g r a c e o f God.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
218
Na c h dem Hi mme l z u g e b r a c h t ! Wann w i r d e i n s t , m e i n G o t t g e s c h e h e n , Dafl i c h s o l i z u r Ruhe g e h e n ? S e i, 0 Go tt, das Z i e l des Lebens, D e i n e r lluld a n h e i m g e s t e l l t , LaB m i c h h o f f e n n i c h t v e r g e b e n s , S o n d e r n , wo e s D i r g e f a l l t , H e r r , z e r b r i c h des L e i b e s Hohle, G n a d i g a u f ni mm m e i n e S e e l e . Longing f o r
Death
Many a d a y h a s p a s s e d f o r me And w i t h s i g h s many a n i g h t Beneath a rd e n t longing To h a v e b e e n b r o u g h t t o h e a v e n ! When w i l l i t o n e d a y h a p p e n , my God, T h a t I s h o u l d go t o r e s t ? Be , 0 God, t h e g o a l o f l i f e , Submitted to your g r a c e , L e t me n o t h o p e i n v a i n , B u t , when i t p l e a s e s y o u , Lord, s h a t t e r the b o d y 's v e n t r i c l e , G r a c i o u s l y r e c e i v e my s o u l . Theological life
and
death,
is
summary. the
He ma y b e a d d r e s s e d
in
heaven
a
the
person's is
soul
longing
to su b m it
This
of
text
orthodoxy
for
God,
believer's prayer dying
death,
accompanied
Musical
the
ultim ate
so t h a t
he w i l l
the
of r e s t ,
sleep
will
theological
This
of
the
admit into midst
of
of
a
he o r s h e
and hope in views
Lord
destination.
In
by p i e t i s t i c
analysis.
gracious
person.
to God's g r a c i o u s
expresses
the
the
Lord.
traditional
ideas.
song's°
forty-two
^The s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g i s a v a i l a b l e Wa s hin gt on , D.C., a t t h e L i b r a r y of C o n g re s s.
for
measures
study in
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
219
are
in
through-composed
harmonic
structure
Beginning
in
completing the
what
each
t wo p a r t s
major.
The
A minor,
of
phrase
second the
this
to
in
song
form.
lied
seems
of t h e
but
binary
is
be
Th e h i g h l y deliberately
the
key
a different
ultimately
portion
of
the
four-measure
chromatic
of
A minor
key,
the
cadences
song
postlude
unsettled.
is
first
clearly
finally in
but of
in f
returns
A major.
to The
a n g u l a r m e l o d y h a s a r a n g e o f a d i m i n i s h e d t w e l f t h (b t o O f ) . The k e y b o a r d a c c o m p a n i m e n t i s predom inantly homophonic song
the
in
texture,
bass
line
the
contains
countermelodic
line
beyond t h a t syllaLic
accompaniment
at
the
of
with
the
in
the
latter
portion
of
b e c o m e s mo r e a c t i v e a n d m e l o d i c .
sionally
vocal
but
doubles
lines
cadence
or
voice.
repetition
and
the
voice,
sometimes
continues
its
the
"1'iach de m M i m m e l z u g e b r a c h t "
crucial
Occa it
completes musical
The t e x t - s e t t i n g of
but
is
also the
phrase
basically
textual
and "Gnadig a u f
the
phrases,
n i mm m e i n e
See 1 e . " Other Johann
settings.
Wolfgang
Franck
The
setting
(1644-1710)
of was
this
text
by
published
in
1 7 0 0 . 1Li
^See
footnote
8 above.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Chapter
24
MICHAEL HALLER (1840-1915) The H aller,
who
nineteenth
work
of
has
the
been
R o ma n called
century," ^
the
desire
associated
to
Catholic his
return church
sought
to
church
music
the
study
than
by
the
through
music,
are but
of
liturgical
the
sixteenth
and
the
he a l s o
of
of
the
and
its
within
the
century.
of
Through
activities Roman
choral
music
thereof. motets, wrote
and
Most
of
other
devotional
he
Catholic
derived
liturgical
of
musical
movement music
the
city
use of p r i n c i p l e s
im itation Masses,
Michael
the
compositional
revitalization
of R e n a i s s a n c e slavish
proponent
Cecilian
of
teaching,
around
the
style
that
encourage
compositions choral
the to
conducting,
with
priest
"Palestrina
centered
R e g e n s b u r g w h e r e he was an a c t i v e reforms
Catholic
from
rather
Haller's
liturgical
music
tor
use
■ ^Ha l l e r s h o u l d n o t be c o n f u s e d w i t h B e r n h a r d J o s e p h K l e i n ( 1 7 9 3 - 1 8 3 2 ) who b e c a m e k n o w n a s " t h e P a l e s t r i n a of B e r l i n " d u r i n g h i s l i f e t i m e . S e e p. 9 8 a b o v e f o r r i or e i n f o r m a t i o n on K l e i n . ^ Au g u s t S c h a r n a g l , " H a l l e r , M i c h a e l , " b i e Mu s i k i n G e s c h i c h t e u n d G e g e n w a r t , v o l . 5, e d . F r i e d r i c h B l u m e ( K a s s e l and B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 195 6 ) , pp. 1 3 7 2 - 1 3 7 3 . One s u c h c o l l e c t i o n o f l i t u r g i c a l m u s i c w h i c h i n c l u d e s b o t h s o l o s o n g s a n d c h o r a l w o r k s i s C o r a ir, T a b e r n a c u l o : G e s a n g e zum a l l e r h e i l i g s t e n Sakrament (Eatisbon: F. 220
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
221
in
the
ho me a n d
thirteen
the
geistliche
accompaniment. containing sacred
in
school lieder
One
for
collection
twenty-three
solo
setting,
songs,
is
his
der
seligste
Jungfrau
Songs f o r
the
Worship
of
are
I S 85)
O
from
the
which
voice
such
compositions
Maria
Most
the
two
at
with
devotional
Ma r i e n g a r t e n :
Verehrung
Up. 3 2 ;
solo
of
choral
including
least piano music,
and e l e v e n
34 Lieder
zur
("Mary's Garden:
34
Blessed songs
Virgin
Mary,"
discussed
below
taken.
( Op.
The a u t h o r
of
" H e i mw e h " 3 2 , No. 6; 1 8 8 5 )
this
text
is
the o th e rw ise
unknown
iv. von B o r n . Hei mweh Void h i m m l i s c h e n G e s t a d e Glanzt g o l d 'n e r Morgenschein, De r S e l ' g e n J u b e l c h o r e , S i e l a d e n f r o h mi c h e i n .
Bei m A n b l i c k i h r e s F r i e d e n s , Be i i l i r e r S t i mme n K l a n g War m i r ' s , a l s wenn v o r S e h n s u c h t Di e e n g e B r u s t z e r s p r a n g . Wohl s t r e c k t '
Fustet,
ich
voll
Verlangen
1900).
° Mi c h a e 1 H a l l e r , Ma r i e n g a r t e n : 3 4 L i e d e r z u r V e r e h r u n g d.e_r_ s e l i g s t e J u n g f r a u M a r i a ( K e g e n s g u r g : Friedrich Pustet, 1904). The 1885 d a t i n g i s fr o m H i l d e g a r d J u n g , "Das g e i s t l i c h e S o l o l i e d : Bi n B e i t r a g z u r G eschichte des deutschen K unstliedes" (InauguralD i s s e r t a t i o n , U n i v e r s i t a t K o l n , 19 5 1 ) , p. XXI .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Di e b e i d e n Ar me a u s : Ach k o n n t i c h n u r h i n i i b e r In 's tra u te Vaterhaus. Doch z w i s c h e n h i e r und d r i i b e n Gahnt e i n e t i e f e K l u f t . Wi e k a n n i c h o h n e F l i i g e l L e i c h t schweben d ur ch d i e L uf t ? Wi e k a n n i c h o h n e S e g e 1 D u r c h s c h i f f e n d i e s e s Me e r , I n dem d e r S t u r m w i n d s c h a u k e l t D i e Wogen h i n u n d h e r ? Wi e k a n n i c h d u r c h d i e Wi i s t e , Wo r nanche T r u g g e s t a l t Mi c h z i e i i t vom r e c h t e n P f a d e A b s e i t s , v;ie r a i t G e v / a l t ? I c h b r e i t e a u s d i e Ar me , I c h s c h a u * zurn H i m m e l r e i c h , I c h heir d i e S e l ' g e n s i n g e n , i i i r wi r d d a s Her z so w e i c h . Ach k l u f t , a c h M e e r , a c h Wi i s t e , Wi e b i n i c h s c h w e r i n N o t h ! Oh n ' F l i i g e l , S e g e l , S t e u e r F n t g e h ' i c h n i c h t d e ra Tod ! Da s c h w e b t on meinen: K a u p t e De r h e i l ' g e n J u n g f r a u b i 1 d : Den Saum v o n i h r e m M a n t e l ii e i c h t h o l d s i e m i r un d mi 1 d . Vertrauensvoll e r f a s s ' ich Den m a n t e l m i t d e r Ha n d ; I c h f i i h l e mi c h g e t r a g e n Zum l i e t e n i i e i m a t h l a n d . homesickness Fr om t h e h e a v e n l y s h o r e S h i n e s t h e mo r e g o l d e n m o r n i n g The b l e s s e d r e j o i c i n g c h o i r , Th e y i n v i t e me j o y f u l l y . At t h e s i g h t o f t h e i r p e a c e , At the sound of their voices I t was t o me, a s i f b e c a u s e o f The n a r r o w b r e a s t e x p l o d e d .
light,
longing
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
2 23
I ndeed f u l l of l o n g i n g , I e x t e n d e d Both arms: 0 i f I c o u l d o n l y be o v e r t h e r e In t h e bel oved house of t h e F a t h e r . Ye t b e t w e e n h e r e a n d o v e r t h e r e Gapes a d e e p cha s m. How c a n I w i t h o u t w i n g s Easily soar through the air? how c a n I w i t h o u t s a i l Sail through th is sea, In which t h e s t or mwi nd The w a v e s t o a n d f r o ?
s ways
How c a n I go t h r o u g h t h e v / i l d e r n e s s , Wh e r e many d e c e p t i v e f o r m s P u l l ine a s i d e f r o m t h e r i g h t p a t h , As w i t h p o w e r ? 1 s p r e a d o u t my a r m s , I l o o k t o t h e h e a v e n l y kingdom, I hear th e b l e s s e d ones s i n g i n g , My h e a r t b e c o m e s s o s o f t . 0 c has m, 0 s e a , 0 w i l d e r n e s s , how v e r y much I am i n n e e d ! Without wing, s a i l , r u d de r 1 do n o t e s c a p e d e a t h ! T h e n a b o v e my h e a d f l o a t s The i m a g e o f t h e h o l y V i r g i n : The hem o f h e r c l o a k Sh e o f f e r s t o me g r a c i o u s l y a n d g e n t l y . F u l l of t r u s t I g r a s p The c l o a k w i t h my h a n d ; I fe e l myself c a r r ie d To t h e b e l o v e d h o m e l a n d . Theological glories the
individuals
holy, gap in
of heaven
gentle,
between her.
greatly
who i n h a b i t
and h e a v e n
beings
live
God t h e F a t h e r
separated
and g r a c i o u s ,
earth
h u ma n
summary.
it.
this
The V i r g i n
provides for
from
those
on e a r t h
dwells
who p u t
and l o o k
’w o r l d
Mary,
a wa y t o
in the
who i s
bridge their
toward
and
the
trust heaven,
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
224
hearing peace
the jo y fu l
and
invite
believers
m u s i c o f t h o s e wh o no w d w e l l people
longingly
to
recognize
from d e a t h ana a s s i s t a n c e separation and
between
threatening,
the
This
Roman C a t h o l i c
the
text
orthodoxy
a
structure
composed , be s e e n poetic next
strophic,
strophes
nusical
set
textual
setting
is
new m u s i c a l
material
the opening
mel ody
Following
a
instrumental setting brance
forms
of of
m aterial
version
the the
ninth initial
which
the
of
in
mel ody
continues
to
of
which
opening
strophe
throughwhat mi g h t
The f i r s t
lyrics
beginning
the
begins but the
be
song^
three
manner. a totally
v;ith a t w o - me a s u r e the
interlude
of
strophic
placed
this
into
form.
w h i c h mo v e s d i r e c t l y
for
keyboard
of
immense
traditional
of
elements
in a s t r i c t
strophe
is
the
by P i e t i s m .
combines
which c o n c l u d e s
escape
because
of
111 m e a s u r e s
are
an
can e a s i l y
an e x p r e s s i o n
The
strophes
The s e v e n t h
for
wa y t o h e a v e n
a n d d_a c a p o a r i a
are
need
in
Earthbound
of e x i s t e n c e
a s a h i g h 1 y - mod i f i ed s o n a t a
three
lude.
their
influenced
which
heaven.
in g a i n in g heaven,
Musical a n a l y s i s . have
to
t wo r e a l m s
while
misapprehended.
come
there
is into
the
with
mo v e s
inter set
a modified
material,
directly the
to
strophe
a melodic
of
new
a r e t u r n of
eighth
presents
musical
end
also
The
the
remem
into
song.
new The
^ T h e s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g i s a v a i l a b l e f o r s t u d y fi t St. Vincent College and Archabbey in Latrobe, Pennsylvania.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
225 harmonic After the
structure
beginning
course
tonality keys
of is
with
major,
the
of
is
the melody. left
and f o r
the
During hand
last
has
bass
chords bic
line
in
style
the o p p o s ite with
Other are
known t o
only
the
settings.
of
ambiguity.
to D major
of
material,
strophic
e.g., the
eleventh
between
F-sharp
melodic
line
(d^
use
g ^ ).
with
The
muc h
the
phrases
left hand. final
for
the
hand,
there right each
The t e x t line
No o t h e r
of
of
the
half the
piano
inter melody,
is c o n siste n t hand or a r u n
accompanied
is set the
A
doubling
more e x t e n s i v e
strophes
and of
the second, initial
two
encompasses
to
in the
those
major
frequent
homophonic
patterns the
full
modulating
through
two p o e t i c
for
also
transition
basically
use of a r p e g g i a t e d ning
in
evoked
perfect
accompaniment
the
section
undulating
a
is
and
tonalities,
fleetingly The
song
B minor
first
other
interval
lude
in
the
constantly
cadences.
of
of
by
in a s y l l a
poem r e p e a t e d .
settings
of
this
text
be e x t a n t .
( Op.
"K e e r e s s t e r n " 3 2 , No. 11; 1 8 8 5 )
W. v o n B o r n i s a l s o t h e p o e t w h o s e t e x t v/ as s e t by halier
in
this
lied.
Meeresstern 0 Maria, h e l l e r Stern Au f dem v / i l d e n L e b e n s m e e r ,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Gi b u n s F r i e d e n v o n dem H e r r n , Das w e n d ' Ru h e um u n s h e r . S e i t uns S a ta n in der B r u s t Loste blinde L e i a e n s c h a f t , Wi r d d i e S e e l e u n b e w u s s t Von dem S t u r m e f o r t g e r a f f t . Wo i s t R e t t u n g , wo i s t I i e i l ? E i t l e r Schwache t r o s t l o s B i l d S t ii r z t d a s S c h i f f z u r T i e f e s t e i l , Und d i e Wogen t o b e n w i l d . Ac h , iin I n n e r n h e r r s c h e t N a c h t , Alle Sinne sind emport, S a t a n u n s ' r e r Angst nur l a c h t , wenn d e n H i l f e r u f e r h b r t . Dur ch d i e Wo l k e n , h e l l e r S t e r n , S t r a h l ' i n meine S e e l e R u h ' , S t r a h l ' i n Narnen u n s e r ' s H e r r n De i n e m K i n d e F r i e d e n z u . Lass sicii l e g e n d i e s e n Sturm, brdne s a n f t die Sinne a l l ' , Z e i g e d i c h a I s s t a r k e r Th ur m Und z e r t h e i l ' d e r Wogen P r a l l . D r u n t e n , wo d e r R e b e l l i e g t , hur das wilde Wetter t o b t , F r i e d e h e r r s c h e t , wo im L i c n t S t r a h l t d e i n Name h o c h g e l o b t . 0 M a r i a , S t e r n so h e l l , S i n k e n mu s s i c h o h n e d i c h In d i e s c h w a r ze T i e f e s c h n e l l ; S c h i i t z e , h a l t , b e wa h r e mi ch! 0 M a r i a , h o r ' den Ruf , De r m i r a u s p r e s s t A n g s t und N o t h ; G o t t d e r k e r r , d e r mi ch e r s c h u f , Rett'
m ich
j e t z t
d u r c h
d ich
von;
Tod.
0 Maria, Leer e s s t e r n , S a n f t i g e d e r Wogen S t r e i t , Bis der F r i e d e n u n s e r ' s Herrn Ha t d e n w i l d e n S t u r m z e r s t r e u t . Star
of
the
Sea
0 Ma r y ,
clearer
star
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
227
On t h e w i l d s e a o f l i f e , Gi ve us p e a c e from t h e L o r d , Wh i c h b e c o m e s r e s t a r o u n d u s h e r e . Since Satan i n t o our b r e a s t Released blind passion, Unconsciously the soul is C a r r i e d f o r t h by t h e s t o r m . Wh e r e i s d e l i v e r a n c e , w h e r e i s s a l v a t i o n ? The w r e t c h e d f o r m o f f u t i l e w e a k n e s s iiurls the ship to the p r e c i p i t o u s depths, And t h e w a v e s r a g e w i l d l y . Alas, night rules at heart, A l l s e n s e s a r e s t i r r e d up, Satan only laughs a t our a n x i e t y F o r he h e a r s t h e c a l l f o r h e l p . Through t h e c l o u d s , c l e a r e r s t a r , R a d i a t e r e s t i n my s o u l , S h i n e i n t h e name o f o u r L o r d Peace to your c h i l d . Let t h i s storm cease, S o ftly order a l l the senses, Show y o u r s e l f a s a s t r o n g e r t o w e r And d i s p e r s e t h e c o l l i s i o n o f t h e
waves.
Th er e below, where t he fog l i e s , On l y t h e w i l d s t o r m r a g e s , Peace r u l e s , where in t h e l i g h t S h i n e s y o u r h i g h l y - p r a i s e d n a me . 0 h a r y , s t a r so c l e a r , 1 must s i n k q u i c k l y w i t h o u t
I n t o the Shelter,
you
black depths; h o l d , k e e p me!
0 Hary, h e a r the c a l l , Wh i c h a n x i e t y a n d n e e d s q u e e z e f r o m me; God t h e L o r d , who c r e a t e d me, T h r o u g h y o u now s a v e s me f r o m d e a t h . 0 Ma r y , s t a r o f t h e s e a , S o f t e n the b a t t l e of the waves, U n t i l t h e p e ac e of our Lord has d i s p e r s e d the wild storm.
Theological
summary.
God
the
Lord
is
the
creator
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
228
of
each
individual.
who d e l i v e r s She,
whose
addressed
Ke i s
the
from
death
people name
is
highly
in p rayer
darkest
of
stormy
night.
for
d e l i v e r a n c e may be f o u n d bring
distress
tumultuously sion
which
weak,
filled
have
anxious
and
a parent-child
orthodoxy
the
we d d e d
Musical fill
ninety
individual spans
a
she
shines
' : ke
one
in
and
for
in
deliverance the
rest
relationship
thoughts
in
ii m i n o r , the
briefly
second
modulates
portion
of
each
which
women a r e
forces
of
pas
The h u ma n r a c e
is
p r o b l e m s and c i r c u m
which
can
be f o u n d
within
the
Virgin.
This
Roman
the
text
Catholic
i m p e t u s of R o ma n t i c is m. strophes
stro p hie
of
form
structure.
6 major
strophe,
at and
the
this
song~*
with The
d^)
strophe begins
to
a
and
forces
men a n d
( d ^ - s h a r p to
harmonic scheme wherein each
on
of
a binary
octave
star
the
passions
with
strict
in
be
the
The f i v e
s t r o p lie h a v i n g diminished
of
of traditional
analysis.
can
from
to the e m o t i o n a l
measures
s the
Satan. its
Mary.
for
a
one
protection
c o n t r o l l e d by
source
for
heaven,
whor .
The l i v e s
in m a s t e r i n g
longing
represents
of need,
she contj
the
the Virgin
time
for
with
their
through
in
people.
ineffective
stances, heart,
to
peace and
in
help
is
of
praised
circumstances Mary
source
each
mel ody
within
a
in the keyof beginning
returns
to
of the
C.
“’T h e s c o r e o f t h i s s o n g i s a v a i l a b l e f o r s t u d y a t St. V incent C ollege and A r c ii a b b e y in Latrobe, Pennsylvania.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
229
original
tonality,
terminating is
and
on a n E m a j o r
chorale-like
sionally
known t o
the
the
final
chord.
hoinophonic voice.
cadence
of
the
song
The p i a n o a c c o m p a n i m e n t texture
while
The t e x t - s e t t i n g
only is
occa
syllabic
repetition.
Other are
in i t s
doubling
without
with
settings.
No o t h e r
settings
of
this
be e x t a n t .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
text
Chapter
25
HUGO WOLF (1860-1903) Although music, Wo l f
choral
is
most
he
wrote
music,
and works
importantly
Nietzsche
identify
himself
geistliche these
are
lieder
of the
(1844-1900) as
an
a mo n g
discussed
symphonies,
for
remembered
In s p i t e of the i n f l u e n c e Wilhelm
operas,
as
a
A u s t r i a n Hugo song
c o mp o s e r . - ^
p hilosophy of F r i e d r i c h
upon
Wol f ,
"unbeliever," his
piano,
chamber
which led
there
2 43 p u b l i s h e d
are
him t o
thirty-two
songs.
Two o f
below. " Zum n e u e n J a h r " ( 1888)
Wolf
was
first
introduced
to
the
works
of
his
•*-Eric S a m s , " W o l f , Hu g o ( F i l i p p J a k o b ) , " T h e N e w Grove D i c t i o n a r y o f M us ic and M u s i c i a n s , v o l . 20, e d . S t a n l e y S adie (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , pp. 4 7 5 - 5 0 2 . A l s o , Edmund N i c k , " W o l f , Hugo P h i l i p p J a k o b , " D i e M u s i k i n G e s c h i c h t e und G e g e n w a r t , v o l . 14, e d. F r i e d r i c h Bl u me ( K a s s e l and B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1 9 6 8 ) , pp. 7 7 6 - 7 9 6 . ^ B e t t y S m i t h C a m p b e l l , "The S o l o S a c r e d L i e d e r o f Hu g o W o l f : The I n t e r r e l a t i o n s h i p of M u s i c a n d T e x t " ( Ed. D. d i s s e r t a t i o n , C o l u m b i a U n i v e r s i t y , 1 9 6 9 ) , p p . 1 - 1 9 , discusses a v a r i e t y o f o t h e r i n f l u e n c e s upon Wo l f b e s i d e s t h a t of th e n i h i l i s t i c philosopher Nietzsche. These i n c l u d e t h e p h y s i c a l e n v i r o n m e n t i n w h i c h he f o u n d h i m s e l f ; t h e m u s i c a l i n f l u e n c e s o f Bach, B e e t h o v e n , S c h u b e r t , S c h u m a n n , a n d Wa g n e r ; a n d t h e l i t e r a r y i n f l u e n c e s o f t h o s e p o e t s whose t e x t s he c h o s e t o s e t t o m u s i c . 230
)ermission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
231
favorite in
the
poet, circle
Eduard Morike (1804-1875) ,
during
of
von G o l d s c h m i d t
the
composer
in
teacher
lite ra tu re ,
of
Germany's found
an
finest
meters,
Wolf
responded of
lyric
inherently
hymn
total
Vienna.
O
(1848-1906)
and
the
settings
within
Jahr,"
which
song,^
is
Wo l f p u t
has
musical general to
Morike
Morike the
a
pastor
been
and
years
later
considered
one
a of
W i t h i n h i s v e r s e s c a n be
quality
based
German
texts,
w ritten
ten
religious
in
to
folksong,
tradition.^ £ lyrics, setting a
including
period
had
on
poetic
Morike's
a ten-month
one of to
Morike,
poets.^
strongly
fifty-seven
Adalbert
his
1888.
an
fifty-three " Zum n e u e n
existing
church
t e x t s of Morike which
music.
Zum n e u e n J a h r Wi e h e i m l i c h e r w e i s e Ein E n g e l e i n l e i s e Mi t r o s i g e n F i i s s e n Die Erde b e t r i t t , So n a h t e d e r M o r g e n . J a u c h z t i h m , i h r Fr o mme n ,
^Campbell, Methuen,
"Wolf,"
pp.
4-5.
^ E r i c S a m s , Thj 2 S o n g s 1961), p. 35.
£ f_ Hu g o
Wo l f
^ E r i c Sams, " M o r i k e , Ed u a r d ( F r i e d r i c h ) , " G r o v e D i c t i o n a r y o f Mu s i c a n d Mu s i c i a n s , v o l . S t a n l e y Sadie (London: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 8 0 ) , p. 575.
(London: The 12,
fl
New e d.
C a m p b e l l , " W o l f , " pp. 1 1 - 1 2 , c o m p i l e d n i n e a s p e c t s o f M o r i k e ' s l i t e r a r y s t y l e t o w h i c h Wo l f r e s p o n d e d i n h i s lieder . ^ S a ms ,
"Wolf,"
p.
575.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
232
E i n h e i l i g Wi l l k o m m e n , E i n h e i l i g Wi l l k o mme n ! H e r z , j a u c h z e du m i t ! I n I hm s e i ' s b e g o n n e n , De r Monde u n d S o n n e n An b l a u e n G e z e l t e n De s H i mm e l s b e w e g t . Du, V a t e r , Du r a t e ! L e n k e Du u n d w e n d e ! H e r r , D i r i n d i e Ha n d e S e i A n f a n g u nd E n d e , Sei a l l e s g eleg t! To t h e
New Y e a r ^ As s e c r e t l y A l i t t l e angel lig h tly Wi t h r o s y f e e t S t e p s on t h e e a r t h , So t h e m o r n i n g a p p r o a c h e d . R e j o i c e i n i t , yo u p i o u s o n e s , A h o l y welcome, A holy welcome! H e a r t , y o u r e j o i c e w i t h t h e m! L e t i t be b e g u n i n him Who moon a n d s u n In t he b l u e canopy Of h e a v e n mo v e d . You, F a t h e r , you c o u n s e l ! You d i r e c t a n d t u r n ! Lord, i n t o your hands Be t h e b e g i n n i n g a n d t h e e n d , Be e v e r y t h i n g l a i d . Theological
is
the
one
summary.
wh o c o n t r o l s
the
God,
who i s
movements
Father of
the
and Lor d, celestial
^ O t h e r E n g l i s h t r a n s l a t i o n s a r e a v a i l a b l e i n S a ms , S o n g s , p. 6 7 ; P h i l i p L. M i l l e r , T h e R i n g o f W o r d s : An A n t h o l o g y o f So n g T e x t s (New Y o r k : W.W. N o r t o n , 1 9 7 3 ) , p. 1 8 9 ; C a m p b e l 1^ o l f , " p . 7 5 ; a n d a t r a n s l a t i o n by J u l i a von Bo s e f o r u s e i n p e r f o r m a n c e i s i n c l u d e d i n t h e s c o r e : Hugo W o l f , L i e d e r n a c h G e d i c h t e n v o n E d u a r d M o r i k e , v o l . 3 (Leipzig: P e t e r s , n . d . ) , pp. 1 0 - 1 3 .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
233
bodies.
He c a n
direction
at
throughout
its
in
the
Go d ' s in
be a d d r e s s e d
the
beginning
duration.
coming of a n o t h e r control
the
and
spiritual
in
prayer
for
of
a
year
Devout year.
reminds
new
believers Th e c r e a t e d
believers
realm.
This
of
poem i s
guidance as
are
well
to
as
rejoice
order
divine
and
is
under
activities
expressive
of
the
views of P i e t i s m . Musical a n a l y s i s . composed form f i l l s spans
a
major
This
forty
measures.
thirteenth
scheme r e p l e t e
with
song's
1
(d
seventh
through-
The e n e r g e t i c 9 b )
to
and
tripartite
within
ninth
melody^
a harmonic
chords.
Tonally,
t h e s o n g b e g i n s i n A m a j o r a n d m o d u l a t e s t o B m a j o r by t h e close in
of
the
G major
melodic
section.
The m i d d l e
and s u b s e q u e n t l y
wending i t s section.
first
modulates
way t o A m a j o r a t
The and
piano
germ
motion,
while
pattern
for i t s
thirds
in
it
to D major
based the
consists
opens before
the
on
final
the
song.
same
In
of p a t t e r n s
the of
e a c h hand movi ng i n c o n t r a r y
the middle s e c tio n repeated
is
throughout
b e g i n n i n g and e n d i n g s e c t i o n s
then
begin ning of
accompaniment
rhythmic
successive p arallel
the
section
uses a d i f f e r e n t
open f i f t h s
and o t h e r
rhythmic chords
in
^ F o r a s h o r t d i s c u s s i o n o f s o me o f W o l f ' s m e l o d i c p a t t e r n s i n t h i s s o n g , s e e W e s l e y J a m e s L o ew en , "The R e l a t i o n s h i p of Te x t and Vocal A s p e c t s i n t h e Mor i ke Songs o f Hugo W o l f " (D.M.A. d issertatio n , U niversity of M i s s o u r i - K a n s a s C i t y , 1 9 8 3 ) , pp. 75, 78.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
234
the
left
hand
paniraental syllabic
while
m elody.^
with
only
Other Carl
(1857-1897),
the
"sei
This
Me r ke l - *- *
previously-heard
text-setting
words
(1837-1914;
W.
the
The
settings.
Attenhofer
(1848-1906;
retaining
alles"
text
Op. and
has
44,
is
prim arily
repeated. also
No.
accora-
7),
Adalbert
been
set
Johannes
von
by
Pache
Goldschmidt
1 8 9 1 ) . 12 " D i e du G o t t g e b a r s t " ( 1889)
L a t e i n 1889 and e a r l y i n 1890 Wolf s e t f o r t y - f o u r texts
from
the
s i x t e e n t h - and
Spanisches
seventeenth-century
N o r t h German p o e t s , Heyse
(1830-1914),
gebarst,"
a Heyse
unknown N i c o l a s lieder
Liederbuch,
translation
Nunez,
is
the
of
a
translation
Spanish
Emanuel G eibel which ap peared
the
texts
(1815-1884) in
1852.
of
by t w o
and P au l
" D i e du G o t t
text
by
the
otherwise-
second of
the
ten
geistliche
w h i c h f o c u s on t h e V i r g i n Ma r y a n d J e s u s
and form
For a more d e t a i l e d a n a l y s i s of t h i s song w i t h p a r t i c u l a r r e g a r d f o r t h e c o m p o s i t i o n a l m o t i f s u s e d by W o l f , s e e S a m s , S o n g s , p. 6 7 . Also, s ee Campbell , "Wolf," p p . 76-78. * * M i l l e r , R i n g , p. a v a i l a b l e on W. M e r k e l .
188.
No o t h e r
inform ation
is
* 2 H i l d e g a r d J u n g , " Da s g e i s t l i c h e S o l o l i e d im 19. Jahrhundert: Ein B e i t r a g zur G e s c h i c h t e des d e u ts c h e n K u n s t l i e d e s " ( I n a u g u r a l - D i s s e r t a t i o n , U n i v e r s i t a t Koln, 1 9 5 1 ) , p. XVI I I.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
235
the
first
section
of Wol f's
Spanisches
Liederbuch. ^
D i e du G o t t g e b a r s t D i e du G o t t g e b a r s t , du R e i n e , Und a l l e i n e Uns g e l o s t a u s u n s e r n K e t t e n , Mach m i c h f r o h l i c h , d e r i c h w e i n e , De nn n u r d e i n e H u l d u n d Gn a d e mag u n s r e t t e n , H e r r i n , ga n z zu d i r mi ch wende, Da/3 s i c h e n d e D i e s e Q u a l u nd d i e s e s G r a u e n , Dab d e r Tod m i c h f u r c h t l o s f a n d e , Und n i c h t b l e n d e Mi c h d a s L i c h t d e r H i m m e l s a u e n . W e i l du u n b e f l e c k t g e b o r e n , Auserkoren Zu d e s e wg e n Ruhme s S t a t t e n Wi e m i c h L e i d e n a u c h u m f l o r e n Unverloren B i n i c h d o c h , w i l l s t du m i c h r e t t e n .
You Who B o r e G o d ^ You who b o r e Go d , y o u p u r e o n e , And a l o n e R e d e e me d u s f r o m o u r s l a v e r y , Make me j o y f u l , I who c r y ,
1O
S a ms , S o n g s , p. 1 6 4 . See a l s o , Werner Oehlmann, " [ P r o g r a m N o t e s ] , " Hugo W o l f ; Spanisches Liederbuch, E lizab e th Schwarzkopf, soprano, D ie t ri c h Fischer-D ieskau, b a r i t o n e , G e r a l d M o o r e , p i a n i s t , t r . J o h n Co o mb s ( D e u t s c h e G r a mmo p h o n e , 2 5 3 9 2 0 1 / 2 5 3 9 2 0 2 , 1 9 7 6 ) . ^ O t h e r E n g lis h t r a n s l a t i o n s are a v a i l a b l e in S a m s , S o n g s , p. 1 6 6 ; C a m p b e l l , " W o l f , " p. 1 2 1; G e o r g e B i r d and R ic h a r d S t o k e s , tr., The F i s c h e r - D i e s k a u Book o f L i e d e r ( Ne w Y o r k : L i m e l i g h t E d i t i o n s , 1 9 8 4 ) , p. 3 5 1 ; a n d in the score, Hu g o W o l f , S o n g s on S p a n i s h L y r i c s b y H e y s e , v o l . 1 ( New Y o r k : I n t e r n a t i o n a l M u s i c , n . d . ) , pp. 8 - 1 1 , w h e r e a t r a n s l a t i o n f o r u s e i n p e r f o r m a n c e ma y b e found.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
236
For o n l y your K i n d n e s s a n d g r a c e may s a v e u s . L a d y , t u r n me t o t a l l y t o y o u , That t h i s agony and t h i s h o r r o r Will end, T h a t d e a t h m i g h t f i n d me f e a r l e s s And t h e l i g h t o f h e a v e n ' s p a s t u r e s No t b l i n d me . B e c a u s e yo u w e r e b o r n u n s p o t t e d , Chosen To p l a c e s o f e t e r n a l g l o r y To w h a t e v e r e x t e n t s o r r o w a l s o v e i l s Not l o s t Am I y e t , y o u w i l l s a v e me. Theological earth
summary.
came
to
She,
p u r e and s i n l e s s ,
unending
through
glory
the
Mary,
the
ness
and
grace
provide
upon
her
and
is
characterized
death,
but
in
to
Ma r y ,
the
mother
of
God.
w a s c h o s e n b y God t o d w e l l i n t h e
o n e who h a s r e d e e m e d
turn
God i n t h e p e r s o n o f J e s u s
Virgin
of heaven.
will
me,
her
and
h u ma n r a c e
Mary a l o n e ,
and
through
salvation
to
wholeheartedly.
by s a d n e s s ,
pain,
a relationship
with
her
those
the
kind
wh o c a l l
Human e x i s t e n c e
terror, the
is
and t h e f e a r
Virgin
these
of
condi
t i o n s w i l l come t o an e nd.
T h i s poem i s r e p r e s e n t a t i v e o f
traditional
theology.
Roman C a t h o l i c
Musical song a r e
i n ABA' f o r m .
structure final (e
1
to
analysis.
which
is
Th e f i f t y - f i v e
Within a highly-chromatic
rooted
in
E-major chord the a u s t e r e 9 g ).
the
key
octaves
for
the
of
pianist's
of
with
a minor
consists right
this
harmonic
A minor
melody s pa ns
Th e k e y b o a r d a c c o m p a n i m e n t
bing re p e a te d
measures
of
a
tenth throb
hand above
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
237
sustained text
is
mo v e s two
and
generally
dissonant
set
in a "sighing"
left-hand
syllabically,
pattern
the
but
syllable
chords.^ when is
the
The voice
extended over
notes. Other
are
often
known t o
settings.
No o t h e r
settings
of
this
text
be e x t a n t .
■^For mor e d e t a i l e d o b s e r v a t i o n s l i e d , s e e C a m p b e l l , " W o l f , " pp. 1 2 2 - 1 2 5 . S o n g s , p. 166.
concerning th is See a l s o , Sams,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Chapter
26
MAX GULBINS (1862-1932) The G e r ma n bered
today.
he h e l d and
for with
After
positions
conductor.
various
organ
male
lieder
are
which a r e
Max G u l b i n s
studying
in
Elbing
In
for
at
is
seldom
remem
the Hochschule in B e r l in
and B r e s l a u
addition
works
chorus
keyboard
composer
to
four
liturgical
as
church
organ
use
organist
sonatas
Gulbins
also
and wrote
and
o r c h e s t r a as w ell as for solo voice I accompaniment. At l e a s t s i x t e e n g e i s t l i c h e
included discussed
in h i s
com positional
output,
two
of
bel ow.
" De r du d i e e w ' g e L i e b e b i s t " ( Op. 2 9 , No. 3; 1 9 0 5 ) The G e r ma n August Mahlmann private
school
university ings
in
brought
publisher,
(1771-1826) in
Borna
Leipzig. him
editor,
into
His
and a u t h o r
was e d u c a t e d
and
later
contact
with
in a p i e t i s t i c
studied
subsequent
law
literary
many o f
Siegfried
the
at
the
undertak authors
of
^ T h e JLlLt. ILL JiillLAilHiLiL c ^ o .j ij; d_ jo f_ M u s i c a n d Mu s i c i a n s , 1 1 t h e d . , e d . B r u c e b o h l e ( Ne w Y o r k : Dodd, Me a d e , !;" Es h a t n i c h t s o l l e n s e i n " ( Op . 2 1 3 , No. 2; J . v. Scheffel) " D a n k e G o t t " ( Op. 2 7 4 , N o . l ; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ) " I s t s G o t t W i l l und R a t " ( O p . 2 8 2 , No. 2; 1 8 6 0 67. F r . Ose r ) * " W i e g e n l i e d " ( Op . 2 8 2 , No. 4; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ; F r . O s e r ) " Ave M a r i a " ( Op . 3 2 8 , No. 2 ; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ) *"Ave Maria" ( Op . 4 3 8 a ) * " A b e n d f e i e r " ( Op. 4 4 5 , No. 5 ; G a b r i e l S e i d l ) " V e r g i s s d e s Hi mme l s n i c h t " ( Op . 4 6 7 , No. 2; 1 8 7 4 ) " H o f f e s t i l l und mag a u c h a l l e s " ( Op . 4 6 7 , No. 3; 1874) * " G o t t g r i i s s e d i c h ! " ( Op . 4 7 5 , No. 1; J u l . S t u r m ) * " M u t t e r n a m e n " ( Op. 4 7 5 , No. 2; G l a s n e r ) * " C h r i s t k i n d c h e n s E i n l a s s " ( O p . 4 7 5 , No. 5; K a r l Enslin) * " Z u r W e i h n a c h t " ( Op . 4 7 5 , No. 6) * " G u t e n M o r g e n ! " ( Op . 4 7 5 , No. 2 3 ) Aiblinger,
Johann Caspas
(1779-1867)
" Da s Ki n d an s e i n e n S c h u t z e n g e l " ( 1 8 5 2 ) " De r g u t e H i r t " ( 1 8 5 2 ) " De r HI . F r a n z i s l c u s und s e i n Lamm" ( 1 8 5 2 ) "Am G r a b e " ( 1 8 5 2 ) "Gebet e i n e s Kindes in der C h r i s t n a c h t " (1852)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
"Klagen des Al ma ,
leidenden
Altmann,
( Op .
Alvensleben,
unser,
G.
der
du b i s t
im Hi mme l "
(1897)
( f r o m Op.
2;
1843)
Albert "Friede,
Anacker,
Friede,
August F r i e d r i c h Sechs
geistliche
J o h a n n Anton " De r " Der Jean
a c h f Ur Miide"
( f r o m Op.
17;
1892)
(1790-1854) Lieder
( Op .
26;
1852)
(1775-1842)
1 3 8 . P s a l m " ( Op . 6 3 , No. 1; 1 8 4 0 ) 2 8 . P s a l m " ( Op . 6 3 , No. 2; 1 8 4 0 ) Baptiste
Trost Andre',
1885)
v.
"Auferstehung" Amadei ,
5;
Arthur "Vater
Andrei
(1852)
Max " Ave M a r i a "
Andre,
Heilands"
( Op.
(1823-1882)
17;
1852-59)
J.
"Neujahrslied" Ansorge,
(Voss)
Max
* " D a s K r e u z " ( Op . 2 3 , No. 1; A d o l f P i c h l e r ) * " H e i l i g s K r e u z " ( Op . 2 3 , No. 2; M o r i k e ) * " U b e r N a c h t " ( Op . 2 3 , No. 3 ; J u l i u s S t u r m ) :,' " I n H a r m e s n a c h t e n " ( Op . 2 3 , No. 4 ; C o n r a d F e r d i n a n d Me y e r )
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
273
* " D e r du von dem Hi mme l b i s t " ( Op . 2 3 , No. Goethe) * " E i n G r a b " ( Op. 2 3 , No. 7; Anna R i t t e r )
5;
Ar n e ma n n "0 d i e
Bagge,
Selmar
Zukunft
dir
Karl
65;
1893)
Gott"
(1852-1859)
Udalrich
"Sehnsucht Banck,
( Op .
(1823-1896)
"Vertrauen auf Baldenecker,
mag b r i n g e n "
n a c h dem J e n s e i t s "
(1852)
(1809-1889)
M a r i e n l i e d e r ( Op . 3 9 ; 1 8 4 5 ) * " G e b e t i n d e r C h r i s t n a c h t " ( Op . 5 3 , No. 5; 1 8 9 2 ; W. M u l l e r ) * " P i l g e r s p r u c h " ( Op . 5 3 , No. 6 ; 1 8 9 2 ; B. F l e m i n g ) * " W i e g e n l i e d " ( Op . 6 7 , No. 3 ; 0 . B a n c k ) * " M e i n H e r z " ( Op . 6 9 , No. 7; N i c o l a u s L e n a u ) * " T o d d e r T r e n n u n g " ( Op . 6 9 , No. 1 7 ; L e n a u ) B a r t h , G. "Marienlied" Bartz,
(1852-59)
Joh. Fiinfzehn g e i s t l i c h e
Lieder
( Op .
28;
1904-08)
1843;
Tiedge)
B a t k a , J . N. "Gottes Ba u ma n n ,
C.
Liebe"
( Op .
26;
before
F.
Religiose
Lieder
und G e s a n g e
( Op .
33;
1852)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
274
B a u m f e l d e r , G. "Mein
Baumgart,
Heiland,
Bausznern,
fiir d i e Mai-Andacht"
du b i s t
Wa l d e ma r
" Es i s t Alfred "Gebet"
Becker,
gelitten"
(Op.
9;
190 1)
(1904-08)
C. F . "Gott,
Becher,
fiir m i c h
Albert
"Marienlied Baunack,
der
Albert
me i n G o t t "
( Op .
Ps.
63)
von ( 1 8 6 6 - 1 9 3 1 )
so s t i l l (1803
(1898;
geworden"
( Op .
3,
No.
11;
1888)
1848) 3,
No.
3;
before
1843)
(1834-1899)
* " A d v e n t " ( Op . 1 1 , No. 1; He d wi g G a e d e ) * " W e i h n a c h t s l i e d " ( Op . 1 1 , No. 2; T h e o d o r K o h l e r ) * " G o t t W i l l k o m m e n , G o t t e s K i n d ! " ( Op . 1 1 , No. 3; Martin) G e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r im V o l k s t o n ( 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ) - " P s a l m 6 2 " ( Op . 2 5 ; 1 8 8 3 ) * " P s a l m 1 4 7 " ( Op . 3 2 , No. 1) * " E r h o r e , 0 H e r r ! " ( Op . 5 1 , No. 1; 1 8 8 7 ; Ma r y , Qu e e n o f S c o t s ) - " D e r H e r r i s t M e i s t e r ! " ( Op . 5 1 , No. 2 ; 1 8 8 7 ; E u g e n i e von M o n s t e r b e r g ) - " B i t t e " ( Op . 5 1 , No. 3 ; 1 8 8 7 ; C h a r l o t t e von S e l d e n ) - " D u , H e r r , b i s t u n s e r V a t e r " ( Op . 5 1 , No. 4 ; 1 8 8 7 ; G. W. S c h u l z e ) - " W e i h e n i c h t ! " ( Op . 5 1 , No. 5 ; 1 8 8 7 ; M a r t i n ) * " Ge n Hi mme l a u f g e f a h r e n i s t " ( Op . 7 1 , No. 9 b ; folksong) :!;" P a s s i o n s l i e d " ( Op. 7 1 b , No. 5 ; f o l k s o n g ) G e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . 7 1 c ; 1 8 9 6 ) Her z a u f w a r t s ; S e c h s g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r im Volkston (1899) " D o r t h i n t e n a n d e r h i m m l i s c h e n Ti i r " ( 1 9 0 3 ; folksong)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
275
Becker, Ida Vier
Becker,
kleine
Reinhold
Legenden
(Op.
8;
1891)
(1842-1924)
"Wo du h i n g e h e s t " ( Op . 6 0 ; 1 8 9 1 ) " V a t e r u n s e r " ( Op. 8 7 ; 1 8 9 8 ) Fi i nf g e i s t l i c h e G e s a n g e ( Op . 1 2 9 ;
1904-08)
* B e e t h o v e n , Ludwi g v a n ( 1 7 7 0 - 1 8 2 7 ) " B i t t e n " ( o p . 4 8 , No. 1; 1 8 0 3 ; G e l l e r t ) " D i e L i e b e d e s N a c h s t e n " ( Op . 4 8 , No. 2; 1 8 0 3 ; Gellert) "Vom T o d e " ( Op . 4 8 , No. 3; 1 8 0 3 ; G e l l e r t ) " D i e E h r e G o t t e s a u s d e r N a t u r " ( Op. 4 8 , No. 4; 1803; G e l l e r t ) " G o t t e s Ma c h t und V o r s e h u n g " ( Op . 4 8 , No. 5; 1 8 0 3 ; G ellert) " B u s s l i e d " ( Op . 4 8 , No. 6 ; 1 8 0 3 ; G e l l e r t ) " De r W a c h t e l s c h l a g " (WoO 1 2 9 ; 1 8 0 3 ; S. F. S a u t e r ) " A b e n d l i e d u n t e r m g e s t i r n t e n Hi mme l " (WoO 1 5 0 ; 1 8 2 0 ; H. G o e b l e ) Behr,
Franz
(1837-1898)
" 0 du h e i l i g s t e " Bellermann,
Heinrich
" Ave M a r i a " Bellmann,
(1832-1903) (1888)
Julius
" Es i s t Beneken,
(1881)
so s t i l l
Friedrich
geworden"
Bernhard
(1888)
(1760-1818)
Lieder der R e l i g i o n , Freundschaft ( c . 1805)
und L i e b e
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
276
*B e r g e r ,
Ludwi g ( 1 7 7 7 - 1 8 3 9 ) " D i e S t e r n e " ( Op . 1 7 , No. 3 ; K o s e g a r t e n ) " S a n d ' s T o d e s m o r g e n ( 2 0 Mai 1 8 1 9 ) " ( Op. 4 3 , L. R e l l s t a b )
Berger,
Bertelsmann,
52;
1899)
(1852)
He r ma n n "Gott
Bischoff,
ist
me i n H i r t "
9;
1898)
Abendlied"
(1860-67)
Konstanze "Wenn i c h ,
B1 a s e 1 ,
( Op .
K a r l B.
"Ein g e i s t l i c h
o Schopfer,
deine
Ma c h t "
(1860-67)
H. "Du H e i l i g s t e , 1903)
Bley,
49; 1899) K l i i f t e " ( Op.
K. A.
"Gebet"
Blanck,
11;
Wi l hel m ( 1 8 6 1 - 1 9 1 1 ) Zwe i g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . "Vom Hi mmel i n d i e t i e f s t e n
Beyer,
No.
zu d e i n e n
Fiissen"
( Op .
6,
No.
1;
Gustave " Me i n e S e e l e i s t s t i l l e zu G o t t " ( Op . 1 0 , No. 1; 1892; Ps a l m) " L o b e d e n H e r r n , m e i n e S e e l e " ( Op. 1 0 , No. 2; 1892; Ps a l m) " I c h d a n k e dem H e r r n von g a n z e n H e r z e n " ( Op . 19; 1 8 9 4 ; P s . 9) " G o t t s e i m i r g n a d i g " ( Op . 2 4 ; 1 8 9 8 ; P s . 5 7 )
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
277
Bliithgen,
E.
" Wo
Blumenberg,
du
hingehest"
1894)
Kirchhof
liegt
so s t i l l "
( Op .
171;
Paul
ein
weiter
Garten"
( Op .
30;
1895)
(1843-1930)
" H e r r , w i e l a n g e w i l l s t du m e i n e r s o g a r v e r g e s s e n " ( Op . 1 5 ; 1 8 7 9 ; P s . 1 3 ) " H o r e , G o t t , me i n G e s c h r e i " ( Op . 5 6 ; 1 8 9 0 ; Blumner,
1896)
Franz
"Es l i e g t Blumenthal,
3;
Carl
" Der w e i t e Blumenberg,
(Op.
Martin
Ps.
61)
(1827-1901)
"Komm z u m i r , h e i l g e r C h r i s t " ( Op . 7, No. 3; 1 8 5 2 59) " S i e h e d a , e i n e Hi i t t e G o t t e s b e i den Mens chen" ( Op . 4 1 , No. 1; 1 8 9 8 ; B i b l e ) "Wo du h i n g e h s t , d a w i l l a u c h i c h h i n g e h e n " ( Op. 4 1 , No. 2 ; 1 8 9 8 ; B i b l e ) Bohme ,
F r a n z Ma g n u s
(1827-1898)
Die hohen F e s t t a g e i n L i e d e r n : 50 W e i h n a c h t s N e u jah rs-P assio n s-u n d P f in g stg e san g e (1860-67) B o e r n e r - S a n d r i n i , Marie " H e r r , l e g a u f s H e r z m i r d e i n e H a n d e " ( Op . 1, 1; 1 8 9 0 ) " G o t t e s G e b o t e s i n d n i c h t s c h w e r " ( Op . 1 , No. 1890) Bohl,
Heinrich "Es i s t
so
still
geworden"
( Op .
3;
1896)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
No. 2;
278
Bohnenblust,
Gottfried
"Wenn J a h w e Z i o n h e r s t e l l t " P s . 126) Bojanus,
W.
Ludwi g
1904-08;
Gesange
( Op .
2;
1875)
( Op.
72;
(1850-1939)
"Singt, jubelt P s . 100) Borchers,
3;
E.
Fi l nf g e i s t l i c h e Bonvin,
( Op.
eurem H e r r n"
1904-08;
Gustav
" E i n H e r z , d a s k e n n un d w e i s s i c h " ( 1 8 9 4 ) " E s i s t g e w a l t i g und i s t s t a r k " ( 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) Bothe,
Franz " S e i g e t r e u b i s i n d e n To d " ( 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) " Na ch d i r , H e r r , v e r l a n g e t mi c h " ( 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 )
Boyde,
Carl " L a s s mi c h n i c h t 1902)
* Brahms,
Johannes
im d i e n s t
e r mi i d e n "
( Op .
4,
No.
1;
(1833-1897)
"Die h e i l i g e E l i s a b e t h " (1858; fo lk s o n g ) " Der e n g l i s h e G r u s s " ( 1 8 5 8 ; f o l k s o n g ) "Marias W a l lf a h r t " (1858; folk song) "Weihnachten" (1858; f o l k s o n g ) "Dem S c h u t z e n g e l " ( 1 8 5 8 ; f o l k s o n g ) " M a d c h e n f l u c h " ( Op . 6 9 , No. 9; 1 8 7 7 ; S i e g f r i e d Kapper) " T o d e s s e h n e n " ( Op. 8 5 , No. 6; 1 8 7 8 ; Max von Schenkendorf) " Au f dem K i r c h h o f e " ( Op . 1 0 5 , No. 4 ; 1 8 8 6 ; D e t i e r von L i l i e n c r o n ) " G u n h i l d e l e b t g a r s t i l l e un d f r o mm" ( 1 8 9 4 ; folksong"
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
279
"Maria ging aus wandern" (1894; f o l k s o n g ) " De n n e s g e h e t dem M e n s c h e n " ( Op . 1 2 1 , No. 1; 18 9 6 E cc l. 3:19-22) " I c h w a n d t e mi c h und s a h e a n a l l e " ( Op . 1 2 1 , No. 2 1896; E c c l . 4 : 1 - 3 ) " 0 T o d , o T o d , w i e b i t t e r b i s t d u " ( Op . 1 2 1 , No. 3 1896; E c c l e s i a s t i c u s 4 1 : 1 - 2 ) Venn ich mit Menschen- und mit Engelszungen redete" ( Op . 1 2 1 , No. 4 ; 1 8 9 6 ; 1 C o r . 1 3 : 1 - 3 , 12-13) Brand,
C. " Ave M a r i a "
Bratsch,
J.
( f r o m Op.
( Op.
11,
No.
3;
1852-59)
Ferdinand
" 0 d u , v o r dem d i e 1890; G e i b e l )
Brede,
1852-59)
B.
" Ave M a r i a "
Braunrath,
2;
S t i i r me s c h w e i g e n "
4,
No.
Albrecht "Es i s t
Breuer,
so s t i l l
geworden"
( Op .
34;
1897)
No.
2)
B. " Au f d i c h ,
Broksch,
Bronsart
0 Herr"
(1860-67)
R. "Herr,
sei
me i n L i c h t "
( Op .
von S c h e l l e n d o r f f , I n g e b o r d
23,
(1840-1913)
Ft i nf W e i h n a c h t s l i e d e r ( Op . 11; 1 8 8 0 ) * " A b e n d l i e d " ( Op. 16, No. 1; E r n s t v .
Bruch,
( Op .
Wildenbruch)
Max ( 1 8 3 8 - 1 9 2 0 ) -"Gott!"
( Op .
15,
No.
2;
1860-67;
H.
Bo n e )
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1;
280
"An d i e h e i l i g e J u n g f r a u " ( Op . 1 7 , No. 1; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ; S p a n i s c h e s L i e d e r b u c h , t r . E. G e i b e l ) " D e r h e i l i g J o s e f s i n g t " ( Op . 1 7 , No. 2; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ; Spanisches Liederbuch, t r . Geibel) "An d e n J e s u s k n a b e n " ( Op. 17, No. 3; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ; Spanisches Liederbuch, t r . Geibel) "An d i e h e i l i g e J u n g f r a u " ( Op . 1 8 , No. 3; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ) " We n n d i c h d i e S o r g e n d e s L e b e n s b e d r i i c k e n " ( Op . 4 9 , No. 4 ; 1 8 8 8 ) * " H e i m a t b i l d " ( Op . 5 9 , No. 5; C. S t i e l e r ) *Bruckner,
Ant on
(1824-1896)
" 0 du l i e b e s J e s u K i n d " ( 1 8 4 5 ) "In j e n e r l e t z t e n der Nachte" (1848) " Ave M a r i a " ( 1 8 8 2 ) Br i i c l c l ma y e r ,
F r a n z Xaver
Sechs M a r i e n l i e d e r Bu c k ,
Rudolf
(b.
( Op .
4;
1888)
1866)
" Me i n e S e e l e
diirstet
nach
Licht"
( Op .
13,
No.
1)
Bi i c h n e r , A . E . " Ave M a r i a " ( Op . " O s t e r l i e d " ( Op . " A l l e s , was d e i n 1896) Buchner,
38,
No.
Louis "Gott
Bii nte,
2 0 , No. 1; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) 2 0 , No. 3; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) G o t t d i r g i b t " ( Op .
erhore
me i n G e b e t "
(1895)
August "Bethania,
Burghardt,
du F r i e d e n s h i i t t e "
( Op .
25;
1899)
L.
Geistliche
Ge s i i n g e
( Op .
5;
before
1843)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1;
281
Burkhardt,
Chr.
"Uber
Chelius,
Nacht
Oskar
von
"Die B i b e l 1888) Christlieb,
ist
Arthur
Lied"
(Op.
6;
1883)
ein
heilige
Buch"
(op.
1,
No.
1;
Max ( b .
Franz
Festgesange
(before
1843)
(1859-1920) es
will"
( Op .
35,
No.
2;
1888)
zum M e i s t e r
der
Welt"
1852)
"Schauet hinauf 1904-08) Co mme r ,
d as
(1859-1923)
geistliche
" Wi e G o t t Clarus,
still
A.
Zwolf Claasen,
kommt
( Op .
38;
(1813-1887)
" W i l l k o m m e n , du g o t t e s S o n n e " ( Op . 3 9 , No. 6; 1 8 5 2 ) " A b e n d s e g e n " ( Op . 5 9 , No. 1) " H e r r , i c h w a r t e " ( Op . 5 9 , No. 2) 40 g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( 0 p p . 6 1 , 6 3 , 6 4 ) ^ ' " K r e u z l i e d " ( Op . 6 5 , No. 1; F r . O s e r ) * " T r o s t l i e d " ( Op . 6 5 , No. 2; O s e r ) * " L i e d a u f d e s K i n d e s T o d " ( Op . 6 5 , No. 3 ; O s e r ) * " A b e n d r u h e " ( Op . 6 7 , No. 2; O s e r ) * " S o n n t a g s f r i i h e " ( Op . 7 1 , No. 1; O s e r ) * " Me i n t o d t e s K i n d c h e n " ( Op . 7 5 , No. 1; B. H e r z e r ) ^ " H e r r , d e r d u r u f s t " ( Op . 7 6 , No. 1; O s e r ) * " A u f me i n e m L a g e r " ( Op . 7 6 , No. 2; O s e r ) * " H a t t f i c h F l i i g e l " ( Op . 7 6 , No. 3; O s e r ) " H e r r , d e i n e Magd i s t mi i de" ( Op . 8 5 , No. 1; 1 8 7 9 ) Conrad,
Johannes H i m m e l w a r t s : 12 g e i s t l i c h e
Lieder
(1901)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
282
^Cornelius,
Peter
(1824-1874)
" S c h a f e r s N a c h t l i e d " (1848; Paul Heyse) " V a t e r u n s e r , d e r du b i s t im Hi mme l " ( Op . 2 , No. 1; 1 8 5 4 - 5 5 ; P e t e r C o r n e l i u s ) " G e h e i l i g t w e r d e d e i n Name" ( Op . 2 , No. 2; 1 8 5 4 55; C o r n e l i u s ) " Zu u n s komme d e i n R e i c h " ( Op . 2 , No. 3; 1 8 5 4 - 5 5 ; Cornelius) " D e i n W i l l e g e s c h e h e " ( Op . 2 , No. 4 ; 1 8 5 4 - 5 5 ; Cornelius) " U n s e r t a g l i c h B r o t g i b u n s h e u t e " ( Op . 2 , No. 5; 1854-55; C o r n e l i u s ) " V e r g i b u n s u n s r e S c h u l d " ( Op . 2, No. 6; 1 8 5 4 - 5 5 ; Cornelius ) " A l s o a u c h w i r v e r g e b e n u n s e r n S c h u l d i g e r n " ( Op . 2 , No. 7; 1 8 5 4 - 5 5 ; C o r n e l i u s ) " F i i h r e u n s n i c h t i n V e r s u c h u n g " ( Op . 2 , No. 8; 1854-55; C o r n e l i u s ) "Erlose uns vom Ubel" ( Op . 2, No. 9 ; 1 8 5 4 - 5 5 ; Cornelius) " T r o s t " ( Op . 3, No. 6; 1 8 5 4 ; C o r n e l i u s ) " I n L u s t un d S c h m e r z e n " ( Op . 4 , No. 1; 1 8 5 4 ; Cornelius) "Am Mo r g e n " ( 1 8 5 6 - 5 9 ; C o r n e l i u s ) " Au s dem h o h e n L i e d e " ( 1 8 5 6 - 5 8 ; S o n g o f S o l o m o n ) " D i e H i r t e n " ( Op . 8 , No. 2 a , b ; 1 8 5 6 - 7 0 ; C o r n e l i u s ) "Die Konige" ( Op . 8 , No. 3 a , b ; 1 8 5 6 - 7 0 ; C o r n e l i u s ) " S i m e o n " ( Op . 8 , No. 4 ; 1 8 5 6 - 7 0 ; C o r n e l i u s ) " C h r i s t u s d e r K i n d e r f r e u n d " ( Op . 8 , No. 5; 1 8 5 6 - 7 0 ; Cornelius) " C h r i s t k i n d " ( Op . 8 , No. 6 ; 1 8 5 6 - 7 0 ; C o r n e l i u s )
Criiger,
Hugo
"Herr, Curschmann,
den i c h
Karl
tief
Friedrich
im H e r z e n t r a g e "
( Op.
10)
(1805-1841)
* " D e s Kn a b e n To d " ( Op . 1, No. 6 ; U h l a n d ) ;' -"Der Ab e n d " ( Op . 1 1 , No. 3 ; F o e r s t e r ) Fi i nf g e i s t l i c h e G e s a n g e ( Op . 2 3 ) , i n c l u d i n g A d v e n t l i e d " ( Op . 2 3 , No. 1; R i i c k e r t ; b e f o r e 1843) *"Am N e u j a h r s t a g e " ( Op. 2 3 , No. 2; Max von S c h e n k e n d o r f ; b e f o r e 1843) :!="An d i e h e i l i g e J u n g f r a u " ( Op. 2 3 , No. 3; S c h e n k e n d o r f ; b e f o r e 1843) * " M o r g e n g e b e t " ( Op. 2 6 , No. 4 ; 1 8 4 5 ; E i c h e n d o r f f )
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
283
Curti,
Franz
(1854-1898)
"Engel, 1888)
Daab,
die
lind
um P a l m e n
ihr
wallet"
( Op .
16;
H. " De r H e r r
Damlce,
Berthold
ist
me i n H i r t "
8;
1883;
Ps.
23)
(1812-1875)
"Maria Gebiirt" Deprosse,
( Op .
( Op .
41,
No.
3;
1852-59)
Ant on
"Vom Hi mmel 1878)
in
die
tiefsten
Kliifte"
( Op .
37,
No.
1;
Deschermeier, Jos. Mar i e n - B l i i t e n : Zehn L i e d e r ( Op . 3 7 ; 1 9 0 0 ) Dessauer,
Josef
zur
V e r e h r u n g Mar i e n s
(1798-1876)
" Da s G e b e t " ( 1 8 4 5 ) *" De r E i n s i e d l e r " ( E i c h e n d o r f f )
Dieckmann,
Ernst
"Friihling
Dieter,
Jahr"
( Op .
5;
1904-08)
Heinrich "Du b i s t
Doebber,
du i n G o t t e s
Johannes " Vor d i r ,
Petrus!
Fels
vom F e l s e n ! "
(1904-08)
(1866-1921) o Herr,
liegt
meine S e e l e "
( Op.
1,
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
No.
1)
284
Poring,
Heinrich "Wenn e i n K i n d l e i n f a l t e t f r omm d i e H a n d e " ( Op . 1884) " K e r r , d e n i c h t i e f im H e r z e n t r a g e " ( Op . 12; 1884)
Dorr,
9;
W. " Ave M a r i a "
Dorn, Alexander
(1833-1901)
" De s D i c h t e r s Dor n , H e i n r i c h
Gebet"
( f r o m Op.
67)
(1804-1892)
"Di e h e i l i g e "Abendgebet"
d r e i K o n i g e " ( f r o m Op. ( f r o m Op. 4 4 ; 1 8 5 2 )
9;
1845)
Dor n , O t t o "Herr, Herr, 1899) Dr aeselce,
Felix
ich
lasse
nicht
von d i r "
( Op .
43;
(1835-1913)
"Am Wege s t e h t e i n C h r i s t u s b i l d " ( Op. 1 6 , 1886) " T r e u e " ( Op . 16, No. 5 ; 1 8 8 6 ; N o v a l i s ) D r e i g e i s t l i c h e G e s a n g e ( Op . 7 5 ; 1 9 0 1 )
No.
4;
D r o s t e , A. "Gott
sei
mit
dir,
du j u n g e s
Paar"
( Op .
89;
1896)
D r u ffe l, Peter "Miide b i n
ich,
geh z u r
Ruh "
(1897)
Diir r e , W. "Herr,
das
wi i ns ch i c h m i r
zu me i n e m T o d "
( Op .
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
18 )
285
Ebeling,
M. Sechs
*Eberwein,
M.
Lieder
C.
(Spitta)
(1786-1868)
"Gute Nacht"
(E.
Geibel)
E c k a r d t , A. Sechs Gesange: 1852) Edenhofer,
Trost
in
triiben
Stunden
(Op.
16;
Alovs
Z e h n L i e d e r zu E h r e n d e r a l l e r h e i l i g s t e n M u t t e r M a r i a f u r M a i - A n d a c h t e n u nd h a u s l i c h e A n d a c h t e n (1888) E g e l , H . W.
(b.
1878)
"Was G o t t d i r g i b t , No. 3 ; 1 9 0 1 )
E h m a n n , K.
C.
E h rlich , C hristian "Geh n a c h J.
wahr a l s
Lied"
(Op.
2,
(1875)
Friedrich Emmaus"
(1810-1887)
(1886)
D.
"Deinen F rie d e n sende n ie d e r " " M i t dern H e r r n f a n g a l l e s a n " Emmerich,
Pfand"
Eberhard
"G eistliches
Eickhoff,
das
(1895) (1895)
Robert
" Lobe den H e r r n , m e i n e S e e l e " (Op. 1860-67) " G o t t s e i m i r g n a d i g " ( O p . 3 5 , No.
35, 2;
No.
1;
1860-67)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
286
"Meine S e e l e i s t 1860-67) "Es i s t so s t i l l
Engl,
P.
still
zu G o t t "
geworden"
(Op.
35,
No.
3;
( f r o m Op.
37;
1883)
Bernardin Marien-Blumen: S e c h s L i e d e r zu E h r e n d e r h e i l i g s t e n Ju n g fra u Maria (1899)
Epstein,
Julius Sechs
aller-
(1832-1926)
religiose
Gesange
(0pp.
35,36;
1880)
E r d m a n n s d o r f e r , Max ( 1 8 4 8 - 1 9 0 5 ) "Vater Erler,
He r ma n n
unser"
( Op .
33;
1902)
(1844-1918)
" A u f d i c h a l l e i n , du t r e u e r G o t t " ( O p . 2 7 , No. 1; 1903) " V a t e r , s i e h i n G n a d e n n i e d e r " ( O p . 2 7 , No. 2; 1903) "Wer w e i s s , w o h e r d a s B r i i n n l e i n q u i l l t " ( O p . 2 7 , No. 2; 1 9 0 3 ) Ernemann,
Moritz
(1800-1866)
D r e i Hymnen z u r
Eschborn,
Andacht
( Op .
18;
1852)
W.
"Gebet" Evers,
hauslichen
Karl
(1852-59)
(1819-1875)
"Wunderbar i s t mir g e s c h e h e n " ( b e f o r e 1843) " I c h hab mein Tagwerk v o l l b r a c h t " ( b e f o r e 1843) " M a c h t i g e r , d e r du d i e W i p f e l " ( b e f o r e 1 8 4 3 ) * " D e r N a c h t w a c h t e r " ( O p . 4 0 , No. 1; T h . K o r n e r ) Eyl cen,
Heinrich
van
"Vater
unser"
( Op .
19;
1902)
R eproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
287
" Wi r g l a u b e n
Fahrmann, Ernst
Hans
all
an e i n e n G o t t "
(1904-08)
(1860-1940)
" W i e h e i m l i c h e r W e i s e " (Op. 30, No. 1; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ; Morike) " Wi e t o n t d e i n Name, G o t t " ( Op. 3 1 ; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) Faisst,
Clara
(b.
1872)
"Zwei P i l g e r 1904-08) "Warum s o l l t *FaiJ3t,
Fauter,
g e h n im Dammer ung g r a u " i c h mich d enn g r ame n"
Immanuel
(1823-1894)
"Der
Psalm"
57.
( Op .
9;
(1904-08)
Otto " R ic h te mich,
Gott"
(Op.
9;
1893)
F e h la n d , C. " I c h mochte heim"
(1898)
Fehnenberger, Josef "Herr, Fehrmann,
den i c h
tief
im H e r z e n t r a g e "
Hirten
ihre
Herd
Friedrich
Ernst
"Mariens Opfer" " Au s d e n T i e f e n Fink,
3;
1880)
Paul
"Da d i e Fesca,
(Op.
C hristian "Ich
liessen"
( Op .
3;
1901)
(1789-1826) ( f r o m Op. 17; 1 8 4 5 ) r u f i c h " ( f r o m Op. 2 4 ;
1845)
(1822-1911)
folge
Jesu
nach"
(Op.
5 2;
1898)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
288
Fink,
Wilhelm "Vater
Finkennest,
unser"
(Op.
377;
1904-08)
0.
"Vernehmt mit Andacht d ie 1904-08; I s a . 9 :2 -7 ) Fischer,
Prophezeiung"
( Op .
5;
C a rl August "Bleibt
Fischer,
Karl
dem,
Ludwig
"Vater *F i s c h o f ,
bei
unser"
Robert
" Hymne"
(b.
(b.
der e u r e t w i lle n "
(1894)
1816)
(1904-08) 1856)
(Salburg-Falkenstein)
F l i e g e l , C . W. " K r e u z " ( f r o m Op. 6 ; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) " D e r h i m m l i s c h e K n a b e " ( f r o m Op.
Flinsch,
1852-59)
Carl "Die Glocken l a u t e n No. 1; 1 8 9 1 )
Fliigel,
7;
Gustav
(b.
das
Ostern
ein"
( Op .
21,
1812)
" D e r h e i l i g e J o s e f s i n g t " ( Op. 4 3 , N o . l ; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; S p a n i s c h e s L i e d e r b u c h , t r . E. G e i b e l a n d P. H e y s e ) " D i e i h r s c h w e b e t urn d i e s e n P a l m e n " ( Op . 4 3 , No. 2; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; S p a n i s c h e s L i e d e r b u c h , t r . G e i b e l and H e y s e ) " A c h , d e s K n a b e n A u g e n " ( O p . 4 3 , No. 3 ; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; S p a n i s c h e s L i e d e r b u c h , t r . G e i b e l and H e y s e ) " F i i h r m i c h , K i n d , n a c h B e t h l e h e m " ( Op . 4 3 , No. 4 ; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; S p a n i s c h e s L i e d e r b u c h , t r . G e i b e l and Heyse)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
2 89
" M i i h v o l l komm i c h u n d b e l a d e n " ( O p . 4 3 , No. 5; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; S p a n i s c h e s L i e d e r b u c h , t r . G e i b e l and Heyse) " H e r r , was t r a g t d e r B o d e n h i e r " ( Op . 4 3 , No. 6; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; S p a n i s c h e s L i e d e r b u c h , t r . G e i b e l and Heyse) ( 8 ) G e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r (Op. 52; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; F r . O s e r ) " Wi e we r d e s s e i n " ( O p . 7 3 , No. 1; 1 8 7 5 ) " H e r r , wann e n d e s t du d i e Miihe" ( Op . 7 3 , No. 2; 1875) " E i n L u t h e r w o r t " (Op. 92; 18 83 ) " S i e h e um T r o s t wa r m i r s e h r b a n g e " ( 1 8 8 9 )
Francke,
H e r ma n n
(1834-1919)
" D e r H e r r s c h a u e t vom H i mme l " ( Op . 8 6 , No. 1; 18 92 ; P s . 14) "Was b e t r i i b s t du d i c h , m e i n e S e e l e " (Op. 86, No. 2 ; 1 8 9 2 ; P s s . 3 7 , 4 2 ) Francke,
*F ranz,
Reinhold "Vater
unser,
der
du b i s t
Robert
(1815-1892)
im H i mm e l "
" Ave M a r i a " ( O p . 1 7 , No. 1) "Es s t e h t i n d e r B i b e l g e s c h r i e b e n " No. 5 ; 1 8 9 2 ) "Abends" ( E i c h e n d o r f f ) Friclce,
Richard
(b.
S.
( Op .
7;
48,
o stille
Woche "
(Op.
27;
1904-
T.
Neun g e i s t l i c h e A r i e n f i i r g o t t e s d i e n s t l i c h e h a u s l i c h e Andacht (1899) Fritze,
1895)
1877)
" S e i mir g e g r i i s s t , OS; M o r i k e ) Friedland,
(Op.
und
Wilhelm "Gebet
der
Mater
dolorosa"
(Op.
17,
No.
3;
1877)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
290
Frohlich,
Friedrich
Theodor
(1803-1836)
G e i s t l i c h e G e s a n g e (Op. 4; b e f o r e 1 843) G e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r (Op. 6; b e f o r e 1843; N o v a l i s ) " L o b g e s a n g d e r M a r i a " (Op. 9; b e f o r e 1843)
Frommel,
Otto " G e i s t l i c h e s Lied" (1890) "Zu d i r h e b i c h d i e H a n d e " ( 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) " B l u t r o t sank d i e Sonne u n t e r " ( 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) " Aus T o d e s g r i i f t e n , a u s M e n s c h e n h a n d e n " ( 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) " H e r r G o t t , zu d i e s e r S t u n d e " ( 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 )
*Fuchs,
Albert
(1858-1910)
"0 h e i l ' g e M u t t e r , No. 4 ; G e i b e l )
Gansbacher, Josef
aller
Gnaden S c h r e i n "
(Op.
(1829-1911)
"Es i s t so s t i l l g e w o r d e n " ( 1 8 9 1 ) K i r c h l i c h e G e s a n g e ( O p . 11; 1 8 9 6 ) Gassner,
Ferdinand "Das G e b e t
Geibel,
Konrad
Karl
des
(1852)
(1852-59)
(1802-1869)
Hausandachten Fr. Oser) Georg,
Herrn"
(1813-1872)
"Ave M a r i a " G eissler,
(1798-1851)
Kronprinz
in
Liedern
( Op .
120;
1852-59;
von H a n n o v e r
" G e is tli c h e s Lied" (b e fo re "In d e i n e r Ehr" (1845)
1843)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
39,
291
Gernsheim,
Friedrich
"Die Gersdorff,
ihr
C.
schwebet
um d i e s e
Palmen"
(Op.
34;
1877)
von
"In dein "Was h a b Girschner,
(1839-1916)
l e u c h t e n d e s Himmelsblau" (1897) i c h d i r g e t a n , mein Volk" ( 1 8 9 7 )
Christian
Friedrich
Johann
" D e r h e i l i g e C h r i s t " ( f r o m Op. V ier r e l i g i o s e Gesange (1852)
(1794-1860) 16;
before
1843)
G laser, C. Neun r e l i g i o s e Glaesz,
(before
vor
dem d i e
S t i i r me
schweigen"
(Op.
14)
F. "Wo L i e b e du ! F u r m i c h g i n g s t s c h m e r z e n " (Op. 17; 1 901)
Go b e 1,
1843)
Alexander "0 du,
G lass,
Gesange
du i n T o d e s -
K. "Dem H e r r n
G oepfart,
sei
Karl Eduard
Lob und E h r "
( f r o m Op.
39;
1860-67)
(1859-1942)
" A c h , e s s i n d d e r T r a n e n u n t e r dem Mond s o v i e l e " ( Op . 8 7 ; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) "Mein H e r z , l a s s e i n G r a m e n " ( 0 p . 89; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) Goering,
Hugo "Vater
unser"
(1896)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
292
Goetze,
Eduard "Her r,
Goetze,
der
du
alles
wohl
gemacht"
(Op.
3;
1900)
Louis " D e r Wi nd i s t s c h l a f e n g e g a n g e n " ( Op . 2 1 ; 1 9 0 1 ) "Was w e i n e s t d u , m e i n a r m e s H e r z " ( O p . 2 8 ; 1 9 0 1 )
^Goldmark,
Karl
(1830-1915)
"Herzelied" Goldschmidt,
(Op.
Adalbert
von
18,
No.
12;
old
Ge r ma n t e x t )
(1848-1906)
" H e u t i s t n e u d e r Tag e r s t a n d e n " ( f r o m Op. 6; 1891) "Wi e H e i m l i c h e r W e i s e " ( 1 8 9 1 ; M o r i l c e ) "In griiner L a n d s c h a ft, Sommerflor" (1891; Iiorike) "Vater des L i c h t s , Gott a l l e r S eelen " (1893) " P r e i s dem G e b o r e n e n b r i n g e n w i r d a r " ( 1 8 9 3 ) Goltermann,
Georg
(1824-1898)
" Es kommt d e r Tag d e s H e r r n " ( f r o m Op. 9 ; 1 8 5 2 ) "Ave M a r i a " ( O p . 1 0 , No. 3; 1 8 5 2 ) " G e b e t " ( O p . 12 , No. 5 ; 1 8 5 2 ) "Wo w o h n t d e r l i e b e G o t t " ( O p . 1 0 7 , No. 1; 1 8 9 0 ) " H e r r , d e n i c h t i e f im H e r z e n t r a g e " ( O p . 1 2 0 , No. 3 ; 1 8 9 4 ) " I n d i e s e r w e i h e v o l l e n S t u n d e " (Op. 131; 1898) Gordigiani,
Luigi
(1806-1860)
" F e s t , h o c h , und r e i n " ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; I d a G r a f i n Hahn-Hahn) "Wenn d i e S p o t t e r h o h n e r " ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; H a h n - K a h n ) " F iirc h te n i c h t d i e T ra n e n " ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; Hahn-Hahn) " S e i g e g r i i s s t d u r c h d i e s e L i e d e r " ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; HahnHahn ) G otthard,
Johann
Peter
(1839-1919)
" V a t e r u n s e r " (Op. 97; 1 8 92 ) " G e g r i i s s e t s e i M a r i a " (Op. 98;
1892)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
293
Graben-Hoffmann, Gustav
(1820-1900)
* " D e i n Name, o H e r r " ( f r o m Op. 7 9 ; 1 8 7 8 ; P s . 7 1 : 2 2 ) "Ave M a r i a " ( O p . 7 9 , No. 1 6 ; 1 8 7 8 ) * " G e b e t d e r M a r i a S t u a r t " ( O p . 8 7 ; t r . Achi m von W interfeld) D r e i W i e h n a c h t s l i e d e r (Op. 1 0 3 ) , i n c l u d i n g * " 0 du s e l ' g e W e i h n a c h t s z e i t " ( O p . 1 0 3 , No. 1; 18 7 8; 0 . F. G e n i s c h e n ) * " S t e r n von B e t h l e h e m , o s c h e i n e " ( O p . 1 0 3 , No. 3; 1 8 7 8 ; E d u a r d D u l l e r ) G rad en er, Carl
Georg P e t e r
"Es g i n g M a r i a No. 4 ; 1 8 7 6 ) Grassner,
in
d e n Mo r g e n h i n e i n "
(Op.
45,
Richard
"Laut Grafmiiller,
von d e n B e r g e n h a l l e t
nieder"
(Op.
25;
1896)
J.
"Wenn d i e M u t t e r 1852-59) G retscher,
(1812-1883)
betet
fur
die
Kind"
(Op.
59;
Philipp
" G o l d e n s c h w e b e s t du h e r n i e d e r " ( Op . 3 4 , No. 1; 1904-08) "Zu B e t h l e h e m im A b e n d s c h e i n " ( O p . 3 4 , No, 2; 1904-08) G riesbacher,
C.
"Vater
Gr i mm,
Julius
unser"
Otto
"Gebet"
( Op .
1;
1892)
(1827-1903)
( f r o m Op.
3;
1852-59)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
29 4
Grosheim,
Georg C h r i s t o p h
Pie *Gross,
zehn Gebote
(before
Johann Benjamin " Der
Gruber,
142.
(1764-1841) 1843)
(1809-1848)
Buss-Psalm
Davids"
( Op .
2)
Jakob " V a t e r u n s e r " ( Op . 3 3 , No. 1; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) " G o t t b e n e d e i t e , m i l d e H i m m e l s b r a u t " (Op. 3 3, No. 2; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) " M a r i a , du b i s t m i r n a c h G o t t " ( O p . 3 3 , No. 3; 1904-08)
Griitzmacher , F r i e d r i c h
(1832-1903)
"Palmen des F r i e d e n s "
Giitli,
J.
29;
1852-59)
(Op.
36;
1896)
Ludwig
"R ecitative Gunther,
( Op .
and A r i a "
Richard " H e r r , d e i n Leben kann n i c h t enden" "Ob a u c h d e i n e S o n n e s i n k t " ( 1 9 0 3 )
G ulbins,
(1903)
Max ( 1 8 6 2 - 1 9 3 2 )
:‘-"Du h a s t d e i n e S a u l e n d i r a u f g e b a u t " ( O p . 2 9 , No. 1; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ; A u g u s t M a h l m a n n ) *" Und l i e b e v o l l d e i n Auge s c h a u t " ( O p . 2 9 , No. 2; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ; M a h l m a n n ) * D e r du e w ' g e L i e b e b i s t " ( O p . 2 9 , No. 3; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ; Ma h l ma n n ) *" Kommt , E n g e l , a u s d e n h e i l ' g e n H o h ’ n ! " ( O p . 2 9 , No. 4 ; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ; M a h l m a n n ) * " L a s s A e h r e n r e i f e n im S o n n e n s t r a h l ! " ( Op . 2 9 , No. 5 ; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ; M a h l m a n n ) * " D e r d u , von r e i n e n G e i s t e r n u m g e b e n " ( O p . 2 9 , No. 6 ; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ; M a h l m a n n ) " ■ " He r r , H e r r , u n s r e Z u v e r s i c h t ! " ( O p . 2 9 , No. 7; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ; Mahlmann)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
295
" S o nimm d e n n m e i n e H a n d e " ( Op . 6 0 , No. 1; Hausmann) " L a s s d i c h , H e r r J e s u C h r i s t " ( Op . 6 0 , No. 2; J o h . Hermann) " M e i n e S e e l e s e n k e t s i c h " ( O p . 6 0 , No. 3 ; J o h . Jos. Winkler) " Nu n , m a t t e r L e i b " ( Op . 6 0 , No. 4 ; C h r i s t . Scriver) " Wi e w i r d u n s s e i n ! " ( O p . 6 0 , No. 5 ; P h . S p i t t a ) " S e i d e i n g e d e n k " ( O p . 7 8 , No. 1; K. G e r o k ) " E r h a t ' s g e h o r t " ( Op. 7 8 , No. 2 ; E. G. W o l t e r s d o r f ) "Wo du h i n g e h s t " ( O p . 7 8 , No. 3 ; Book o f R u t h ) "Was G o t t z u s a m m e n f i i g t ” ( O p . 7 8 , No. 4 ) Gumbert,
Ferdinand
(1818-1896)
"Kein H alm lein w a c h te t auf Erden" 1852-59) " Da s b e s s e r e L a n d " ( f r o m Op. 8 4 ) Gurland,
( f r o m Op.
83;
P. " I c h w i l l i n G o t t m i c h f a s s e n " ( O p . 13; 1 8 8 9 ) " O s t e r n , O s t e r n , F r i i h l i n g s w e h e n " (Op. 17; 1896)
Habert,
Johannes
Evangelista
9_ M a r i e n l i e d e r und 15 r e l i g i o s e L i e d e r Ilackel,
Anton
W eihnachtslieder (Op. 6)
(Op.
2)
(1799-1846)
"Gebet" Hacker,
(1833-1896)
Denedikt
( f r o m Op.
37;
1852)
(1769-1829)
" H e r r G o t t , d i c h l o b e n w i r " ( b e f o r e 1843) Samml u ng d e u t s c h e r K i r c h e n g e s a n g e ( b e f o r e 1 8 4 3 ) S e c h s G e s a n g e v o r und n a c h dem H e i 1 i g e n S e g e n llaser , Karl
(b.
"Gebet"
1777) (Op.
17;
1860-67)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
296
*H aser,
Wilhelm "Abendlied" (M atthisson) " R o ma n z e vom s c h l a f e n d e n C h r i s t u s - K n a b e n " Griineisen ) " T i e f e s Grab" (G riineisen)
Hagemann,
(Carl
Julius
" E s i s t s o s t i l l g e w o r d e n " ( O p . 5 , No. 2; 1 8 9 7 ) " G r o s s e r , m a c h t i g e r , h e i l i g e r V a t e r " (Op 13, No. 1; 1 9 0 2 ) " L a s s t e r t o n e n J u b e l k l a n g " ( Op . 1 3 , No. 2 ; 1 9 0 2 ) ilahn,
Albert
(1828-1880)
"Diistre
Schatten
wallen"
( Op .
17;
1879)
K a i l e , Eugen "Wenn d i c h 1899) Haine,
Carl
(b.
dein
Heiland
fragt"
(Op.
No.
3;
1830)
" L e i t e mi ch i n d e i n e r W a h r h e i t " (Op. 1893) " B a r m h e r z i g und g n a d i g i s t d e r H e r r " No. 2 ; 1 8 9 3 )
Haller. Michael
12,
68, ( Op .
No.
1;
68,
(1840-1915)
Zwei M a r i e n l i e d e r ( O p . 1 7 a ; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) " V e r g i s s m e i n n i c h t " ( O p . 3 2 , No. 4 ; 1 8 8 5 ; W. v . Bor n ) " M a r i e n b l u m e " ( Op . 3 2 , No. 5 ; 1 8 8 5 ; B o r n ) "heimweh" ( Op . 3 2 , No. 6 ; 1 8 8 5 ; B o r n ) " A n g e l u s D o m i n i I " ( O p . 3 2 , No. 7 ; 1 8 8 5 ; B o r n ) " M e i n e L i e b e " ( O p . 3 2 , No. 8 ; 1 8 8 5 ; B o r n ) " A n g e l u s D o m i n i I I " ( O p . 3 2 , No. 9 ; 1 8 8 5 ; B o r n ) "Neeresstern" ( O p . 3 2 , No. 1 1 ; 1 8 8 5 ; B o r n ) " K o n i g i n d e r S c h m e r z e n " ( Op . 3 2 , No. 1 2 ; 1 8 8 5 ; Bor n ) " M a t e r l a c r y m o s a " ( O p . 3 2 , No. 1 3 ; 1 8 8 5 ; B o r n ) " M a r i a im R o s e n h a g " ( O p . 3 2 , No. 1 7 ; 1 8 8 5 ; B o r n ) " P i e t a " ( Op. 3 2 , No. 1 6; 1 8 8 5 ; B o r n )
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
297
Hamel,
Eduard
(b.
"Stamm
Hamma, F r i d o l i n "Gott,
1811)
mit
dem
Pilgerfuss"
B.
(b.
1818)
mein T r o s t "
Hammerstein, Hertha
von
"Was s u c h e t (1904-08)
ihr
^Harder,
August
( Op .
(Op.
56;
42;
1886)
1852-59)
den L e b e n d i g e n
bei
den T o t e n ? "
(1775-1813)
" W i n t e r l i e d " ( 1 8 0 7 ; F r i e d r i c h Adolph Krummacher) "Das W or t" ( 1 8 0 7 ; Krummacher) " D e r f r o mme H i r t " ( 1 8 0 7 ; K r u m m a c h e r ) " Da s K i r c h l e i n " ( 1 8 0 7 ; K r u m m a c h e r ) " W i n t e r l i e d " ( 1 8 1 1 ; Krummacher) "Der B l i n d e " ( 1 8 1 1 ; Krummacher) " Da s L i c h t " ( 1 8 1 1 ; K r u m m a c h e r ) " J e h o v a h s Wort" ( 1 8 1 1 ; Krummacher) "D ie Ahnung" ( 1 8 1 1 ; Krummacher) " L i e d " ( 1 8 1 1 ; Krummacher) "Die P r o p h e t e n d e r N a t u r " ( 1 8 1 1 ; Krummacher) llartenstein,
Franz
"Wenn G o t t
so w i l l "
(Op.
1 5;
1878)
Ha r t i g Sechs L ieder Hartmann,
an C h r i s t u s
(1845)
Georg
" M i t f rommem S i n n b i n i c h Des J a h r e s f e s t l i c h e T a g e B ild (1885)
e r g e b e n " ( o p . 39; 1885) i n L i e d , G e s a n a und
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
298
Hartmann,
Johann
Peter
Emilius
"Die H e i l i g e d r e i Op. 3 5 ; 1 8 4 5 ) H a r t m a n n vo n An d e r
Konige aus Morgenland"
(Carl
Eichwede)
Philipp "Es
ist
H aselhorst,
Max
so
still
geworden"
" I h n M e n s c h e n b r i i d e r , wer Hasse,
(from
L a n - H o c h b r u n n , P.
"An d e n H e i l a n d " Hartung,
(1805-1900)
(Op.
ihr
7,
seid"
No.
2;
(Op.
4;
1886)
1878)
Gustav "Kein Ilalm lein w achst au f 1877)
Hauptmann,
Moritz
Erden"
(Op.
27,
No.
6;
(1792-1868)
"Von d e r S c h o p f u n g a n " ( f r o m Op. 1 9 ; b e f o r e 1 8 4 3 ) * " C a n z o n e t t a a l i a Ma d o n n a d i F r a s c a t i " ( O p . 5 8 , No. 1; a n o n y m o u s t r a n s l a t i o n o f I t a l i a n t e x t ) * " Av e M a r i a " ( O p . 5 8 , No. 2 ) * " Tr a u u ng s g e s a n g " *"Trauungslied " (P h ilip p S p itta ) llecht,
Gustav
(b.
" L a s s mich Hegele,
1851) i mme r
stiller
werden"
(Op.
36;
1896)
Ernst "Wenn d e r H e r r e i n K r e u z e s c h i c k t " ( O p . 8 , No. 1894) " L i e b s t e r M e n s c h , wa s ma gs b e d e u t e n " ( Op . 8 , No. 2; 1 8 9 4 )
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1;
299
Heiser,
Wilhelm "Wenn
Heitmann,
(b.
einst
18 17) dir
in
(from
Op.
218;
1879)
Gott
der
H errlichkeit"
(Op.
14)
E.
"Es f l a c k e r n
Bering,
Welt"
M.
" L e h r mich b e t e n , Henzmann,
der
Karl
Eduard
im G o t t e s h a g e "
(Op.
4;
1889)
(1807-1879)
Zehn L i e d e r (Op. 24; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; S p i t t a ) " E s l a u t e t zum G e b e t " ( O p . 2 8 , No. 2; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) "Dem A l l g e g e n w a r t i g e n " ( O p . 9 5 , No. 1; 1 8 9 5 ) " D e r du m i t dem To d e g e r u n g e n " ( O p . 9 5 , No. 2; 1895) " M i t H e i l g e m S c h a u e r n " ( O p . 9 5 , No. 3 ; 1 8 9 5 ) " A u g e n b l i c k d e i n e r E r b a r m u n g e n " ( O p . 9 5 , No. 4 ; 1895) " S e h n s u c h t n a c h G o t t " ( O p . 9 5 , No. 5; 1 8 9 5 ) " G o t t e s V i i r s e h u n g " ( O p . 9 5 , No. 6 ; 1 8 9 5 ) Herman,
Reinhold
(1849-1919)
" M i t f rommem S i n n b i n i c h e r g e b e n " ( O p . 3 9 ; 1 8 9 8 ) "Nun b i n i c h d e i n , du a l l e r B l u m e n B l u m e " ( O p . 4 0 , No. 1; 1 8 9 8 ) " 0 G o l g a t h a , m i t d u n k l e m S c h a t t e n h i i l l s t du m e i n L e b e n " ( O p . 4 0 , No. 2 ; 1 8 9 8 ) " D i e i h r s c h w e b e t um d i e s e P a l m e n " ( Op . 4 0 , No. 3; 1898) Hermann,
Ha n s
(1870-1931)
- " S a l o m o " ( O p . 2 3 , No. 1; 1 9 0 3 ; H e i n e ) "Wenn d e r H e r r d i e G e f a n g e n e n Z i o n s e r l o s e n w i r d " ( Op . 4 3 ; 1 8 9 8 ; P s . 1 2 6 ) * " D e r C h r i s t b a u m im Hi mme l " ( C . M. D i e f f e n b a c h ) * "E in s t i l l e r G a r t e n " (Weber) * " I I o c h z e i t l i e d " ( V. v . S t r a u s s ) * " R a u h r e i f " (Anna R i t t e r ) * " R o s e von J e r i c h o " ( J a m e s G ru n )
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
300
Herrmann,
Willy
(b.
1868)
" E r q u i c k e m i c h m i t d e i n e m L i c h t " ( Op . 1898) " D e r du vo n dem Hi mmel b i s t " ( Op. 2 9 ,
29,
No.
No.
2;
1; 1898)
I l e r w a i t , A. " H e r r , w i e l a n g e w i l l s du m e i n e r s o g a n z v e r g e s s e n " ( 1 8 9 5 ; P s . 13) " S c h a u e d o c h und e r h o r e m i c h " ( 1 8 9 5 ; P s . 1 3 ) "Wenn i c h r u f e zu d i r , H e r r , m e i n G o t t " ( 1 8 9 5 ; P s . 28) " G e l o b e t s e i d e r H e r r " ( 1 8 9 5 ; P s . 28) " I c h h e b e m e i n e Augen a u f " ( 1 8 9 5 ; P s . 1 2 1 ) " Wi e g r o s s i s t d e i n e G i i t e , o K e r r " ( 1 8 9 5 ; P s . 1 3 1 ) *Iierzog, Johann Georg ( 1 8 2 2 - 1 9 0 9 )
]_ g e i s t l i c h e A r i e n ( O p . 4 3 ; 1 8 6 9 ) " M o r g e n l i e d " ( O p . 5 0 , No. 1; 1 8 7 9 ; P a u l G e r h a r d t ) " D e r H e r r i s t m e i n I i i r t " ( O p . 5 0 , No. 2; 1 8 7 9 ; P s . 23) " A b e n d l i e d " ( O p . 5 0 , No. 3 ; 1 8 7 9 ) " A r i e " ( O p . 5 0 , No. 4 ; 1 8 7 9 ) " P a s s i o n s g e s a n g " ( O p . 5 0 , No. 5 ; 1 8 7 9 ; G e r h a r d t ) " S e e l e , was e r m i i d s t du d i c h " ( Op . 5 0 , No. 6 ; 1 8 7 9 ) " D e n n o c h b l e i b i c h s t e t s a n d i r " ( Op. 5 0 , No. 7; 1879) " A r i e " ( Op . 5 0 , No. 8 ; 1 8 7 9 ) "Arie" ( Op . 5 0 , No. 9 ; 1 8 7 9 ; P s . 2 5 : 1 6 , 20 a n d an a n o n y m o u s poem) " H e r r , w i e du w i l l s t " ( Op . 5 0 , No. 1 0 ; 1 8 7 9 ) " I c h r i e f d e n H e r r n i n m e i n e r Mot " 2 W eihnachtslieder Herzogenberg, Heinrich G eistliche Kesselmann,
(1843-1900)
Gesange
(Op.
89;
1896)
L.
Sechs Zwolf
geistliche geistliche
Lieder Lieder
(1899) (1901)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
H essling,
M» v .
" Wi e G o t t w i l l " *H etsch,
( f r o m Op.
16;
1852-59)
L. " Ave M a r i a "
Heuberger,
Richard
(1850-1914)
"Die Glocken l a u t e n "Der J u n g f r a u D i l d " Heuchemer,
lleuler,
Johannes
(b.
(1877) 1885)
1826)
"Gebet"
( f r o m Op.
Ra i mu n d
(b.
Vier
das O stern e in " ( Op . 2 4 , No. 5 ;
2;
1852)
1872)
M arienlieder
( Op .
26;
1904-08)
Heyniann-Rheineck " I i e r r , d e r du vom s c h w e i g e n d e n H i m m e l " No. 2; 1 8 8 4 ) Hildach,
Eugen
(Op.
6,
(1849-1924)
*"Wo du h i n g e h s t " ( O p . 8 ; 1 8 9 9 ; R u t h 1: 1 6 - 1 7 ) " S c h o n s t e r H e r r J e s u , l l e r r s c h e r a l l e r E n d e " (Op 23; 1899) "Ver ni mr a e s , l i e b e C h r i s t e n h e i t " ( O p . 3 2 , No. 1 1904-08) " C h r i s t i s t g e b o r e n " ( O p . 3 2 , No. 2 ; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) " I c h b i n d u r c h d i e W e l t g e g a n g e n " ( O p . 3 2 , No. 1904-08) *"W eihnacht" ( J u l i u s Sturm)
H ildebrandt,
Ulrich
" 0 we h ,
diese
Not"
(Op.
10)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
3 02
Hiller,
Ferdinand
(1811-1885)
"An d i e H e i l i g e J u n g f r a u " ( f r o m Op. 1 1 ; 1 8 9 1 ) * " D e r 1 2 6 . P s a l m " ( O p . 2 7 , No. 2) * " H e r r , d e n i c h t i e f im H e r z e n t r a g e " ( O p . 4 6 , No. 1; 1 8 9 1 ; E m a n u e l G e i b e l ) * " D i e W a l l f a h r t n a c h K e v l a a r " (Op. 8 3; H e i n e ) * " D e r K i n d e r e n g e l " ( O p . I l l , No. 1 1 ) * " M i t t e r n a c h t " ( O p . 1 2 9 , No. 3; R i i c k e r t ) * " M a r i a , du w o l l t ' w a n d e r n " ( O p . 1 4 9 , No. 4 ; D i t f u r t h ' s c h e Sammlung) Hillmann,
E.
" Ave M a r i a " Himmel,
Friedrich
(1891)
H einrich
(1765-1814)
" D a n k g e b e t n a c h dem K i r c h g a n g e d e r K o n i g i n L u i s e von P r e u s s e n " ( b e f o r e 1 8 4 3 ) " Wohl w e i n e n G o t t e s E n g e l " ( b e f o r e 1 8 4 3 ) ;;:" G e b e t w a h r e n d d e r S c h l a c h t " ( T h e o d o r K o r n e r )
H inrichs,
Franz
" Me i n G o t t (1898) H inrichs,
zum H i m m e l "
1;
1852)
auf
dich"
(from
Op.
Schar
der
bosen G e i s t e r "
(Op.
29,
Alwin "Herr,
Ronis,
hoffe
Ludwig
"Wenn d i c h d i e No. 2; 1 8 9 2 ) Hoffer,
ich
Marie
"Blicke H inzpeter,
und me in H e i l a n d ,
Heinrich "Vater
zu d i r (b.
w ill
ich
mich r e t t e n "
70;
1900)
(Op.
16;
1852)
unser"
(Op.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1889)
3 03
Hosel,
Kurt "Herr,
Hotzel,
schicke
was du w i l l s t "
( 1904-08;
Mo r i l c e )
Karl "Es z i e h t
Hoffmann,
Ludwig
v on G o t t e s (b.
Huld g e s a n d t "
(Op.
3;
1895)
1830)
" Ac h G o t t , v e r l a s s m i c h n i c h t " ( Op . 8 , No. 1; 1860-67) " G o t t , m e i n e g a n z e S e e l e " ( O p . 8 , No. 2; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ) "Wenn L i c h t und S o n n e s c h e i d e n " ( O p . 8 , No. 3; 1860-67) "Von G o t t w i l l i c h n i c h t l a s s e n " ( O p . 8 , No. 4 ; 1860-67) Hoffmann,
Oskar
"Wo du h i n g e h s t " Hofmann,
Heinrich
(op.
14;
1893)
(1842-1902)
" A l s F r e u n d e s h a n d vom K r e u z d e n H e i l a n d na hm" ( Op . 1 1 5 , No. 1; 1 8 9 4 ) "Nun m e i n e l e t z t e S t u n d e s c h l a g t " ( OP. 1 1 5 , No. 4 ; 1894) "Du B o r n , d a r a u s d e r F r i e d e q u i l l t " ( 1 8 9 9 ) Hofmann,
Richard " I c h w e i s s , d a s s mich d e r No. 3 ; 1 8 8 1 )
Hohfeld,
liebt"
(Op.
37,
Carl "Kommt a l l e h e r zu m i r " "Wo du h i n g e h s t " ( 1 8 9 5 )
11oh f e l d ,
Hi mmel
(1895)
Otto "Kein H alm lein 1878)
wachst auf
Erden"
(Op.
5,
No.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
3;
304
Hollaender,
Alexis
"Vater H olstein,
(1840-1924)
unser"
F r a n z von
( Op .
55;
1898)
(1826-1878)
"Wenn G o t t a u c h n i e v e r g o n n t e " ( Op. 1881) " Ave M a r i a " ( O p . 1 1 , No. 4 ; 1 8 8 1 ) Hoppe,
No.
3;
Paul "Madonna,
Horn,
11,
August
wunderholdes
Bild"
( Op.
28;
1891)
(1825-1893)
"Was h a t s i c h d e n n g e g e b e n " ( Op . 4 7 , No. 1; 1 8 8 2 ) " 0 , i s t d a s e i n e g r o s s e L u s t " ( Op . 4 7 , No. 2; 1882)
l l uf t o ,
H.
"Gib m i r B e s t a n d i g k e i t " Hummel ,
Ferdinand
(1852-59)
(1855-1928)
" D i r , H e r r , s e i d i e s e s I l aus g e w e i h t " ( Op . 1902) * " A l l m a c h t i g e r , d i c h p r e i s e n w i r " (Op. 83; Felix P h ilip p i) ^Humperdinck, E n g elb ert
73; 1903;
(1854-1921)
" S o n n ta g s r u h e " (1895; J u l i u s Sturm) " D e r S t e r n von B e t h l e h e m " ( 1 9 0 0 ; Hedv/i g Humperdinck) "An d a s C h r i s t k i n d " ( 1 9 0 5 ; H. K a r s t e i n ) " Da s L i c h t d e r W e l t " ( 1 9 0 5 ; O t t o J a k o b i ) " C h r i s t k i n d l e i n s W i e g e n l i e d " ( 1 9 0 6 ; Das Kn a b e n Wunder h o r n ) " A l t d e u t s c h e s W e i h n a c h t s l i e d " ( 1 9 1 2 ; 15 5 0 t e x t )
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
3 05
Irrgang,
Bernhard " B l e i b e b e i M i r , e s w i l l Abe nd w e r d e n " ( O p . 2 , No. 1; 1 8 9 9 ) "Da e r g e s t r a f t und g e m a r t e t w a r d " ( O p . 2 , No. 1899; I s a . 53, 54)
Irrgang,
Wilhelm
(b.
"Ich klopfe Israel,
Carl
2:
1836) a n zum H e i l i g e
Advent"
(Op.
34;
1894)
(1841-1881)
" 0 d u , v o r dem d i e S t i i r me s c h w e i g e n " ( Op . 1 0 , No. 2 b ; 1 8 8 0 ) " D i c h , H e r r , e r l c e n n i c h im S t e r n e n d o m " ( O p . 15, No. 1; 1 8 8 1 ) *J a d a s s o h n , S alomon
(1831-1902)
"Erlcennt, dass P s . 100) :;,:J a h n s ,
Friedrich
der
Wilhelm
Herr
ist
(Op.
60;
1884;
(1809-1888)
" W a n d r e r s N a c h t l i e d " ( Op . " D e r S o l d a t " ( Op . 1 3 , No.
Jakobi,
Gott"
13, 5)
No.
2;
Goethe)
Martin "Nach s c h w e r e r I r r f a h r t l a n g e n , b a n g e n S t u n d e n " ( O p . 1 8 , No. 1; 1 8 9 9 ) " S c h o n f a n g t e s a n z u d a m m e r n " ( O p . 1 8 , No. 2 ; 1899) " S a g t a n , wie h e i s s t d i e R i c h t s t a t t h e i l i g e r S c h r e c k e n " ( O p . 3 4 , No. 1; 1 9 0 3 )
Janetschek,
Alois
" Aus d e r T i e f e r u f e 1902; P s . 129)
ich
zu d i r ,
Herr"
( Op .
19b;
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
306
Jansen,
Friedrich "Suchst
Jensen,
Adolf
Gustav
(1831-1910)
du d e n F r i e d e n "
(1837-1879)
* " E n g e l g e s a n g " ( O p . 2 3 , No. 3 ; H e n r i k H e r t z ) "Dem A r me n , dem n i e m a l s d i e F r e u d e g e l a c h t " ( O p . 2 3 , No. 1 6 ) * " D i e K e i m k e h r " ( O p . 4 0 , No. 6 ) Jessel,
Leon
(1871-1942)
"Welche i c h 1903) Jonas,
habe,
bete,
f r omm und l e i s e "
ich"
(Op.
145;
(Op.
1 8;
1875)
Theodor " 0 d u , v o r dem d i e No. 1 ; 1 8 8 6 )
Kahn,
ziichtige
Ernst "Bete,
Kahle,
lieb
Robert
Stiirme
schweigen"
(op.
21,
(1865-1951)
^ " N o v e m b e r f e i e r " ( O p . 2 0 , H e f t 1 , No. 2 ; K. " G e b e t " ( O p . 2 2 , H e f t 2, No. 1; 1 8 9 0 ) " 0 g u t e r G o t t , d e r Me n s c h l i e g t i n g r o s s e r ( O p . 6 3 , No. 1)
Allmers) Not"
K a i n e r , G. "Reich geseg net
sei
dei
Stunde"
(Op.
24;
1898)
K ainersdorfer, C lotilde "0 s a n e t i s s i m a " (Op. 32; 1880) " Ave M a r i a " ( O p . 4 5 ; 1 8 7 8 ) Z e h n W e i h n a c h t s l i e d e r f iir Ki r c h e und Ha u s (Op. 47; 1880)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
307
Kalliwoda,
J o h a n n Wenzel
"Sei s t i l l " "Der F r i e d e
*Kaminski,
Ch .
(Op. 7, Gottes"
No. 6 ; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) ( O p . 7 9 , No. 5 ;
(Ruth)
E.
Stunden
K atterfeld,
der
Einsamkeit
und A n d a c h t
(1845)
Julius
" I c h w e i s s es l c l a r " (Op. 21; 1882) " K e h r e w i e d e r , d e r du d o c h v e r l o r e n 1881) Kauffmann,
1845)
Heinrich
"orautlied" Kast,
(1801-1866)
hast"
Ernst
"Gebet" * Kaun,
Friedrich (Op.
1,
No.
No.
Josef
7;
so g r o s s e Anna
1879)
(1803-1856) 4;
1860-67)
Karl
Sehnsucht
doch"
(Op.
55,
R itter)
Michael
Sechs T o d t e n li e d e r K eller,
1879) No. 4 ;
Hugo ( 1 8 6 3 - 1 9 3 2 ) "Und h a b '
K eller,
25;
Emil
" G e b e t " ( O p . 1 , No. 4 ) " E i n e L i e b e lcenn i c h " ( O p . 1 1 , No. 1; " De i n L i e b e s f e u e r , a c h H e r r " (Op. 11, Kauffmann,
(Op.
(before
1843)
(1784-1855)
"Zu k a m p f e n 1845)
fur
der
Christen
Ehre"
( f r o m Op.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
11;
308
K eller,
Ludwig " D u r c h manche L a n d e r s t r e c k e t r u g i c h den Wan de rs t a b " ( O p . 4 7 , No. 1; 1 8 9 9 ) " D i e T a u b e , d i e im M o r g e n l a n d " ( Op . 4 7 , No. 2; 1899)
Kempter,
Lothar
(1844-1918)
" U n t e r m K r e u z e s t a n d M a r i a " ( O p . 2 4 , No. 1; " L i e b l i c h , K n a b l e i n , o s c h l u m m r e du s a n f t " ( O p . 2 4 , No. 2; 1 8 9 7 ) Kessler,
Joseph C hristoph
(1S00-1872)
Sechs g e i s t l i c h e L ieder "Anfangs w o l l t ic h f a s t 59) Ketschau,
Wilhelm
*"Wo du (Op. "Wandle ( Op . K indler,
(Op. 33; 1852) v e r z a g e n " (Op.
1852-
h i n g e h s t , da w i l l i c h a u c h h i n g e h e n " 5; R u t h 1 : 1 6 - 1 7 ) l e u c h t e n d e r und s c h o n e r , O s t e r s o n n e " 9; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 )
Paul
Adolf
allerseligsten
Jung
(1858-1936)
M arienlieder
K la u w e l l , Adolf
(Op.
32;
1894)
(1851-1917)
" A l l e s m i t G o t t " ( f r o m Op. " A b e n d g e b e t " ( f r o m Op. 1 8; K lein,
53;
(1805-1869)
M a r i e n l i e d e r zu E h r e n d e r f r a u (Op. 3 9; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) K irchl,
1897)
Bernhard
18; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) 1852-59)
(1793-1832)
V i e r g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( O p . 2; * " W a n d e r e r s N a c h t l i e d " ( Op . 1 5 ; " l i y mn u s " ( Op. 3 9 ; 1 8 3 2 ; P s . 9)
1819) 1827;
Goethe)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
309
G e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r von N o v a l i s ( Op . 4 0 ; b e f o r e 1 8 4 3 ) "Ave M a r i a " ( f r o m Op. 4 6 ; 1 8 9 6 ) "Der 23. P s a lm " ( 1 8 9 6 ) *" Du b i s t e i n L i c h t i n t i e f e r N a c h t " ( P s a l m paraphrases) *Gott ist unser Zuversicht und Starke" ( P s a l m paraphrases) * " H e r r G o t t , mein H e i l a n d " (Psa lm p a r a p h r a s e s ) * " Lo be den l i e r r n , m e i n e S e e l e " ( P s a l m p a r a p h r a s e s ) * " Wi e l i e b l i c h s i n d d e i n e W o h n u n g e n , H e r r Z a b a o t h " (Psalm p a r a p h r a s e s ) *"rlymne"
K lein,
(L.
Rellstab)
Bruno Oskar " S c h w a c h und s i i n d i g w i e i c h b i n " ( O p . 4 8 , No. 1; 1899) " D i e S t i mme J e s u s p r a c h z u m i r " ( O p . 4 8 , No. 2; 1899) " M a h e r m e i n g o t t zu d i r " ( O p . 4 8 , No. 3 ; 1 8 9 9 ) " S o w i e i c h b i n , n u r w i e i c h b i n " ( O p . 4 8 , No. 4 ; 1899) *"Wanderers N a c h tlie d " (Goethe)
Klengel,
Paul
(1854-1935)
"Von S u n d e r
belastet"
(Op.
32;
(1860-67;
Spitta)
1903)
K l i e r , K. F i i nf L i e d e r Klughardt,
Aup. ust
(1847-1902)
" 0 d u , v o r dem d i e S t i i r me s c h w e i g e n " ( Op . 2 9 , No. 4 ; 1 8 8 3 ) "Am T a g e A l l e r s e e l e n " ( O p . 3 1 , No. 1; 1 8 7 6 ) " G o t t s e i m i r g n a d i g n a c h d e i n e r Giite" (Op. 80, No. 1; 1 9 0 0 ; P s . 5 1 ) " H e r r , u n s e r G o t t , d e r du a l l e i n g e r e c h t , a l l mac h t i g b i s t " ( 1 9 0 3 ) Knebel-Doberitz "Gott i s t "Tu e i n e n "Nun r u h t
mein F r i e d e n " ( 1 8 7 9 ) S c h r i t t zum a n d e r n " ( 1 8 7 9 ) d i e Welt mit S chw eigen" (1879)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Koch,
Matthaus "0 G o t t , V a t e r i n E w i g k e i t " (Op. 2; 1 897) " S e e l e n , b e u g e t e u c h " (Op. 32; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) " V a t e r , wenn am L e b e n s w e g e " ( O p . 5 0 ; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 )
Kocher,
Conrad
(b.
1786)
"0 N a c h t, o T a g e s g r a u e n " ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) "Nimm m i r a l l e s " ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) "Kerr, h i l f t r a g e n ” (1852-59) " G e h e h i n , unci s i e l i " ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) " G r o s s s i n d d i e Wogen" ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) " D e i n W o r t , o H e r r , im I i u n d e " ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) Kohler,
Ernst " G r o s s s i n d d i e Wogen" ( O p . 6 , No. "Wenn e i n L i e b e s d i r d e n T o d " ( O p . 1904-08)
1; 6,
1904-08) No. 2 ;
Koemmenich, Lo u is "Herr Kohlmann,
des Himmels"
6;
1897)
Otto
" Wi e i s t Kolle,
(Op.
d o c h o h n e Ma s s und Z i e l "
(1904-08)
Theodor " D i e W e l t , s i e i s t k e i n T r a u e r h a u s " (Op. No. 5; 1 8 9 0 ) " S i n d w i r a u c h w e i t g e s c h i e d e n " (Op. 2 0, 1890)
Kortenbach,
20, No.
6
Rudolf
"Wenn b e i m G l a n z d e r
Sterne"
( Op .
21;
1885)
Ko t h e , A l o i s " Ave M a r i a "
(1881)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
311
Kralilc,
Mathilde
von
"Einstm als v e r li e s s T aufer" (1898) Kr a 1 1 ,
das
bergige
Land G a l i l a a
der
J . "Vater unser" (1860-67) " F r o mme s V e r t r a u e n " ( 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ) "B u sslied " (1860-67) "M arienlied" (1860-67)
Krause,
E. "Am A b e n d " ( Op . 1 0 , No. 1; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ) " E r m u t i g u n g " ( O p . 1 0 , No. 2 ; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ) " S e i g e t r e u b i s i n d e n T o d " ( Op . 1 0 , No. 1860-67) " N a c h f e i e r " ( O p . 1 0 , No. 4 ; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 )
Krause,
*Krebs,
Theodor
(b.
"Es
so s t i l l
ist
Karl August "Vater
Kretzschmer,
" Ave M a r i a " Kretzschmar,
1833) geworden"
(Op.
19;
1880)
(1804-1SS0)
unser"
Edmund
3;
(1879)
(1830-1908) ( Op .
20;
1875)
Ha n s
"Wi e e i n e i l l ume i n 1904-08)
m ilder
Nacht"
(Op.
13,
No.
2;
Kr i c h , ii e 1 e n e "Uber
Nacht
sind
wir
alt
geworden"
( Op .
25;
1892)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
312
Krigar,
Jul.
Her.
" D ie
auf
K rinniger,
den
Herrn
hoffen"
(Op.
25;
1860-67)
Franz
" D i r s i n d a l l e H e r z e n k u n d " ( O p . 11; " Ave M a r i e " ( Op . 2 7 ; 1 8 8 7 ) "0 s e i g e g r i i s s e t , K o n i g i n " ( 1 8 9 4 ) Kruse,
1880)
Jenny "Lieber
* Ktic k e n ,
gott,
Friedrich
ich
Wilhelm
bin
dein
Kind"
(1904-08)
(1810-1882)
"Ave M a r i a " ( O p . 19, No. 1; b e f o r e 1 8 4 3 ; W a l t e r S cott) " Da s Ma d c h e n v o n J u d a " ( O p . 3 4 , No. 2 ; J . W.) "Nun l a s s d i r e r z a h l e n , m e i n l i e b e s K i n d " ( O p . 5 5 , No. 2 ; 1 8 5 2 ) "Ach, G o t t , nun i s t me in Z e i t v o r b e i " (Op. 55, No. 3 ; 1 8 5 2 ; O t t o R o q u e t t e ) " L i e b ' Annchen" (Th. Kind) Ktigele , R i c h a r d S e c h s M a r i e n l i e d e r ( Op . 1 4 6 ; 1 8 9 6 ) " Es w i l l d a s L i c h t d e s T a g e s s c h e i d e n " ( f r o m Op. 177; 1897) " 0 w a r e n a l l e Bl umen m e i n " ( O p . 2 5 0 ; 1 9 0 3 ) K i i h l m a n n - R e d w i t z , Anna "Ach n e i g e , 1893) * I(iihn,
du S c h m e r z e n r e i c h e "
( Op .
7,
No.
2;
Edmund "Ich l i e b e dich in G ott" v on F a l l e r s l e b e n )
(Op.
12,
No.
4;
Hoffmann
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
313
Kiihne,
Pa u l
" Wi e w i l l i c h d i r s o w o h l t u n " ( Op . 1, 1883; B i b l e ) " F r e u e t e u c h i n d e n H e r r n " ( O p . 1, No. B ible) " O p f e r G o t t Da nk" ( O p . 1, No. 3 ; 1 8 8 3 ;
No. 2;
1; 1883;
Bible)
Kii n d i g , F . "Geduld" "Schweige "Stilie" "Leidvoll Kualer,
(1852-59) s t i l l " (1852-59) (1852-59) Herz" (1852-59)
Adolf "Wenn d e r
Kuhlenkampff,
Herr
ein
58;
1895)
St i i rr ne s c h w e i g e n "
( Op .
5,
G ottlieb "0 H e r r , l a s s 1860-67)
Kunze,
(Op.
Gustav
" 0 d u , v o r dem d i e No. 1; 1 8 8 6 ) Kunlcel,
Kreuze sch iclct"
mich n i c h t
schuldig
werden"
( Op .
Karl Drei
geistliche
Lieder
( Op.
3;
18974.
K u p fe r, Ed. " D e r Tag n e i g t
sich
zu E n d e "
(1892)
Ku r t h , Re i n h . "Bei d i r a l l e i n , 1904-08)
Herr,
ist
Erlosung"
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
3;
314
Lachner,
Franz Paul
(1803-1890)
"Am C h a r f r e i t a g " ( O p . 5 1 , No. 1; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) " M o r g e n g e s a n g " ( O p . 5 1 , No. 2; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; K l o p s t o c k ) * " M o r g e n l i e d " ( Op. 5 6 , No. 3 ; K l o p s t o c k ) * " G u t e N a c h t " ( Op. 8 4 ; E. G e i b e l ) * " E i n K i n d e r l i e d " ( Op . 9 6 , No. 6 ; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; G u i d o Gorres) *"Um M i t t e r n a c h t " ( O p . 9 6 , No. 1 1 ; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; H e i n e ) ^ " H o r g e n w a n d e r u n g " ( Op . 9 6 , No. 1 2; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; G eibel) * " D e r Tag d e s W e l t g e r i c h t s " ( Op . 9 6 , No. 1 4 ; 1 8 5 2 59) " R i c h t e m i c h , o E w i g e r " ( Op . 1 6 3 ; P s . 2 6 ) *I m A b e n d r o t h " ( C a r l L a p p e ) Lachner,
Ignaz
(1807-1895)
Fiinf c h r i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) "Aurorens R oslein" (1852-59) "An d i e M u t t e r d e r s c h o n e n L i e b e " ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) "An d i e T r o s t e r i n d e r B e t r i i b t e n " ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) Lachner,
Vinzenz
(1811-1893)
"Maria mein" L afite,
Carl
73,
No.
2;
1893)
(1872-1945)
"Durch d i e (1894) Lang,
( Op.
Josephine
zerbrochenen
alten
K irchenfenster"
(1815-1880)
" F r e u d e n s o n d e r Z a h l " ( O p . 2; 1 8 4 5 ) " So b e t e , m e i n K i n d " ( O p . 2 6 , No. 1; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ) * " L e b ' w o h l , l e b r v/ohl du s c h o n e W e l t " ( O p . 2 9 , No. 1; 1 8 6 2 ; A l b e r t Z e l l e r ) " G i b d i c h d a h i n " ( O p . 2 9 , No. 3; 1 8 6 2 ; Z e l l e r ) " I c h m o c h t e h e i m " ( Op . 4 1 ; 1 8 6 6 ) * " D i e Au gen d e r B l i n d e w e r d e n a u s dem D u n k e l und F i n s t e r n i s sehen" (1860-67) * " G o t t s e i mir Siinder g n a d i g " ( 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ) * " E s i s t n o c h e i n e Ruhe v o r h a n d e n dem V o l k G o t t e s " (1860-67) * " A r i e " ( 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ; Thomas A q u i n a s ) * " ' B l i c k n a c h o b e n ' " ( J . Hammer )
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
315
Langenbeck,
Georg
"H e r r ,
Lanz,
mein
Gott,
erbarm
dich
meiner
Seele"
(1 8 9 4 )
E. "Wiegenlied
Lasch,
der
Mutter
Gottes"
(1852-59)
Eugen "Troste
Lassen,
dich
in
deinem Leid"
(Op.
7)
Eduard " 0 g i b m i r F r i e d e n " ( O p . 5 2 , No. 4 ; 1 8 7 5 ) " D r e i B i t t e n h a b i c h f u r d e s Hi mm e l s O h r " ( O p . No. 2 ; 1 8 7 5 ) " D i e i h r d o r t w a l l e t u n t e r den P a l m e n " ( 1 8 7 5 ) " E s i s t s o s t i l l g e w o r d e n " ( f r o m Op. 8 6 ; 1 8 8 6 ) * " D a s a l t e L i e d " (H. H e i n e ) * " S e i s t i l l e " ( H e n r i e t t a von S c h o r n ) * " Sonn t a g s r uhe " *"Des J i i n g l i n g s Klage"
Leidesdorf, Maximilian Josef
81,
(1787-1840)
triiben Stunden" ( O p . 1 2 9 , No. 1; No v a 1 i s ) * " E s g i e b t s o b a n g e Z e i t e n " ( Op . 1 2 9 , No. 2; Novalis) * " I c h s a g e s j e d e m , d a s s e r l e b t " ( Op . 1 2 9 , No. 3 ; Novalis) ^ " We r e i n s a m s i t z t i n s e i n e m Rammer " ( O p . 1 2 9 , No. 4; N o v a l i s ) * " I c h s e h e d i c h i n t a u s e n d B i l d e r n " (Op 1 2 9 , No. 5; Novalis) *"Wenn alle untreu werden" ( Op . 1 2 9 , No. 6 ; Novalis) *"Wo b l e i b s t du T r o s t d e r g a n z e n We I t ? " ( O p . 1 2 9 , No. 7; N o v a l i s ) * " U n t e r t a u s e n d f r o h e n S t u n d e n " ( O p . 1 2 9 , Mo. 8 ; Novalis) *"Wenn im bangen,
Leitzen,
C.
M.
" Der H e r r
ist
mein H i r t "
(1894;
Ps.
23)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
316
Leonhardt,
J.
E.
F i i nf P s a l m e n , i n c l u d i n g " Wi e s o l i e b l i c h s i n d " Vo r d e n V o l l c e r n w i l l (Psalm) Lewalter,
d e i n e Wo h n u n g e n " ( P s a l m ) ic h bekenne d ic h , Herr"
Johann
" Da s V a t e r u n s e r " ( O p . 2 7 ; 1 8 9 4 ) "Zu d i r h i n a u f s e h n t m e i n e S e e l e " Lewandowsky,
Louis
(b.
"Es g l e i c h t Le wy,
52;
1904-08)
1823)
das M enschenleben"
( Op .
43;
1892)
Carl "Befiehl
Liehey,
dich
Gott"
(Op.
52,
No.
1;
1879)
Reinh. "Herr, schicke Morike)
Liebmann,
Liebmann,
was du w i l l s t "
( Op.
1 5;
1904-08;
Axel
"0 G o t t ,
wie dank
Helene.
Riese
Drei g e i s t l i c h e ( b e f o r e 1843) Liese,
( Op .
ich
(b.
dir"
(1878)
1796)
Lieder
fiir
innige
und s t i l l e
Seele
Richard " I c h h e b e m e i n e Augen a u f 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ; P s . 121)
Lindpainter,
Peter
Josef
von
zu den B e r g e n "
(Op.
(1791-1856)
M u t t e r g o t t e s - S t r a u s s l e i n zum H a i - M o n a t : froinme L i e d e r ( Op . 1 6 4 ; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 )
Acht
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
4;
317
*L i s z t ,
Sechs
geistliche
Franz
(1811-1886)
Lieder
(Op.
167;
1852-59)
" D e r du v o n dem Hi mmel b i s t " ( 1 8 4 3 , 1 8 5 6 , 1 8 6 0 ; Goethe) " I m R h e i n , im s c h o n e n S t r o m e " ( 1 8 4 3 , 1 8 5 6 ; H e i n e ) "Das V e i l c h e n " ( 1 8 5 7 ; J o s e p h M i i l l e r ) "Die S c h li is s e lb lu m e n " (1857; M iiller) "Und s p r i c h " ( 1 8 7 4 ; F r e i h e r r R i i d i g e r von Biegeleben) " S e i s t i l l ” ( 1 8 7 7 ; H e n r i e t t e von S c h o r n ) " G e b e t " ( 1 8 7 9 ; F r i e d r i c h von B o d e n s t e d t , a f t e r Lerm ontoff) "Der G e k r e u z i g t e " ( 1 8 8 4 , t h r e e s e t t i n g s ; V i c t o r Hugo) :!:L o e w e ,
Carl
(1796-1869)
" Da s G e b e t d e s H e r r n und d i e E i n s e t z u n g s w o r t e " (1813; B ib l e ) " G r o s s i s t d e r H e r r " ( 1 8 2 0 ; Ev/ ald C h r i s t i a n von Klei s t ) "Wenn e i n s t i c h t o t b i n " ( 1 8 2 0 ; F. G. K l o p s t o c k ) "Wenn i c h i h n n u r h a b e " ( O p . 2 2 , I l e f t 1, No. 1; 1821; N o v a l i s ) "Wenn a l l e u n t r e u w e r d e n " ( O p . 2 2 , H e f t 1, No. 2; 1922; N o v a l i s ) " H e r o d e s ' K l a g e um M a r i a m n e " ( Op . 4 , No. 1; 1 8 2 3 ; Byron, t r . Theremin) "An d e n V / a s s e r n z u B a b e l " ( Op . 4 , No. 2; 1 8 2 3 ; Byron, t r . Theremin) "War i c h w i r k l i c h s o f a l s c h ? " ( O p . 4 , No. 3; 1 8 2 3 ; Byron, t r . Theremin) " A l l e s i s t e i t e l , s p r i c h t d e r P r e d i g e r " (Op. 4, No. 4 ; 1 8 2 3 ; B y r o n , t r . T h e r e m i n ) " J e p h t h a ' s T o c h t e r " ( Op . 5 , No. 2; 1 8 2 4 ; B y r o n , t r . Theremin) " D i e w i l d e G a z e l l e " ( Op . 5 , No. 3 ; 1 8 2 4 ; B y r o n , t r . Theremin) " W e i n t um I s r a e l ! " ( O p . 5 , No. 4 ; 1 8 2 4 ; B y r o n , t r . Theremin) " S a u l v o r s e i n e r l e t z t e r S c h l a c h t " ( Op . 5 , No. 6 ; 1824; Byron, t r . T h ere m in ) " S a n h e r i b ' s N i e d e r l a g e " ( O p . 1 3 , No. 1; 1 8 2 5 ; Byron, t r . Theremin) " B e l s a z a r ' s G e s i c h t " ( O p . 1 3 , No. 2 ; 1 8 2 5 ; B y r o n , t r . Theremin) " D i e h o h ' r e W e l t " ( Op . 1 3 , No. 3 ; 1 8 2 5 ; B y r o n , t r . Theremin)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
31 8
" J o r d a n ' s U f e r " ( O p . 1 3 , No. 4 ; 1 8 2 5 ; B y r o n , t r . Theremin) " W o h i n , o S e e l e , w i r s t du e i l e n ? " ( Op . 1 3 , No. 5 ; Byron, t r . Theremin) " S a u l und S a m u e l " ( O p . 1 4 , No. 1; 1 8 2 6 ; B y r o n , t r . Theremin) " E l i p h a s ' G e s i c h t " ( Op. 1 4 , No. 2; 1 8 2 6 ; B y r o n , t r . Theremin) " D a v i d s H a r f e " ( O p . 1 4 , No. 3; 1 8 2 6 ; B y r o n , t r . Theremin) " S a u l " ( O p . 14, No. 4 ; 1 8 2 6 ; B y r o n , t r . T h e r e m i n ) " J e r u s a l e m ' s Z e r s t o r u n g d u r c h T i t u s " (Op. 14, No. 5 ; 1 8 2 6 ; B y r o n , t r . T h e r e m i n ) " D e r Gang n a c h dem E i s e n h a m m e r " ( O p . 1 7 ; 1 8 2 9 ; Schiller) " D e r H i r t e n L i e d am K r i p p e l e i n " ( O p . 2 2 , H e f t 1, No. 3 ; C h r i s t i a n F r i e d r i c h D a n i e l S c h u b a r t ) " D e r du v o n dem ll iinmel b i s t " ( O p . 9 , H e f t 1, No. 3 b ; 1 8 2 8 ; G o e t h e ) " B u s s l i e d " ( Op . 2 2 , H e f t 1, No. 4 ; 1 8 2 9 ; G e l l e r t ) " G o t t e s i s t d e r O r i e n t " ( O p . 2 2 , H e f t 1, No. 5; 1829; G o e th e ) " W e r f e t a l l e e u r e S o r g e n a u f i h n ! " (Op. 2 2 , H e f t 2 , No. 1; 1 8 3 0 ; Aug. Herrn. N i e i n e y e r ) " E n g e l s s t i m m e n am K r a n k e n b e t t e " ( O p . 2 2 , H e f t 2, No. 2 ; 1 8 3 0 ; G e p p e r t ) " D e r n a h e E e t t e r " ( O p . 2 2 , I i e f t 2 , No. 3 ; 1 8 3 0 ; Niemeyer) "Wi e g r o s s i s t d e r A l l m a c h t ' g e n G i i t e ! " ( O p . 2 2 , H e f t 2 , No. 4 ; 1 8 3 1 ; G e l l e r t ) " C h r i s t i H u l d g e g e n P e t r u s " ( 1 8 3 2 ; E l i s a v on d e r Re c k e ) " J u n g f r a u L o r e n z " ( O p . 3 3 , No. 1; 1 8 3 4 ; F r a n z Ku g 1 e r ) " D a s h e i l i g e Ha u s i n L o r e t t o " ( O p . 3 3 , No. 2; 18 3 4; Ludwig G i e s e b r e c h t ) "Des f r e m d e n K i n d e s h e i l i g e r C h r i s t " (Op. 3 3, No. 3 ; 1 8 3 4 ; F r . k i i c k e r t ) "Der g r o s s e C h r i s t o p h " (Op. 34; 1834; F r i e d r i c h Kind) " J o h a n n vo n Nepomulc" ( O p . 3 5 , No. 2 ; 1 8 3 4 ; E r n s t Anschutz) " M a r i a und d a s M i l c h m a d c h e n " ( O p . 3 6 , No. 1; 1 8 3 4 ; Aloys S c h r e i b e r ) " D e r e w i g e J u d e " ( O p . 3 6 , No. 3 ; 1 8 3 4 ; S c h r e i b e r ) " k o o s r o s l e i n " ( O p . 3 7 , No. 2 ; 1 8 3 4 ; i i e l m i n a von Chezy) " G r e g o r a u f dem S t e i n " ( O p . 3 8 ; 1 8 3 4 ; F r a n z Ku g 1 e r ) E sther: Ein L i e d k r e i s in B a l l a d e n f o r m , (1835; Ludwig G i e s e b r e c h t ) , i n c l u d i n g "Wi e f r i i h d a s e n g e P f o r t c h e n k n a r r e "
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
319
" D e r K o n i g a u f dem g o l d ' n e n S t u h l e " "Nun a u f dem f r e m d e n B o d e n " " S p i e l t , M a g d l e i n , u n t e r e u r e r Weide" " Wi e w o h n s t du i n d e s R e i c h e s S t a d t e n " " B l u m e n - E v a n g e l i u m " ( 1 S 3 6 ; C a r l von b l a n k e n s e e ) " D e r G e s a n g " ( Op . 5 6 , No. 2 ; 1 8 3 6 ; J . N. V o g l ) "Abendge'uet, nacn e i n e r e r l i t t e n e n Krankung" ( O p . 6 9 , No. 3 ; 1 8 3 6 ; v o n G e r s t e n b e r g ) " I n d e r K i r c h e " ( Op . 6 2 , I i e f t 2 , No. 2 ; 1 8 3 7 - 3 9 ; Fr. Riickert) " D a s v e r g e s s e n e L i e d " ( O p . 6 5 , No. 1; 1 8 3 7 ; J . N. Vogl) " K a r l d e r G r o s s e und W i t t e k i n d " ( O p . 6 5 , No. 3 ; 1 8 3 7 ; J . N. V o g l ) " Da s G r a b zu E p h e s u s " ( O p . 7 5 , No. 1; 1 8 3 7 ; Rudolf B inder) " D e r We i c h d o m " ( O p . 7 5 , No. 2 ; 1 8 3 7 ; R i i c k e r t ) " D e r h e i l i g e F r a n z i s k u s " ( Op . 7 5 , No. 3 ; 1 8 3 7 ; I g n a z H e i n r i c h v. W e s s e n b e r g ) " D i e L i n l a d u n g " ( O p . 7 6 , No. 1, 183 7; A l b e r t Knapp) " A l s W e i b e s a r m i n j u n g e r n J a h r e n " ( O p . 3 9 , No. 5; 1 8 3 9 ; L. G i e s e b r e c h t ) "Es s t e h t e i n K e l c h i n d e r I C a p p e l l e " (Op. 3 9, No. 4 ; 1 8 3 9 ; G i e s e b r e c h t ) " A l l m a c h t G o t t e s " ( O p . 8 9 , No. 3 ; 1 8 4 2 ; D i l i a Helena) " D e r G r a f von H a b s b u r g " ( O p . 9 8 ; 1 8 4 3 - 4 4 ; Schiller) " D i e D o r f k i r c h e " ( O p . 1 1 6 , No. 1; 1 8 4 6 ; F r e i h e r r n von Z e d l i t z ) " D e s K o n i g s Z u v e r s i c h t " ( O p . 1 1 8 ; 1 8 4 9 ; W. T e 1 s c h o w) " D i e G o t t e s m a u e r " ( Op . 1 4 0 ; 1 8 5 0 ; F r . R i i c k e r t ) " G e l o b t s e i G o t t ! " ( 1 8 5 0 ; V/. T e l s c h o w ) "Segne den Konig" ( a f t e r 1850; L a t i n "Salvum f a c r e g e m , " t r . Loewe) " D i e U h r " ( O p . 1 2 3 , No. 3 ; 1 8 5 2 ; J . G. S e i d l ) " G a n g e r s G e b e t " ( O p . 1 2 3 , No. 1; 1 8 5 2 - 5 3 ; O s k a r von R e d w i t z ) " K a i s e r O t t o ' s W e i h n a c h t s f e i e r " ( Op . 1 2 1 , No. 1; 1 8 5 3 ; i i e i n r i c l i von M i i h l e r ) "Mog ' e r e w i g w i e d e r k e h r e n " ( 1 8 5 3 ; W. T e l s c h o w ) " D e r T e u f e l " ( O p . 1 2 9 , No. 1; 1 6 5 9 ; C a r l S i e b e l ) "Dem K e r r s c h e r " ( 1 8 5 9 ; B a r t h o l d y ) "J u n g lin g s Gebet" (1859; Fr. Riickert) "Nebo" (Op. 136; 1860; F e r d . F r e i l i g r a t h ) " T i e du d e i n e S o n n e h a s t l a s s e n a u f g e h e n " ( 1 6 6 3 ; K i n g F r . W i l h e l m IV o f P r u s s i a , a f t e r A u g u s t i n e ) " S p i r i t o s a n t o " ( O p . 1 4 3 ; 1 8 6 4 ; B a r o n i n E m i l y von der G oltz) " D e r a l t e D e s s a u e r " ( O p . 1 4 1 ; 1 8 6 8 ; Hugo v . F a b e c k )
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
320
"Nordisches S eelied " (Johannes Falk) " L e t z t e r S e u f z e r " ( O t t o von B r i e s e n ) Lowenberg,
Ernst
"Herr, Loewenberg,
der
du a l l e s
wohlgemacht"
(Op.
G.
( Op .
15,
A.
Vier Liineburg,
1887)
Max
"Nun g r i i s s e t m i c h d e r G l o c k e n C h o r " No. 1; 1 8 9 6 ) Lorenz,
8;
ernst
Gesange
(Op.
58;
1900)
Eberhard
"Wenn L e i d und Kummer um d i c h s t e h n " ( f r o m Op. 1879) "Die Toten haben e i n e n in i h r e r E in s a m k e it" (Op. 47; 1890) Lux,
Friedrich
(b.
1820)
" Z a g e n i c h t , ob E r d e n s t i i r m e b r a u s e n " 1852) " E i n p o r , e mp o r zu i h m " ( 1 8 8 9 ) Lyra,
Justus
Wilhelm
1;
aufgenommen"
( 1895)
Carl
"Wenn d i c h t e r ':' i i a h l e r ,
( f r o m Op.
(1822-1882)
" 0 s e l i g l i a u s , wo man d i c h " B e th a n ie n " (1895)
Mah1 b e r g ,
15;
Gustav
sich
die
Wollcen t i i r m e n "
(1904-08)
(1860-1911)
" U r l i c h t " ( 1 8 9 2 ; Des K n a b e n Wunde r h o r n ) " Es s u n g e n d r e i h n g e l e i n e n s i i s s e n G e s a n g " 1 8 9 9 ; Des Kn a b e n W u n d e r h o r n )
(before
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
"Um H i t t e r n a c h t " ( 1 8 9 9 - 1 9 0 0 ; R i i c k e r t ) "In diesem W etter" (1905; Riickert) Mandl,
Richard
(1859-1918)
"Vom Hi mme l Marschner,
H einrich
in
die
tiefsten
August
(1896)
(1795-1861)
* " Av e M a r i a " ( Op . 1 1 5 , " G e b e t " ( O p . 1 5 4 , No. Martens,
Kliifte"
No. 1; b e f o r e 1; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 )
1843)
Wilhelm M a r i e n l i e d e r ( Op . 2; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ; H o p f ) F i i nf f r o mme L i e d e r ( Op . 1 5; 1 S 8 5 )
HMarx,
Joseph
(1882-1964)
"Wandrers N a c h t l i e d " (1906; Goethe) "Gebet" (1910; Gustav F alk e ) " M a rie n lie d " (1910; N o v alis) Maschke,
Ernst G eistliche
Lieder
( Op .
30;
1904-08)
Hayer-Enknach " Ave M a r i a " Meinardus,
(1888)
Ludwig S i e g f r i e d
(1827-1896)
" S c h i i n s t e r Herr J e s u , H e r r s c h e r a l l e r Enden" ( Op . 2 8 , No. 9 ; 1 9 0 0 ) " J e g r o s s e r K r e u z , j e n a h e r H i mme l " ( Op. 2 8 , No. 1 8; 1 9 0 0 ) Melcher,
J. Religiose
Gesange
( Op .
13;
Moves,
Spitta)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
322
(b .
^M e n d e l s s o h n , Arnold
1855)
"Konig David" (H eine) "Salomo" (Heine) *M e n d e l s s o h n , Felix ( 1 8 0 9 - 1 8 4 7 )
" E r n t e l i e d " ( O p . 8 , No. 4 ; 1 8 2 7 ; o l d c h u r c h s o n g ) " P i l g e r s p r u c h " ( O p . 8 , No. 5; 1 8 2 8 ; P a u l F l e m m i n g ) " A b e n d l i e d " ( O p . 8 , No. 9 ; 1 8 2 8 ; J . H. V o s s ) "Morgenlied" ( O p . 8 6 , No. 2; 1 8 2 8 ) " E n t s a g u n g " ( O p . 9 , No. 1 1 ; 1 8 3 0 ; J . G. D r o y s e n ) " V o l k s l i e d " ( Op . 4 7 , No. 4 ; 1 8 3 9 ; E. v . Feuchtersleben) " T r o s t u n g " ( O p . 7 9 , No. 1; 1 8 4 5 ; H o f f m a n n von Fallersleben) " N a c h t l i e d " ( O p . 7 1 , No. 6 ; 1 8 4 7 ; E i c h e n d o r f f ) Mergner,
Friedrich
(1818-1891)
* " C h ris tw ie g e n lie d " (1860; Paul G erhardt) *"Sommergesang" (1860; G e r h a r d t) :!;" W e i h n a c h t s l i e d " ( 1 8 6 0 ; G e r h a r d t ) * " B e f i e h l dem l i e r r n d e i n e W'ege" ( 1 8 7 5 ; G e r h a r d t ) 28 g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( 1 8 8 3 ; G e o r g V o g e l ) P a u l G e r h a r d t s g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r i n neuen Weisen (1885) S i e b e n J u b e l h y m n e n von d e r L i e b e C h r i s t i ( 1 8 8 5 ) 50 g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r f i i r C h o r und E i n z e l s t i m m e *M e t h f e s s e l , A l b e r t "Morgenlied" Scheie)
G ottlieb
(1785-1869)
( f r o m Op.
12;
L.
A.
Freyherr
von
Me y e r - H e l m u n d , E r i k " I c h bin No. 3; M iller,
durch 1895)
dich
w i e du d u r c h m i c h "
(Op.
120,
Julius "Paraphrase 1845)
des
allgemein
Gebetes"
( Op .
26,
No.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
2;
32 3
Mittmann,
Paul
"0 Palme, "£s bliiht
s o n n e n k l a r e " ( O p . 1 2 3 , No. d e r Blumen e i n e " (Op. 1 23,
1; 1 9 0 1 ) No. 2 ; 1 9 0 1 )
Modlmayr, J o s e f " Me i n G o t t , H olier,
dir
hab i c h
mich e r g e b e n "
(1892)
A. " S e i du m i t m i r " ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) " D e s C h r i s t e n I Cr euz" ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) " G e is tlic h e s Abendlied" (1852-59)
Mol cl c,
J.
H.
"Gebet" Molique,
( f r o m Op.
Bernhard
13;
1852)
(1802-1869)
" L o b e G o t t " ( O p . 3 9 , No. 1; 1 8 5 2 ) " I c h r u f zu d i r " ( O p . 3 9 , No. 2 ; 1 8 5 2 ) " Na c h d i r , o H e r r " ( O p . 3 9 , No. 3 ; 1 8 5 2 ) " I c h w i l l d i c h e r n o h e n " ( O p . 3 9 , No. 4 ; 1 8 5 2 ) " H i I f m i r , o G o t t " ( O p . 3 9 , No. 5 ; 1 8 5 2 ) " I c h l i e b e d e n H e r r n " ( O p . 3 9 , No. 6 ; 1 8 5 2 ) S e c h s g e i s t l i c h e G e s a n g e (Op. 4 8; 18 88 ) Moscheles,
Ignaz
"Gib uns
hiihling,
August
(1794-1870) taglich
C.
F.
W.
(Op.
131,
No.
1;
1860-67)
(17S6-1S47)
Zehn M e l o d i e n M uller,
Brot"
(b.
(1839;
Spitta)
1835)
" Gi b m i r G o t t ,
der
alles
gibt"
( f r o m Op.
12;
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1852)
324
Muller,
Donatus
Vesperhymnen M uller,
Peter
(b.
(before
1791)
L i e d e r und C h o r e z u r O sterfeie r (before Miiller,
Selmar
(b.
"Gebet"
1843)
W eihnachts-Charfreitags-oder 1843)
1819)
( Op .
1 7;
1852-59;
Geibel)
Miiller-Berghaus , E lv ira "Wenn i c h
ihn
nur habe"
(1900;
Novalis)
Mu n d , Hugo " V a t e r , d e i n e Sonne s t r a h l t Mo. 1; 1 8 8 2 ) " O s t e r l i e d " ( Op . 3 0 , No. 2; Mussa,
Viktor
gedulde
iians Georg
dich
fein"
30,
1882)
(Op.
50;
1893)
(1773-1836)
"Wandrers N a c h tlie d " (1800; " H i r t e n l i e d " (1800) "Am F e n s t e r b e i M o n d s c h e i n " N athusius,
( Op .
fim.
"Dulde,
*Mageli,
im O s t e n "
Goethe) (before
1815)
Marie
100 L i e d e r , g e i s t l i c h e und w e l t l i c h e , e r n s t h a f t und f r o h 1 i c h , c o n t a i n i n g 30 g e i s t l i c h e l i e d e r , among w h i c h a r e s i x s e t t i n g s o f N o v a l i s t e x t s
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
325
Natorp,
Paul
(1854-1924)
"Vom Ki mmel i n 1884) Neuhoff,
die
tiefsten
Kliifte"
2,
No.
Ludwig " I c h m oc hte heim, mich z i e h t s (Op. 2 0 ; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 )
*N e u n e r, C arl
Nicode,
Jean
Louis
Lied
(b.
am K r i p p l e i n "
(1814;
C hristian
(1S53-1919)
"Dich p r e i s t , Carl
zum V a t e r h a u s e "
(1778-1830)
"Der H i r t e n Schubart)
Nicola,
( Op.
A l l m a c h t i g e r " (Op.
33;
1890)
1797)
" V a t e r u n s e r " ( O p . 11 ; 1 8 7 8 ) *"Der 2 3 t e P sa lm " (Op. 41) N icolai,
Otto
(1810-1849)
"Salve * "Gebet
R e g i n a " (Op. 39; 1852) der v e r i r r t e n Jungfrau"
Ni e d e r h e i t ma n n "Wenn i c h Nitzsche,
trete"
(1852-59)
Otto
"Liegst N ossler,
vor meinen S c h o p fer
du i n
schwerer
S o r g e Bann"
(Op.
29;
1882)
Eduard " Vo r d e r T r a u u n g " "Wenn a l l e u n t r e u Novalis)
( O p . 3 0 , No. v /erden" (Op.
1; 1 8 9 6 ) 39; 1904-08;
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited w ithout permission.
2;
" J e s u s , J e s u s , n i c h t s a l s J e s u s " ( O p . 4 1 , No. 1902) " L a s s t m i c h g e h n , cl ass i c h J e s u m moge s e h n " ( O p . 4 1 , No. 2 ; 1 9 0 2 ) " W a n d e l t w i e d i e K i n d e r d e s L i c h t s " ( Op . 4 2 ; 1904-03)
Oberthiir,
Carl
(1819-1895)
"Wenn am Mo r g e n k l a t " Oechsler,
319;
1899)
Elias
Drei
Oeser,
(Op.
geistliche
Gesange
(Op.
1 2;
1897)
August "Vater
unser"
(1904-08)
O r e , Adam "Gott, O rtner,
heilger
Vater"
deinem B i l d e "
( Op .
89;
1892)
erlclingt
es
in
der
Seele"
(Op.
1;
1883)
G ottfried "Vater
Palme,
1895)
Mathilde "Sanft
Palm,
37;
A. " Wi r I cni e n v o r
Ostner,
(Op.
unser"
(1902)
Rudolph
Drei Drei
geistliche geistliche
Lieder Lieder
( Op . (Op.
40; 69;
1886) 1900)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
327
Pa ss er ,
W.
" H o c h z e i t l i e d " ( b e f o r e 1843) W e i h n a c h t s l i e d e r ( b e f o r e 1843) S e g e n l i e d e r ( b e f o r e 1843) P e r g e r , Richard
vo n
"Was i c h 1881) Peters,
in
(1854-1911) der
Kirche
gebetet"
( Op .
2,
No.
1;
Paul "Es i s t
Peuschel,
so s t i l l
Moritz
geworden"
(Op.
5;
1887)
(1838-1892)
" L a s s mich r u h n , 1893)
Herr,
an dein em H erz"
(Op.
80;
Pfannschm idt, H einrich " Z i o n s S t i l l e s o i l s i c h b r e i t e n " (Op. 9; " L e i t e m i c h an a l i e n E n d e n " ( 1 9 0 3 ) "Wohl d a s T a g w e r k i s t v o l l b r a c h t " ( 1 9 0 3 ) " Wi r s i n d d e i n V o l k " ( 1 9 0 3 ) P feiffer,
Wilhelm
(b.
1820)
" J a u c h z e t dem H e r r n a l l e P s . 100) *P fitz n e r,
Ha ns
1901)
Welt"
(Op.
36;
1887;
(1869-1949)
" A b s c h i e d " ( O p . 9 , No. 5 ; E i c h e n d o r f f ) " Z o r n " ( O p . 1 5 , No. 2; E i c h e n d o r f f ) " I n D a n z i g " ( O p . 2 2 , No. 1; E i c h e n d o r f f ) " A b e n d r o t " ( O p . 2 4 , No. 4 ; F r i t z L i e n h a r d ) "A bendlied" ( J u l i u s Sturm) P fitzner,
Paul
" D e r Tag g e h t 1904-08)
still
zu Ende"
(Op.
31,
No.
1;
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
32 8
"Ira S t e r n e n s a a l 1904-08)
Pittraann,
ist
Freudenfest"
zu M e l o d i e n
No.
2;
von
Carl D r e i g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r (Op. 2 8; " G o t t zum G r u s s " ( O p . 2 9 ; 1 8 9 7 )
Pliidderaann,
Martin
1897)
(1854-1897)
" D i e Hi mme l r i i h me n " ( 1 8 9 3 ) "In d u l c i j u b i l o " (1893) " Ave i ' i a r i a , Ros o h n e D o r n " Poenitz,
31,
Josef
Zwolf g e i s t l i c h e F e s tg e s a n g e Beethoven (1852-59) P iutti,
(Op.
(1893)
Franz "Herr, ( Op.
wie 30;
l a n g e w i l l s t du m e i n s o g a r 1 8 9 2 ; P s . 13)
vergessen"
Por aper , A . "Unser Popp,
Wilhelm
Vater
Gesange
( Op .
465;
1896)
M.
"Wenn d e r H e r r d i e ( 1 9 0 0 ; P s . 126) -:-P r e y e r ,
(1904-08)
(1828-1902)
Religiose Prellw itz,
i n dem H i mm e l "
Gefangenen Zions
erlosen
wird"
G ottfried " 0 b s i e w o h l koinmen w i r d ? " Saphir)
(Op.
43,
No.
2;
M.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
G.
329
Priimers,
Adolf "Den
Hagelschlag,
den
Wintertag"
(Op.
1;
19 01)
H.
Putsch,
"Wenn d e r E r d e Gr i i n d e b e b e n " ( Op . 1 5 , No. 1; 1 8 8 4 ) " E s i s t s o s t i l l g e w o r d e n " ( O p . 1 5 , No. 2 ; 1 8 8 4 ) " 0 w e l c h e i n H e i l i s t e u c h g e s c h e h e n " ( Op . 1 5 , No. 3; 1 8 8 4 ) " Wi r w o l l e n ihra d i e K r i p p e s c h m i i c k e n " ( O p . 15, No. 4; 1 8 8 4 ) Pyllemann,
Joachim
"Was m a c h t , d a s s i h r v / e i n e t " " Wi e i s t d i e N a c h t s o s t i l l "
Rabe,
(1897) (1897)
G. 24 L i e d e r
(1852-59;
Spitta)
Ra b u s , Hugo "Herr,
Radecke,
Robert
Herr,
e r h o r e mich"
(1898)
(1830-1911)
* " H e r r , du e r f o r s c h e s t m i c h " ( O p . 4 8 , No. 1; 1 8 7 7 ; P s . 139) *"Wenn d e r I l e r r e i n K r e u z e s c h i c k t " ( Op . 4 8 , No. 2; 1 8 7 7 ; E r n s t von Wi 1 1 i c h ) * " S e i nun w i e d e r z u f r i e d e n " ( Op . 4 8 , No. 3; 1 8 7 7 ; P s . 116) * " W e i h n a c h t s s p r u c h " ( Op. 4 8 , No. 4 ; 1 8 7 7 ; J o h n 8 : 1 2 ) v " K e i n e S e e l e v e r l a n g t n a c h d e i n e m " ( O p . 4 8 , No. 5 ; 1877; P s . 119) " G o t t s e i u n s g n a d i g und s e g n e u n s " ( 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ; Ps. 6 7:2-3) Raff,
J o a c h im .(1822-1882) "Ave M a r i a "
( Op .
51;
1882)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
330
* " V o r dem M u t t e r g o t t e s b i l d e " ( O p . 9 8 , Helena) * " Av e M a r i a " ( O p . 9 8 , No. 1 7 ; E r n s t ) " S e i s t i l l " ( O p . 1 7 3 , No. 8 )
R aillard,
2;
D ilia
Theodor
"Seele, 1901)
Raphael,
No.
ach S e e l e ,
du k e n n s t
dich n ic h t"
(Op.
10;
Georg " A c h , d a s s d i e H i i l f e a u s Z i o n i i b e r I s r a e l k a me " (Op. 3; 18 9 9; P s . 1 4 : 7 ) " H e r r , m e i n G o t t , s e i du m e i n L i c h t " ( 1 8 9 6 ) "Wenn a l l e s e b e n k a m e " ( 1 9 0 1 )
Rebling,
Gustav "Herr,
Rechenberg,
(b.
1821)
e r h o r e meine Worte"
Ernst
(b.
(Op.
28;
Ps.
5)
1800)
"Passions-Blume"
(Op.
23,
No.
1;
1852-59)
* R e g e r , Max ( 1 8 7 3 - 1 9 1 6 ) " V e r l a s s e n h a b ' i c h m e i n L i e b " ( O p . 1 5 , No. 9 ; 1894; F r a n z E n g e l ) " P a s s i o n l i e d " ( O p . 1 9 , No. 1; 1 8 9 8 ) " Do c h du l i e s s e s t i h n im G r a b e n i c h t " ( O p . 1 9 , No. 2 ; 1 8 9 8 ; H a n d e l ' s M e s s i a h ) "Wenn i n b a n g e n , t r i i b e n S t u n d e n " ( 1 9 0 0 ; N o v a l i s ) " H e i mw e h " ( 1 9 0 0 ; J u l i u s S t u r m ) " D e r K o n i g b e i d e r K r o n u n g " ( O p . 7 0 , No. 2 ; 1902-03; M orike) "Wohl d e n e n " ( 1 9 0 3 ; P s . 1 1 9 : 1 - 5 , 8 ) " S c h l a f e r l i e d c h e n " ( O p . 7 5 , No. 1 4 ; 1 9 0 4 ; C a r l Busse) " E h r e s e i G o t t i n d e r H o h e ! " ( 1 9 0 5 ; L u d w i g Hama nn) " G o t t e s S e g e n " ( O p . 7 6 , No. 3 1 ; 1 9 0 7 ; E i c h e n d o r f f ) " I c h s e h e d i c h i h n t a u s e n d B i l d e r n " ( Op . 1 0 5 , No. 1; 1 9 0 7 ; N o v a l i s ) " M e i n e S e e l e i s t s t i l l zu G o t t " ( O p . 1 0 5 , No. 2; 1907; P s . 62) " E s s o i l m e i n G e b e t d i c h t r a g e n " ( 1 9 0 9 ; A s t a von Wegerer )
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
331
"Wera a l l e W e l t e i n i g w a r " ( O p . 7 6 , No. 1 7 ; 1903-12) " De s k i n d e s G e b e t " ( O p . 7 6 , No. 2 2 ; 1 9 0 3 - 1 2 ; L u d w i g R a f a e l , p s e u d o n y m f o r He d wi g K i e s e k a m p ) " M a r i a W i e g e n l i e d " ( O p . 7 6 , No. 5 2 ; 1 9 1 2 ; M a r t i n B oelitz) " De r K o n i g a u s dem M o r g e n l a n d " ( O p . 7 6 , No. 6 0 ; 1 9 0 3 - 1 2 ; E r n s t Ludwig S c h e l l e n b e r g ) " B i t t e um e i n e n s e l i g e n T o d " ( O p . 1 3 7 , No. 1; 1914; N i c o l a u s Herman) " D e i n W i l l e , H e r r , g e s c h e h e " ( O p . 1 3 7 , No. 2 ; 1914; E i c h e n d o r f f ) " Uns i s t g e b o r e n e i n K i n d l e i n " ( Op. 1 3 7 , No. 3 ; 1914) "Am A b e n d " ( O p . 1 3 7 , No. 4 ; 1 9 1 4 ) " 0 H e r r e G o t t , nimm du v o n m i r " ( O p . 1 3 7 , No. 5 ; 1914) " C h r i s t , d e i n e s G e i s t e s S i i s s i g k e i t " (Op. 1 3 7 , No. 6 ; 1 9 1 4 ) " G r a b l i e d " ( O p . 1 3 7 , No. 4 ; 1 9 1 4 ; E. M. A r n d t ) " M o r g e n g e s a n g " ( O p . 1 3 7 , No. 8 ; 1 9 1 4 ; E r a s m u s Albers) " L a s s d i c h n u r n i c h t s n i c h t d a u e r n " (Op. 137, No. 9 ; 1 9 1 4 ; P a u l F l e m m i n g ) " C h r i s t k i n d l e i n s W i e g e n l i e d " ( O p . 1 3 7 , No. 1 0 ; 1914) " K l a g e v o r G o t t e s L e i d e n " ( O p . 1 3 7 , No. 1 1 ; 1 9 1 4 ) " 0 J e s u C h r i s t , w i r w a r t e n d e i n " ( Op . 1 3 7 , No. 1 2 ; 1914; Erasmus A l b e r s ) " M a r i a am R o s e n s t r a u c h " ( O p . 1 4 2 , No. 3 ; 1 9 1 5 ; E. L. S c h e l l e n b e r g ) *R e ic h a rd t,
Louise
(1779-1826)
"An M a r i a " ( 1 8 1 9 ; N o v a l i s ) " G e is tli c h e s Lied" (1819; N ovalis) " W a c h t e l w a c h t " ( 1 8 1 9 ; Des K n a b e n W u n d e r h o r n ) " S t i l l e der Andacht" (1826) R eichert,
A.
" 0 nimm m i c h a u f 1891) Reimann,
Heinrich
in
deinen Frieden"
(Op.
1,
No.
(1850-1906)
*"Es i s t so s t i l l "Der 1 2 6 . P s a l m "
geworden" (1895; (Op. 26; 1 89 7)
G.
Kinkel)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
2;
332
^ " W i e g e n l i e d d e r K i r t e n an d e r (Chr. D aniel S ch u b art)
Reinecke,
Carl
K r i p p e zu B e t h l e h e m "
(1824-1910)
’:' " B e i m S o n n e n u n t e r g a n g " ( O p . 2 9 , No. 2; R i i c k e r t ) " E r h o r m i c h , A l l g i i t g e r " ( O p . 9 6 , No. 2; 1 8 9 0 ) "Vom Hi mmel i n d i e t i e f s t e n K l i i f t e " ( O p . 1 7 8 , No. 5 ; 1 8 8 4 ) "Und v / i e d e r kam d a s O s t e r f e s t " * " C h r i s t k i n d 1e i n s E i n l a s s " ( C a r l E n s l i n ) ’:' " D e r l i e b e G o t t i m H i m m e l " ( W i l h e l m He y) ’;' " E i n R a p p c h e n zum R e i t e n " * " F r i e d e n d e r N a c h t " (G. S c h e r e r ) ’:' " G e b e t z u r N a c h t " ( L u i s e h e n s e l ) ’:' " M i r i a m ' s S i e g s g e s a n g " ( T h o m a s M o o r e ) ’;' " Mor g e n g e b e t " * " Vii g 1 e i n un d E n g l e i n " ( F r . v o n P o c c i ) *"Wann d i e k i n d e r s c h l a f e n e i n " ’:' " W e i h n a c h t s l i e d " ( f o l k s o n g t e x t ) R einthaler,
Karl
(1822-1896)
" 0 M u t t e r a l l e r G n a d e n " ( Op . 6 , H e f t 1, No. 1652-59) ’•' "Der E i n s i e d l e r " ( m a n u s c r i p t ; E i c h e n d o r f f ) R eissiger,
Friedrich
3;
August
’• ' " N o a h ' s V e r m a c h t n i s " ( Op . 2 3 ) * " W e i n a u s W a s s e r " ( O p . 2 9 , No. 2; ’• ' " S a ms o n " ( Op . 2 9 , No. 3 ; K o p i s c h )
August
Kopisch)
* Re i s s i g e r , G . "An M a r i a "
(Op.
3,
’:' K e i s s i o e r , K a r l G o t t l i e b
No.
1)
( 1796-1659)
" N o a h " ( O p . 1 4 , No. 2 ; 1 8 2 7 ) "Ave M a r i a " ( O p . 5 0 , No. 5 ; f r o m S i r W a l t e r S c o t t ) " D a s Auge d e r L i e b e " ( O p . 8 1 , No. 2 ; A u g u s t Kopisch) " We i n a u s W a s s e r " ( O p . 1 2 1 , No. 3 ; K o p i s c h ) " H e l d S a m s o n " ( O p . 1 2 1 , No. 6 ; K o p i s c h ) " G r u s s a n M a d o n n a " ( O p . 1 2 3 , No. 2; C a r o l i n e Leonhardt-Lyser) ■
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
3 33
" M o r g e n l i e d e i n e s H a n d w e r k s b u r s c h e n " (Op. 124, No. 2 ; N i e . M u l l e r ) " D e r I n v a l i d d e r W a g r a m s c h l a c h t " ( Op . 1 3 3 ; A r t h u r von W o r d s t e r n ) " D e r e r s t e R a u s c h " ( O p . 1 4 5 , No. 4 ; K o p i s c h ) " T r i n k l i e d " ( O p . 1 4 5 , No. 5; R a s s i n u s ) " D e r K r e u t z f a h r e r " ( Op . 1 6 5 , No. 4 ; H. K r i e t e ) " De s M a d e h e n s B i t t e a n d e n h e i l i g e n A n t o n " ( O p . 1 7 1 , No. 4 ; W o l f ) " L i e b e , r e c h t t i e f g e h e g t " ( O p . 1 8 2 , No. 4 ; Rousseau) " R o l a n d " ( O p . 1 9 5 , No. 1; K o p i s c h ) " P h a r a o " ( O p . 1 9 5 a , No. 2 ; M o r i t z G r a f S t r a c h w i t z ) " L i e b e s t e i g t vom K i m m e l s t h r o n " ( O p . 2 0 0 , No. 4; Sternau) " H o f f n u n g " ( Op . 2 0 3 , No. 3 ; G e i b e l ) Renner,
Joseph,
Jr.
" Ave M a r i a " Reuter,
(1868-1934) ( Op .
12b;
1902)
Fritz "Nur s e l i g !
*Reznicek,
Nur d i e s
Emil N i k o l a u s
von
eine"
(1904-08)
(1860-1945)
"0 wie i s t d i e B a r m h e r z i g k e i t " ( S i r a c h 1 7 : 2 8 - 3 2 ) " N i l 1 s t du G o t t e s D i e n e r s e i n " ( S i r a c h 2 : 1 - 5 ) " A l l e s was a u s d e r E r d e komi nt" ( S i r a c h 4 0 : 1 1 - 2 2 ) "Tod, wie b i t t e r b i s t du" ( S i r a c h 4 1 : 1 - 4 ) Rheinberger,
Joseph
(1839-1901)
" Ave M a r i a " ( Op . 5 4 , No. 4 ; 1 8 7 2 ) V i e r e l e g i s c h e G e s a n g e ( Op . 1 2 8 ; 1 8 8 2 ) " S e h e t , v / e l c h e L i e b e " ( O p . 1 5 7 , No. 1; 1 8 8 9 ; P h . S p i 11 a ) * " I c h b i n d e s i i e r r n " ( O p . 1 5 7 , No. 2 ; 1 8 8 9 ; A. Knapp) * " Wenn A l l e u n t r e u w e r d e n " ( Op . 1 5 7 , No. 3 ; 1889 Novalis) " V a t e r u n s e r ! " ( O p . 1 5 7 , No. 4 ; 1 8 8 9 ; F r i e d r i c h Dornbusch) * " N a c h t g e b e t " ( O p . 1 5 7 , No. 5; 1 8 8 9 ; F. O s e r ) "Ave M a r i a " ( Op . 1 5 7 , No, 6 ; 1 8 8 9 ) S e c h s m a r i a n i s c h e Hymnen ( O p . 1 7 1 ; 1 8 9 2 ) " B u s s i i e d " ( m a n u s c r i p t ; 1858; G e l l e r t )
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
334
Riccius,
Karl
August
" Es i s t Richter,
Ernst
G.
(b.
so s t i l l
1830)
geworden"
Friedrich
(1883)
(1808-1S79)
S e c h s Iiymnen ( b e f o r e 1 8 4 3 ) "In d e in e iiande, o H err" ( b e f o r e
1843)
R ic h te r , Otto "Sei
stille
dem h e r r n "
( Op .
5;
1895)
Ri e d e 1 , F r i t z " H e r r , du v / i l l s t , 1901) R i e f f e 1,
so s c h i c k s
mit mir"
W i l h e l m 11. G eistliche
Lieder
(1845)
Ri e a e r , A u g u s t "Wenn m e i n e B l i c k e Ri e h 1 ,
Wilhelm H e i n r i c h "Herr,
Gott,
von
hangen"
(1885)
(1823-1897)
dicli w i l l
ich
preisen"
(1877)
R i e m e n s c h n e i d e r , Geor» "Wi e g r o s s d e i n L e i d a u c h s e i " ( Up . 2 3 ; 1 8 9 9 ) " S e i mi r g n a d i g , G o t t " (Op. 30; 1901) " C h r i s t n a c h t " ( O p . 3 2 ; 1 9 0 0 ; G. R i e m e n s c h n e i d e r ) " H e r r , l e h r e r n i c h , d a s s e s e i n Ende m i t m i r h a b e n mus s" (Op. 5 3; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ; P s . 39) "Wenn i c h m i l meinern K e i l a n d e i n s b i n " ( O p . 5 4 ; 1904-08) R i e s , I1'r a n z
(1846-1932)
"Miide b i n
ich,
geh z u r
Ru h "
( Op .
8 , No.
1)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
335
"Wo du h i n g e h s t " ( Op . 4 0 , No. 2 ; 1 8 9 5 ) "Wenn i c h m e i n L i e d i n T o n e n l e i s " ( O p . 1895) Rietsch,
H einrich
Julius
No.
1;
(1860-1927)
Z we i g e i s t l i c h e R ietz,
41,
Gesange
(Op.
11;
1901)
(1812-1877)
" G e b e t i n d e r C h r i s t n a c h t " ( f r o m Op. 8 ; b e f o r e 1843) " H e r r , d e r du a l l e s w o h l g e m a c h t " ( f r o m Op. 1 5; b e f o r e 1843) S e c h s P s a l m e n (Op. 25; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) *Rinck,
Johann
C hristian
H einrich
(1770-1846)
"Am N e u j a h r s o d e r G e b u r t s t a g e " ( Op . 8 1 , No. 1; 1845) " D i e V o l l e n d u n g " ( Op. 8 1 , No. 2 ; 1 8 4 5 ; M a t t h i s o n ) " P s a l m " ( O p . 8 1 , No. 3 ; 1 8 4 5 ; L a n g b e c k e r ) " G e l i i b d e d e r L i e b e " ( O p . 8 1 , No. 4 ; L a v a t e r ) " D i e A u f e r s t e h u n g " ( O p . 8 1 , No. 5; K l o p s t o c k ) " D a r s t e l l u n g J e s u im T e m p e l " ( O p . 8 1 , No. b ; 1 8 4 5 ) R itter,
August G o t t f r i e d "Der H e rr
R itter,
mein H i r t "
(Op.
27;
P s . 23)
Carl "Vergiss (1895)
R itter,
ist
(1811-1885)
He r ma n n
mein n i c h t ,
mein a l l e r l i e b s t e r
Gott"
(1849-1926)
"Herr, neige 1901)
deine
Ohren
und h o r e m i c h "
(Op.
Ro d a , f . von V i e r g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . Fi i nf L i e d e r ( 1 8 5 2 ; S p i t t a ) Sechs L ied er (1852; S p i t t a )
22;
1852;
Spitta)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1 6;
336
Roder,
E.
Zwei g e i s t l i c h e G e s a n g e (Op. 37; 1901) Z w o l f l e i c h t a u s f i i hr b a r e g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r G e s a n g e (Op. 4 4; 1 903 )
und
R oeder, Martin " Ave M a r i a "
( Op .
47;
1887)
Ros s e l , L . "Gott, Rossel,
dein
A ntlitz"
Willy " Wi r
Rohde,
vor
ri i hmen un d d e r
Eduard,
Hoffnung"
(1904-08)
Jr.
" V a t e r u n s e r " ( Op . 7 7 , No. 1; " V e r l a s s mi ch n i c h t " (Op. 77,
1902) No. 2 ;
1902)
Ro h d e , W i l h e l m "Wenn a l l e s
eben
kar ae "
(Op.
13,
No.
2;
1900)
(Op.
73)
R o lla , Charles "Wenn du d e r e i n s t Rorich,
in
d e i n e m Lebe m"
Carl " L i e b V a t e r im H i n u n e l " ( O p . 1 8 , No. 1) " S a l v e R e g i n a n o s t r a " (Op. 20; 1 895)
Rosenhain,
Jacob
" Wi r
(1813-1894)
tragen
st umm d i e
Kranze"
(1889)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Roth,
Philipp "Wenn du e i n
*R ubenstein,
Anton
tiefes
Leid e r f a h r e n "
( Op .
2,
No.
(1829-1894)
" W a l d e i n s a m k e i t " ( Op . 7 6 , No. 1; E i c h e n d o r f f ) " D e r E n g e l " ( O p . 7 8 , No. 3 ; W. O s t e r w a l d , f r o m Puschlcin ) " F r a u e n g e b e t " ( O p . 8 3 , No. 4 ; A. de L a m a r t i n e , t r . N. Roda a n d A. V. W i n t e r f e l d ) " G e b e t " ( O p . 1 1 5 , No. 9 ; W i l h e l m K u n z e ) Ru d n i c k , W i l h e l m " G e i s t l i c h e s L i e d " ( Op . 3 0 ; 1 8 8 8 ) " i i e r r , w i e l a n g e w i l l s t du m e i n e r s o g a r v e r g e s s e n " ( O p . 7 9 ; 1 9 0 2 ; P s . 1 3) Z we i g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( O p . 9 1 ; 1 9 0 2 ) D r e i g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . 9 3 ; 1 9 0 2 ) "Ach i i e r r , s t r a f m i c h n i c h t i n d e i n e r n Z o r n " (Op. 94; 19 0 2; P s . 6 ) " D e r Tag n e i g t s i c h zu E n d e " ( 1 9 0 3 ) "Wer a u f d i e W e l t s e i n K e r z e s t e l l t " ( 1 9 0 3 ) Rudolph, Franz "Wirf d eine Kiibner,
Cornelius
Sorgen auf
den H e r r n "
( Op.
5;
1900)
( 1855-1929)
" M e i n e n J e s u m l a s s i c h n i c h t " ( O p . 15; 1 8 8 1 ) " N i c h t wiir di g b i n i c h , Ar me r " (Op. 26; 1889) " Ki nd J e s u s ward z u r Welt g e b r a c h t " ( 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) Riickaur,
Anton "Wohin, o G o t t , (1894)
Rlickert,
soli
ich
die
Schritte
richten"
Theodor Z we i g e i s t l i c h e
Lieder
(Op.
57;
1904-08)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
338
Rungenhagen,
Karl
"Verlass Rust,
(1778-1851)
mich n i c h t "
(before
1843)
Hugo " Wi e i s t
Rust,
Friedrich
Wilhelm Drei
Sachs,
d e r Abend s o t r a u l i c h "
( Op .
14;
1895)
(1822-1892) geistliche
Lieder
( Op .
11;
1860-67)
Julius "In
des Lebens
*S a n d b e rg e r, Adolf
banger
Stunde"
(Op.
9;
1874)
(1864-1943)
" W i e g e n l i e d " ( O p . 1 1 , No. 4 ; A d o l f S a n d b e r g e r ) " D e r t o t e n i ' i u t t e r " ( O p . 2 2 , No. 4 ; P a u l G r o t o w s k y ) Sartorio,
Satter,
Arnoldo
"Iierr,
zu d i r
Gustav
(1832-1879)
"Gebet" Sattler,
Schaab,
( Op .
Heinrich
(b.
w ill
19,
Heft
gib mir,
Robert
(1817-1887)
Schaefer,
mir
1,
No.
3;
(Op.
1 9;
1892)
1860-67)
1811)
"Herr,
"Gott s e i
i c h mich r e t t e n "
was m i c h f i i h r z u d i r "
gnadig"
(Op.
82;
1901;
(Op.
Ps.
50)
57)
Max
" H e r r , du l a s s t d i e M e n s c h e n s t e r b e n " 1904-08; P s . 90)
(Op.
44;
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
33 9
Scheller, G . "Ich
Schenker,
weiss,
an wen i ch g l a u b e "
Op.
1;
1 85 2)
Eduard
"Maria m ild, Schenner,
(f r o m
o Mutter
zart"
(1895)
Ferdinand
"Herr,
bleibe
bei
uns"
(1902)
Sc h i 1 d , Th . F . "Am A l l e r s e e l e n t a g " Schilling,
( Op .
411;
1891)
Ferdinand
"Vater
unser"
( Op .
43;
1900)
S c h i n d e l m e i s s e r , Louis "0 t e u r e s G o tte s w o r t" (18 5 2 -5 9 ; Franz Oser) "B le ib e , Herr" (1852-59; Oser) " Du, K e r r , z e i g s t m i r d e n b e s t e n Weg" ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; Oser ) " Da n k e u c h , D a n k " ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; O s e r ) "H err, h i l f tra g e n " (1852-59; Oser) " S e e l e , was b e t r i i b s t du d i c h " ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ; O s e r )
Schladenbach, J u liu s 18 g e i s t l i c h e
Gesange
(before
1843)
Schlemiiller , Gustave Zwe i
geistliche
Lieder
( Op .
31;
1894)
S c hma c h t e n b e r g C hristliche
Gesange
(1852-59)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
340
Schm idt, Ernst Zwei
Schmidt,
geistliche
Johann P h ilip p "Gott
Schneider,
ist
Theodor
Gesange
Samuel
(Op.
24;
1902)
(1779-1853)
mein Z u v e r s i c h t "
(1887)
(1827-1909)
"Miide b i n i c h , g e h z u r Ruh " ( 1 8 8 7 ) " Horc h! Die A b e n d g lo c k e s c h a l l t " ( 1 8 8 7 ) "H e rr, ic h t r a u e auf dich" (1887) Schnell,
H einrich "Wenn i c h ,
'!:S c h n y d e r
o Schopfer,
von W a r t e n s e e ,
Franz
d e in e Macht" Xaver
(Op.
39;
1897)
(1786-1868)
"Das B e s t a n d i g e " ( 1 8 2 3 - 2 7 ; N o v a l i s ) "Dankbarlceit" ( 1823-27; N ovalis) "Das h o c h s t e G u t" ( 1 8 2 3 - 2 7 ; N o v a l i s ) "Der t i e f s t e S chm erz " ( 1 8 2 3 - 2 7 ; N o v a l i s ) "Der b e s t e T r o s t " ( 1 8 2 3 - 2 7 ; N o v a l i s ) " Da s k r a f t i g s t e l i i t t e l " ( 1 8 2 3 - 2 7 ; N o v a l i s ) " Hymne " ( 1 8 2 3 - 2 7 ; N o v a l i s ) " D i e R u h ' im G r a b e " ( S o mme r ) S c h o d l , C. "Die B eten d e" Schonfeld,
(Op.
4;
before
1843)
Sophie
"Ach, H e r r , s t r a f mich n i c h t " ( 1 9 0 0 ) " F i i r c h t e d i c h n i c h t , denn hab i c h d i c h (1900) " E r h o r e m i c h wenn i c h r u f e " ( 1 9 0 2 ; P s . Schonrich,
erlostet" 4)
G. A.
"Der
liebe
Gott
hats
treu
gemeint"
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
341
Schoeck,
Othraar ( 1 8 8 6 - 1 9 5 7 )
* " B e i d e r K i r c h e " ( O p . 7 , No. 1; 1 9 0 5 ; R u e g e r ) " P s a l m " ( O p . 1 1 , No. 1; 1 9 0 6 ; P a u l S c h o e c k ) *"Harienlied" ( O p . 6 , No. 5 ; 1 9 0 7 ; N o v a l i s ) * " A u f d e n Tod e i n e s K i n d e s " ( O p . 3 , No. 6 ; 1 9 0 7 ; Uhland) *"Die Verklarende" ( Op . 9 , No. 1; 1 9 0 7 ; M ic h elan g elo B u o n a r r o t i , t r . anonymous) - " P s a l m 2 3 " ( Op . 1 1 , No. 2 ; 1 9 0 7 ) " P s a l m 1 0 0 " ( Op . 1 1 , No. 3; 1 9 0 7 ) " D e r f r o h e W a n d e r s m a n n ” ( O p . 1 7 , No. 8 ; 1 9 0 9 ; Eichend o rf f ) - " N a c h t l i e d " ( O p . 2 0 , No. 1 3 ; 1 9 1 4 ; E i c h e n d o r f f ) " W a l d e i n s a m k e i t " ( O p . 3 0 , No. 1; 1 9 1 0 ; E i c h e n d o r f f ) " G o t t e s S e g e n " ( Op . 3 5 , No. 3; 1 9 2 8 ; E i c h e n d o r f f ) " A b e n d l i e d " ( O p . 5 2 , No. 1 0 ; 1 9 3 6 - 5 7 ; C l a u d i u s ) " G e b e t " ( O p . 6 2 , No. 3 3 ; 1 9 4 7 - 4 9 ; M o r i k e ) Scholze,
Anton "Vater
Schreck,
unser"
Gustav
Ernst
(Op.
5;
1903)
(1849-1918)
" I l oc h i i b e r d e n S t e r n e n " ( O p . 2 8 , No. 1; 1 8 9 6 ) " Wi e k o n n t i c h s e i n v e r g e s s e n " ( O p . 2 8 , No. 2; 1896) " I i e r r , i c h war u n s t a t " ( Op . 2 8 , No. 3 ; 1 8 9 6 ) " Wi r s i n d d e i n " Schroder,
Conrad
"Wer u n t e r 1889)
dem S c h i r m d e s
Hochsten
sitzt"
( Op .
26;
;!:Schubert, Franz Peter ( 1 / 9 7 - 1 8 2 8 )
" H a g a r s K l a g e " (D. 5 ; 1 8 1 1 ; C l e m e n s A u g u s t Sc h u e k i n g ) " V e r k l a r u n g " (D. 5 9 ; 1 8 1 3 ; A l e x a n d e r P o p e , t r . J.G. Herder) " T r o s t , a n E l i s a " ( D. 9 7 ; 1 8 1 4 ; M a t t h i s o n ) "An L a u r a " (D. 1 1 5 ; 1 8 1 4 ; F r i e d r i c h v on M a t t h i s o n ) " D i e B e t e n d e " (D. 1 0 2 ; 1 8 1 4 ; M a t t h i s o n ) " A m m e n l i e d " (D. 1 2 2 ; 1 8 1 4 ; M i c h a e l L u b i )
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
342
" Au f e i n e r K i r c h h o f " ( D. 1 5 1 ; 1 8 1 5 ; F r a n z X a v e r von S c h l e c h t a ) " G e b e t w a h r e n d d e r S c h l a c h t " ( D. 1 7 1 ; 1 8 1 5 ; Theodor Korner) "An d i e F r e u d e " ( D. 1 8 9 ; 1 8 1 5 ; S c h i l l e r ) " W a n d r e r s N a c h t l i e d I " ( D. 2 2 4 ; 1 8 1 5 ; G o e t h e ) " G e i s t d e r L i e b e " ( D. 2 3 3 ; 1 8 1 5 ; L. K o s e g a r t e n ) " B u n d e s l i e d " ( D. 2 5 8 ; 1 8 1 5 ; G o e t h e ) " M o r g e n l i e d " ( D. 2 6 6 ; 1 8 1 5 ; F r i e d r i c h L e o p o l d , G r a f zu S t o l b e r g - S t o l b e r g ) " A b e n d l i e d " ( D. 2 7 6 ; 1 8 1 5 ; F r i e d r i c h L e o p o l d , G r a f zu S t o l b e r g - S t o l b e r g ) " F u r c h t d e r G e l i e b t e n " ( D. 2 8 5 ; 1 8 1 5 ; K l o p s t o c k ) "Dem U n e n d l i c h e n " ( D. 2 9 1 ; 1 8 1 5 ; K l o p s t o c k ) " D i e S t e r n e n w e l t e n " ( D. 3 0 7 ; 1 8 1 5 ; U r b a n J a r n i k , t r . Jo h a n n Georg F e l l i n g e r ) " D i e S t e r n e " ( D. 3 1 3 ; 1 8 1 5 ; K o s e g a r t e n ) " S c h w a n e n g e s a n g " ( D. 3 1 8 ; 1 8 1 5 ; K o s e g a r t e n ) "Don G a y s e r o s : I , I I , I I I " ( D. 9 3 ; 1 8 1 5 ? ; F r i e d r i c h de l a M o tt e Fou que ) " M o r g e n l i e d " ( D. 3 8 1 ; 1 8 1 6 ) " A b e n d l i e d " ( D. 3 8 2 ; 1 8 1 6 ) " F r i i h l i n g l i e d " (D. 3 9 8 ; 1 8 1 6 ; L. H o l t y ) " D e r L e i d e n d e " ( D. 4 3 2 ; 1 8 1 6 ) " S e l i g k e i t " ( D. 4 3 3 ; H o l t y ) " G o t t im F r i i h l i n g e " ( D. 4 4 8 ; 1 8 1 6 ; J . P . Uz) " De r g u t e H i r t " ( D. 4 4 9 ; 1 8 1 6 ; Uz) " G r a b l i e d a u f e i n e n S o l d a t e n " ( D. 4 5 4 ; 1 8 1 6 ; Schubart) " L i t a n e i " ( D. 3 4 3 ; 1 8 1 6 ; J o h a n n G e o r g J a c o b i ) " B e i dem G r a b e m e i n e s V a t e r s " ( D. 4 9 6 ; 1 8 1 6 ; M atthias Claudius) "Abendlied" ( D. 4 9 9 ; 1 8 1 6 ; C l a u d i u s ) " T a g l i c h zu s i n g e n " ( D. 5 3 3 ; 1 8 1 7 ; C l a u d i u s ) " P a x v o b i s c u m " ( D. 5 5 1 ; 1 8 1 7 ; F r a n z v o n S c h o b e r ) " D e r Kn a b e i n d e r W i e g e " ( D. 5 7 9 ; 1 8 1 7 ; A n t o n O ttenw alt) " D i e E r d e " ( D. 9 8 9 ; 1 8 1 7 ; M a t t h i s o n ) " D a s M a r i e n b i l d " ( D. 6 2 3 ; 1 8 1 8 ; A l o i s S c h r e i b e r ) " D a s A b e n d r o t " ( D. 6 2 7 ; 1 8 1 8 ; S c h r e i b e r ) "Vom m i t l e i d e n M a r i a " ( D. 6 3 2 ; 1 8 1 8 ; S c h l e g e l ) " K a i s e r M a x i m i l i a n a u f d e r M a r t i n s w a n d " (D- 2 9 9 0 A; 181 8; H e i n r i c h von C o l l i n ) " H i m m e l s f u n k e n " ( D. 6 5 1 ; 1 8 1 9 ; J o h a n n P e t r u s Silbert) " A b e n d b i l d e r " ( D. 5 6 0 ; 1 8 1 9 ; S i l b e r t ) " M a r i e " ( D. 6 5 8 ; 1 8 1 9 ; N o v a l i s ) "Hymne I " ( D. 6 5 9 ; 1 8 1 9 ; N o v a l i s ) "Hymne I I " ( D. 6 6 0 ; 1 8 1 9 ; N o v a l i s ) "Hymne I I I " ( D. 6 6 1 ; 1 8 1 9 ; N o v a l i s ) "Hymne I V" ( D. 6 6 2 ; 1 8 1 9 ; N o v a l i s )
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
343
" D e r J i i n g l i n g a u f dem H i i g e l " ( D. 7 0 2 ; 1 8 2 0 ; H einrich Hiittenbrenner ) " G r e n z e n d e r M e n s c h h e i t " ( D. 7 1 6 ; 1 8 2 1 ; G o e t h e ) " De r S l u m e n S c h m e r z " ( D. 7 3 1 ; 1 8 2 1 ; J o h a n n , Count M a j l a t h ) "Der Wachtelschlag" ( D. 7 4 2 ; 1 8 2 2 ; S . F . S a u t e r ) " S c h w e s t e r g r u s s " ( D. 7 6 2 ; 1 8 2 2 ; F r a n z von Bruchraann) " D i e j u n g e K o n n e " ( D. 8 2 8 ; 1 8 2 4 - 2 5 ; J a c o b N i c o l a u s Crai g h e r) " Im A b e n d r o t " (D. 7 9 9 ; 1 8 2 5 ; K a r l L a p p e ) " E l l e n s G e s a n g I I I " ( D. 8 3 9 ; 1 8 2 5 ; S i r W a l t e r S c o t t , t r . Adam S t o r c l c ) " f i i l l e d e r L i e b e " ( D. 8 5 4 ; 1 8 2 5 ; S c h l e g e l ) " D i e A l l m a c h t " ( D. 5 8 2 ; 1 8 2 5 ; J o h a n n L a d i s l a u s Py r k e r ) "An m e i n H e r z " ( D. 8 6 0 ; 1 8 2 5 ; E r n s t S c h u l z e ) " A b s c h i e d von d e r E r d e " ( D. 8 2 9 ; 1 8 2 6 ; A d o l f von P r a t o s b e v e r a ) " T o t e n g r a g e r w e i s e " ( D. 8 6 9 ; 1 8 2 6 ; F r a n z X a v e r von S c h l e c h t a ) " Da s Z i i g e n g l o c k l e i n " (D. 8 7 1 ; 1 8 2 6 ; J o h a n n G a b r i e l Seidl) " D a s W e i n e r " ( D. 9 2 6 ; 1 8 2 7 ; K a r l G o t t f r i e d von Leitner) " D e r K r e u z z u g " ( D. 9 3 2 ; 1 8 2 7 ; L e i t n e r ) " G l a u b e , i i o f f n u n g und L i e b e " ( D. 9 5 5 ; 1 8 2 8 ; C hristoph Kuffner) Schuler,
He r ma n n "Schlaf ein ( 1 9 0 4 —0 8 )
mein K r o n l e i n ,
Licht
und L e b e n "
Sc h u h , J o h a n n e s "Wiegenlied Schulz,
Ferdinand "Den B l i c k
der Mutter
(b.
Gottes"
(1885)
1821)
ernpor und h a l t e
still"
(Op.
9c;
1896)
Schulz-W eida, Joseph " V a t e r No a h " ( O p . 9 6 ) "Es i s t so s t i l l g e w o r d e n "
(Op.
170)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Schulze,
Kobst.
Willy
" Zur W e i h n a c h t " (Op. 2; "Du r e i c h t e s t stumra m i r " K i n d e s G e b e t " (Op. 4 4 ; Schumacher,
Iiande"
(Op.
32;
1882)
Paul
"Fiihr m i c h , 1899) Schumann,
1882) beide 1882)
Kind,
nach
Bethlehem"
(Op.
14,
No.
1;
Camille
Drei
^ Schumann,
geistliche
Robert
Lieder
( Op .
11;
1899)
(1S10-1S56)
" T a l i s m a n e " ( O p . 2 5 , No. 8 ; 1 8 4 0 ; G o e t h e ) " S t i r b , L i e b ' und F r e u d ' ! " ( O p . 3 5 , No. 2 ;
1840;
ICer n e r )
" S o n n t a g s am R h e i n " ( O p . 3 6 , No. 1; 1 8 4 0 ; E e i n i c k ) " D e r S o l d a t " ( O p . 4 0 , No. 3 ; 1 8 4 0 ; B . C . A n d e r s e n , t r . Chami s s o ) " D e r S p i e l m a n n " ( O p . 4 0 , No. 4 ; 1 8 4 0 ; A n d e r s e n , t r . Chamisso) " F r i i h l i n g s f a h r t " ( O p . 4 5 , No. 2; 1 8 4 0 ; E i c h e n d o r f f ) " B e l s a z a r " (Op. 57; 1840; h e i n e ) "Der frohe Wandersmann" ( O p . 7 7 , No. 1; 1 8 4 0 ; Eichendorff) " W e i h n a c h t s l i e d " ( O p . 7 9 , No. 16; 1 8 4 9 ; B . C . A ndersen, t r . anonymous) " K i n d e r w a c h t " ( O p . 7 9 , No. 2 2 ; 1 8 4 9 ) " D i e T o c h t e r J e p h t a s " ( O p . 9 5 , No. 1; 1 8 4 9 ; B y r o n , t r . Korner) " D e r E i n s i e d l e r " ( O p . 8 3 , No. 3; 1 8 5 0 ; E i c h e n d o r f f ) "Requiem" ( O p . 9 0 , No. 7 ; 1 8 5 0 ; L a t i n , t r . anonymous) "A, b e n d l i e d " ( O p . 1 0 7 , No. 6 ; 1 8 5 1 - 5 2 ; G. K i n k e l ) " N a c h d e r G e b u r t i h r e s S o h n e s " ( Op . 1 3 5 , No. 2; Mary S t u a r t , t r . G. V i n c k e ) " G e b e t " ( O p . 1 3 5 , No. 5 ; 1 8 3 2 ; Mary S t u a r t , t r . Vincke)
Schumann,
Tipton " Ave M a r i a ,
M utter
lieb"
(1896)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
345
Schurig,
Volkmar
Zwanzig g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r 24 G e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . Schwantzer,
Hugo
(b.
14;
1889)
ich"
( Op .
1829)
"Wenn du m i c h z i i r s t , Schwarz,
( Op . 33)
dann b e t e
19,
No.
Ant on "Oelberglied"
Schwarz,
Richard
( Op .
18 ;
1904-08)
Aloys
" Ave M a r i a ,
Stern
der
Meer e"
(1904-08)
Schweitzer, Johann " De s G e s a n g e s We i h e " Schwencke,
Friedrich
Gottlieb
"Gottvertrauen" Seibert,
( Op .
7)
(1823-1896) 2;
1852-59)
Louis "Allerseelen"
Seifert,
( Op .
( Op .
49;
1883)
Uso "Und z i i g s t du t a u s e n d K e i l e n v / e i t " ( Op . "Wo du h i n g e l i s t " ( Op . 2 2 ; 1 8 9 5 ) " B e f i e h l du d e i n e We ge " ( Op . 4 0 ; 1 9 0 2 )
Seifhardt,
4;
1887)
Wi l hel m
"0 w u n d e r b a r e s , 1879)
tiefes
Schweigen"
( Op .
5,
No.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1;
1)
34 6
Seitz,
Karl Geistliche
Seligmann,
Lieder
( Op .
2;
1892)
F.C.
Sechs Siering,
1843)
Heinrich
"Allerseelen" Seyffert,
(before
geistliche
Moritz
(b.
" Ave M a r i a " * Si 1 c h e r , F r i e d r i c h
Lieder
( Op .
2;
1845)
1821) ( Op .
11;
1852-59)
(1789-1860)
" W a n d e r u n g " ( Op . 1 2 , H e f t 1, No. 3; J u s t i n i u s Kerner) " W a n d e r l i e d " ( U p . 1 2 , H e f t 2, No. 5; C a r l Griineisen) " So nimm d e n n m e i n e l l a n d e " ( J . vo n N a u s ma n n ) Sitt,
Ha n s
(1850-1922)
"Selge Spengler,
Stunde,
frohe
(1897)
Lorenz
" Au f d i c h , o I i e r r , "Dei n J e s u s w e i n t " Speyer,
Ku n d e "
Wi l h e l m
vertraut (1901)
meine S e e l e "
(1898)
(1790-1878)
G e i s t l i c h e Gesange (1845) '::" Me i n J o c h i s t s a n f t , und m e i n e L a s t ( Op. 1 2 , No. 3; D i b l e )
ist
leicht"
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
347
Staab,
Adalbert Drei g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r , in c lu d in g " E i n s a m e R o s e , du b l i i h e s t s o v e r l a s s e n " No. 1; 1 8 8 4 )
Stade,
Wi l h e l m
(b.
160,
1817)
" De s l a u t e n t a g e s w i r r e K l a n g e " ( 1 8 8 9 ) " H e r r , i c h b a u e a u f d i c h " ( Op . 3 8 ; 1 8 9 0 ; *S t a d l e r ,
( Op .
Maximilian
Ps.
71)
(1748-1833)
" Domi nus r e g i t
me"
(Ps.
23)
S tahl , E. "Ich
Stange,
will
dem H e r r n
singen"
( Op .
28;
1896)
Max B i b l i s c h e Monodien: Acht f r e i e 1 y r i s c h e Gesange n a c h Wo r t e n d e r I i e i 1 i g e S c h r i f t ( Op . 6 1 ; 1 8 9 7 ) " L a s s e t d i e K i n d l e i n z u m i r lcommen" ( 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 )
Stauffer,
Theodor
"Befiehl Stiehl,
Karl
du d e i n e Wege"
(1826-1911)
"Ein g e i s t l i c h e Stopel,
Eranz
Abendlied"
Carl
(b.
"Vater
( f r o m Op.
4;
1852-59)
(1794-1836)
G e i s t l i c h e G e s a n g e ( Op . H e r d e r , and N o v a l i s ) Stor,
(1887)
11;
before
1843;
Goethe,
1814) unser"
(1888)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
348
S toi b e r , E r n s t "Ave
Stolberg,
Maria"
23;
1 8 80 )
C.
"Hast Stollbrock,
du v i e l
Sorgen"
(1875)
Lu d wi g
" Ab e n d Stolz,
(Op.
ists,
Jesus
Christ"
( Op .
8,
No.
3;
1890)
Adolf " De i n L i e b e s f e u e r , a c h H e r r , wi e t e u e r " ( 1 8 9 2 ) " H e r r ! S c h i c k e , was du w i l l s t " ( 1 8 9 2 ; M o r i k e ) " I c h k l o p f e a n zum h e i l i g e A d v e n t " ( 1 8 9 2 )
Storeh,
A n t o n M.
(1813-1887)
" Fr omme B i t t e *S t r a u s s ,
Richard
an M a r i a "
131;
1852-59)
(1864-1949)
"Weihnachtslied" Streben,
( Op .
( Op .
1;
1871;
Josephine
Strauss)
Theodor "Cott
in
der
Natur"
( f r o m Op.
"Wenn du e i n
tiefes
Leid
26,
Heft
1;
1852-59)
S t r ii mpel , Ad o l f
Sturm,
erfahren"
(1876)
Wi l h e l m "Es i s t
Taubert,
so s t i l l
geworden"
( Op .
7,
No.
1;
1875)
Carl Gottfried Wilhelm (1811-1891)
*"Christkindlein"
( Op .
88,
No.
6;
Ch.
Birch)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
349
" A u f e r s t e h n " ( Op . 9 2 ; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ) * " W a l t 1 G o t t " ( Op . 9 5 , No. 5; G u l l ) * " A l l e s s t e h t i n G o t t e s H a n d ! " ( O p . 9 9 , No. 4; 1852-59; Eich en d o rff) * " A b e n d g e b e t " ( Op . 1 0 2 , No. 2; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) * " D i e A e b t i s s i n " ( Op . 1 1 2 a ; K. S i m r o c k ) :,' " D a s K l e e b l a t t " ( Op. 1 2 4 , No. 6 ; H o f f m a n n von Fallersleben) * " Ac h G o t t , v e r l a s s mi c h n i c h t " ( Op . 1 4 2 b , No. 1; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ; S a l o mo F r a n c k ) * " M o r g e n w a n d r u n g " ( Op . 1 4 2 b , No. 2; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ; Geibel) * " D i e H e r r l i c h k e i t d e r E r d e " ( Op . 1 4 2 b , No. 3; 1860-67; Andreas Gryphius) * " L a s s d i c h G o t t " ( Op . 1 4 2 b , No. 4 ; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ; A n t o n U l r i c h , H e r z o g von B r a u n s c h w e i g - L i i n e b u r g ) * 11Ab e n d l i e d " ( Op . 1 4 2 b , No. 5; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ; P a u l Gerhardt) ' " " S c h o n s t e r H e r r J e s u " ( Op . 1 4 2 b , No. 6 ; 1 8 6 0 - 6 7 ; tw elfth century folksong) Taubert,
Otto
(1833-1903)
"Wo d e r S t e r n i s t a u f g e g a n g e n " ( Op . 1 6 ; " Es g e h t d e r Ta g z u e n d e " ( Op . 2 4 ; 1 8 8 7 ) *T au w it z ,
1885)
Eduard
"Wenn man d i e S t e r b e g l o c k e l a u t e t " ( Op . .17, " De r S o l d a t " ( u p . 1 8 , No. 1; H. C. A n d e r s e n , Chamisso)
No. tr.
T e f k e , 11u a o Herzenstimmen: 1901) Tennenbaum, "Ich Teresius,
Zwolf g e i s t l i c h e
Lieder
( Op .
J . bin
ein
Gast
auf
Erden"
(1904-08)
P.
Fiinfzehn M a r i e n l i e d e r
( Op .
12;
1900)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
12;
1)
350
Thaller,
Johann
Babtist
"Marienlied" Thiel,
Carl
( Op .
15 ;
1904-0S)
(1862-1939)
Zwe i Thiele,
(1872-1952)
geistliche
gesange
( Op .
23;
1901)
Richard Drei g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r , i n c l u d i n g "Wo f i n d e t d i e S e e l e d i e h e i r n a t ,
Thielen,
Peter
Heinrich
die
Ruh"
(1903)
(1839-1908)
" G e i s t l i c h e s L i e d " ( Op . 1 1 7 ; 1 9 0 3 ) Zwe i M a r i e n l i e d e r ( Op . 1 5 5 ; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 )
Thieriot,
Ferdinand
" G e i s t l i c h e s Lied" (1904-08) " 0 koram, du G e i s t d e r W a h r h e i t " Th o ma ,
Rudolf
(b.
(1904-08)
1829)
"Wenn d i c h t e r s i c h d i e Wo l k e n t i i r me n " " G r o s s s i nci d i e Wogen und b r a u s e n g a r Thomas ,
Otto
(b.
(1898) se hr " (1900)
1857)
" G o t t i s t und b l e i b t g e t r e u " ( 1 9 0 0 ) "Was i s t d e r S e e l e n l o s " ( 1 9 0 0 ) " Ac h G o t t , v e r l a s s m i c h n i c h t " ( 1 9 0 0 ) "Wi e g e h t d e r Tag s o s a n f t z u r N e i g " ( 1 9 0 0 ) Ti e ba c h , F r a n z "Zage nur "Wenn w i r Tiehsen,
n i c h t " ( Op . 1 0 ; 1 9 0 0 ) i n s p a t e n T a g e n " ( Op .
Otto
(b.
1817)
"Gott
ist
me i n I l i r t "
( f r o m Op.
19;
22;
1903)
1845)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
351
T i t l , Anton
Emil
"Aller * To ma s c h e l c ,
(1809-1882)
Seelennacht"
VJenzel ' J o h a n n
( f r o m Op.
"Ich
1845)
(1774-1850)
" B u s s l i e d " ( Op . 2 7 ; 1 8 4 5 ; " W a n d r e r s M a c h t l i e d " ( Op .
T r i i mp e l ma n n ,
1;
Gellert) 5 8 , No. 4 ;
Goethe)
Max weiss,
voran
ich
glaube"
( Op.
19;
1904-08)
T r u t s c h e l , A. L . E . Vier g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . 17 ; 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 )
Uberlee,
Felix
Wi l h e l m A d a l b e r t
aus
(b.
dem " R e i s e p s a l t e r "
1837)
" So s i n k s t du n u n " ( Op . 5 5 ; 1 8 8 7 ) "Und e s wa r urn d i e 6 . S t u n d e " ( Op.
66;
1887)
10,
No.
U1 b r i c h , i l . F . " Ave M a r i a " Umlauft,
Paul "Gott
Vogel,
Adolf
(1885)
(1853-1934) heiss
die
Bernhard
Sonne gli ihen"
( Op.
(1847-1898)
D r e i g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . 5 7 ; " i i e r r , " b l e i b b e i u n s " ( Op . 6 2 a ; Vogel,
l-ioritz
4;
1896) 18S6)
(1846-1922)
Geistliche
Lieder
( Op .
57;
1890)
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1882)
35 2
Volck, A . "0 H er r,
Voullaire,
vor
dem
die
Stiirme
schweigen"
( 18 9 7 )
Wa l d e ma r
Fl i nf g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . 9; 1 8 8 3 ) " De r 1 2 6 . P s a l m " ( Op . 1 2 ; 1 8 8 7 ) " C u t e r V a t e r , i m Hi mme l d u " ( Op . 1 3 , No. 1; 1 8 8 9 ) " Ach K e r r , s t r a f mi c h n i c h t i n d e i n e i n Z o r n e " ( Up . 1 7 , No. 1; 1 8 8 9 ; P s a l m s ) " De r K e r r i s t r uei n H i r t " ( Op . 1 7 , No. 2; 1 8 8 9 ; P s . 23) Z w o l f g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . 2 2 ; 1 8 9 0 ) , i n c l u d i n g ' •' "Das J a h r g e h t s t i l l z u E n d e " ( Op . 2 2 , No. 4; 1890; E l i o n o r e F i i r s t i n Reuh) " I c h h a b e d i c h j e und j e g e l i e b t " ( Op . 3 0 ; 1 8 9 7 )
Wa g n e r ,
Franz " I c h i n o c h t e h e i m , m i c h z i e h t s zum V a t e r h a u s " ( Op . 3 7 ; 1 9 0 2 ) Z we i g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . 6 2 ; 1 9 0 3 ) " Es i s t n o c h e i n e P.uhe v o r h a n d e n " ( Op . 7 2 ; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) " F i i r c h t e d i c h n i c h t , i c h hab d i c h e r l o s e t " ( Op. 7 5 ; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 )
Wa l d ma n n ,
Ludolf
"Gott, Wa l l f i s c h ,
J.
"Vater
der ii.
Allgiitige"
(b.
unser"
( Op .
45;
1882)
185 7) (1883)
Walter, August (1821-1896) " G e b e t " ( Op . 1 0 , No. 4 ; 1 8 7 8 ) " D e i n W i l l s , K e r r , g e s c n e h e " ( Op . 1860-67)
17,
No. 3;
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
We b e r ,
Carl Maria
von
(1786-1826)
* " G e b e t w a h r e n d d e r S c h l a c h t " ( Op . 4 1 , No. 1; Theodor Korner) * " A b s c h i e d vom L e b e n " ( Op . 4 1 , No. 2 ; K o r n e r ) * " T r o s t " ( Op . 4 1 , No. 3 ; K o r n e r ) * G e b e t v o r d e r S c h l a c h t " ( Op . 4 2 , No. 3; K o r n e r ) * " S e h n s u c h t " ( Op . 8 0 , No. 2; F . L . K a n n e g i e s s e n ) " G e b e t urn d i e G e l i e b t e " ( J . 1 6 6 ) " D i e f r omi ne Magd" ( J . 2 3 2 ) " Ab e n d s e g e n " ( J . 255) '•'W e b e r n ,
Anton
(1883-1945)
"Gebet" Wehe,
(1903;
Ferdinand
Avenarius)
He r ma n n "Ich sende euch, 1878; Gerok)
*Weigl,
Karl
geht
ihr
meine Zwo l f e "
Karl
"Gott, Weingartner,
20
(1881-1949)
" H i o b XI V" ( Op . 1, No. 1) " W a n d r e r s N a c h t l i e d " ( Op . 1, No. 5 ; " h e i n H e r z " ( Op . 3 , No. 5 ; L e n a u )
Weinberger,
( Op.
Friedrich
(1853-1908)
du Q u e l l e m e i n e r
Felix
Goethe)
Frende"
( Op .
51;
1901)
(1863-1942)
" A l l e r s e e l e n t a g " ( f r o m Op. 18; 1 8 9 0 ) :|:" W i e g l a n z t d e r h e l l e i dond" (Op. 2 2 , No. 5; Gottfried Keller) * " D e s M a g d e l e i n s N a c h t g e b e t " ( Op. 3 2 , No. 6; Wi l hel m i l e r t z ) :f" G o t t v e r t r a u e n " ( Op. 5 5 , No. 1; M a t h i l d e G r a f i n Stubenberg) Weiss,
Gottfried
(b.
1820)
C h r i s t l i c h e G e s a n g e ( Op . K e m p i s , t r . anonymous)
17;
1860-67;
Tho ma s a
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
354
Weiss,
Heinrich "Ave
Maria"
(Op.
57,
No.
3)
W e i s s , Laurenz Vier Wennrich,
geistliche
Passy)
du d e i n e Wege"
A. "Herz
We r ma n n ,
( A.
£ m.
"Befiehl We r ma n n ,
Lieder
Oskar
und W i l l e ma c he s t i l l e "
(1893)
(1840-1906)
G e i s t l i c h e G e s a n g e ( Op . 5 9 ; 1 8 8 9 ) D r e i g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . 7 9 ; 1 8 9 2 ) D r e i g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . 8 2 ; 1 8 9 3 ) V i e r g e i s t l i c h e G e s a n g e ( Op . 8 4 ; 1 8 9 4 ) D r e i b i b l i s c h e St i i cl ce ( Op . 9 0 ; 1 8 9 4 ) D r e i b i b l i s c h e S o l o g e s a n g e ( Op . 9 6 ; 1 8 9 3 ) V i e r g e i s t l i c h e G e s a n g e ( Op . 1 0 0 ; 1 8 9 5 ) Drei g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . 1 0 7 ; 1 8 9 7 ) Drei g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . 1 1 3 ; 1 8 9 8 ) Drei g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . 1 1 7 ; 1 8 9 9 ) Zi'rei g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op. 1 2 4 ; 1 8 9 9 ) Drei g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . 1 2 7 ; 1 9 0 2 ) Drei g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . 1 2 9 ; 1 9 0 0 ) * " L o b g e s a n g " ( Op . 1 3 9 , No. 1; 1 9 0 3 ; Max von Schenkendorf) *"Am N e u j a h r s t a g e " ( Op . 1 3 9 , No. 2; 1 9 0 3 ; Max von Schenkendorf) * " H i l f m i r , I I e r r , d i e F l i i g e l s p r e i t e n " ( Op. 1 3 9 , No. 3; 1 9 0 3 ; Wi 1h e 1m S c h o p f f ) * " V a t e r u n s e r " ( Op . 1 3 9 , No. 4 ; 1 9 0 3 ) D r e i G e d i c h t e ( Op . 1 4 3 ; 1 9 0 4 - 0 6 ) Vier g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . 1 4 5 ; 1 9 0 4 - 0 8 ) *""lind wenn d i c h a l i e We l t v e r g i s s t " ( 1 9 0 8 ; F r . O s e r ) Werner,
Albert "Und k o n n t 1884)
ich
noch n i c h t
beten"
(op.
16,
No.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1;
35 5
Werner,
Max "Ich
Wernicke,
will
We y e r ma n n ,
* Wi c h ma n n ,
e r h o r e mi ch"
geistliche
sind
die
(Op.
17;
1904-08)
( Op .
13;
1890)
Gesange
( Op .
16;
1874)
Leiden
dieser
Zeit"
(1904-08)
Her r mann
"Fliegendes
Blatt"
( Op .
25,
No.
3)
G. " Dank"
( A u g u s t e Ki i hn)
Friedrich "Gegriisst,
Wi eck,
fassen"
Caroline " Es
Wickede,
mich
Moritz
Drei
*W i c h t l ,
Gott
Alfred
"Herr,
Wi cher n,
in
Marie
du R r e u z
voll
( Op .
55;
1875)
(1832-1916)
"Wenn am Mo r g e n k l a r " Wi e d e r ma n n ,
Segen"
(1901)
Friedrich
" I c h h e b e m e i n e Au g e n a u f z u d e n B e r g e n " ( Op . 1899; P s . 121) " I c h h a r r e d e s I i e r r n " ( Op . 1 0 , No. 1; 1 8 9 9 ; Ps. 130:5-6) Wi l d,
Friedrich "Vater
unser"
(1904-08)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
9;
3 56
Wilm,
Nicolai
von
(1834-1911)
" G e i s t l i c h e s L i e d " ( Op . 1 0 4 ; 1 8 9 2 ) Zwe i M a r i e n l i e d e r ( Op . 1 0 7 ; 1 8 9 3 ) " G e i s t l i c h e s L i e d " ( Op . 1 6 8 ; 1 9 0 1 ) *" Wenn a l l e u n t r e u v / e r d e n " ( Op . 2 0 0 ; Novalis) Wiltberger,
August
"Da d r o b e n , "Flieg aus, Wi n l c e l ma n n ,
(1850-1928) da d r o b e n " me i n K e r z ,
Max J o s e p h "Ich
ins
Friihlingsland"
(1881)
Theodor
"Lobe d e i n e n H e r r n " Winkler,
1904-08;
bin
(b.
erlost,
W in te rb e rg e r, Alexander
(1903)
1810) mi r
ist
vergeben"
( Op .
8;
1902)
(1834-1914)
" R e q u i e m " ( Op . 6) " C h r i s t f u h r g e n Hi mme l " ( Op . 1 8 , H e f t 1, No. 1; 1899) " M a r i a , d i e w o l l t w a n d e r n g e h n " ( Op . 1 8 , H e f t 1, No. 2; 1 8 9 9 ) " H i m m e l s a u , l i c h t und b l a u " ( Op. 1 8 , H e f t 1, No. 3; 1 8 9 9 ) " 0 J e s u l e i n z a r t " ( Op . 1 8 , H e f t 1, No. 4 ; 1 8 9 9 ) " 0 h a l t e r e s t a n d e i n e m G l a u b e " ( Op . 2 8 ; 1 8 7 5 ) Zwe i g e i s t l i c h e G e s a n g e ( Op . 4 7 ; 1 8 7 5 ) , i n c l u d i n g * " V/ i e d e r s e h n " ( Op . 4 7 , No. 2; 1 8 7 5 ; B . M o r i t z Zille ) V i e r g e i s t l i c h e G e s a n g e ( Op . 5 3 ; 1 8 7 6 ) ^ " U a s Wo r t G o t t e s " ( Op . 5 6 , H e f t 1, No. 1; 1 8 7 6 ; Angelus S i l e s i u s ) * " Ke i mw e h " ( Op . 5 6 , R e f t 1, No. 2; 1 8 7 6 ; A. Nicolai) * " A n d a c h t " ( Op . 5 6 , H e f t 1, No. 3 ; 1 8 7 6 ; P h i l i p p Spitta) >;:" W i n t e r n a c h t " ( Op . 5 6 , H e f t 1, No. 4 ; 1 8 7 6 ; Lichendorff) '::" A b e n d m a h l s l i e d " ( Op . 5 6 , H e f t 2 , No. 1; 18 76; L . b . Gar v e )
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
3 57
* " O s t e r l i e d " ( Op . 5 6 , H e f t 2, No. 2 ; 1 8 7 6 ; Max von Schenkendorf) * " D a s e w i g e L i e d " ( Op . 5 6 , I i e f t 2 , No. 3 ; 1 8 7 6 ; C h r i s t i a n B o h me r ) * " B e g r a b n i s l i e d " ( Op . 5 6 , H e f t 2 , No. 4 ; 1 8 7 6 ; A. H. N i e m e y e r ) * A b e n d m a h l s b e l i i b d e " ( Op . 5 7 , No. 1; 1 8 7 6 ; Ch. G. Kern) * " P a l m s o n n t a g " ( Op . 5 7 , No. 2 ; 1 8 7 6 ; S c h e n k e n d o r f ) * " S e e l e n f r i e d e n " ( Op . 5 7 , No. 3 ; 1 8 7 6 ; K. R. T a n n e r ) * " P f i n g s t e n " ( Op . 5 7 , No. 4 ; 1 8 7 6 ; S c h e n k e n d o r f ) * " w e i h n a c h t s l i e d " ( Op . 5 8 , No. 1; 1 8 7 6 ; J o h a n n Tauber ) * " H i m m e l f a h r t " ( Op . 5 8 , No. 2; 1 8 7 6 ; S c h e n k e n d o r f ) Ab e nd l i e d " ( Op . 5 8 , No. 3 ; 1 8 7 6 ; J . S t u r m ) * " B e g r a b n i s C h r i s t i " ( Op . 5 8 , No. 4 ; 1 8 7 6 ; C a r v e ) D r e i g e i s t l i c h e K i n d e r l i e d e r ( Op . 7 4 ; 1 8 8 0 ) " A l s d e r H e i l a n d l i t t am K r e u z e " ( Op . 8 6 ; 1 8 9 4 ; J . i ' i os e n) D r e i g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op. 8 6 a ; 1 8 9 4 ) *" Mag a u c h d i e L i e b e w e i n e n " ( Op . 1 0 6 , No. 2 ; 1 8 9 5 ; P r . Ad ol ph Kr ummacher ) " H i t F r i e d u n d F r e u d f a h r i c h d a h i n " ( Op. 1 0 6 , No. 3 ; 1 8 9 5 ) * " L i e d d e r M u t t e r M a r i a a n d e r K r i p p e " ( Op . 1 1 9 , No. 1; 1 8 9 9 ; L a t i n , t r . E d u a r d L o b e i n ) * " M a r i a m i t dem K i n d e " ( Op . 1 1 9 , No. 2; 1 8 9 9 ; L a t i n , t r . Ho b e i n ) * " H a r r e , m e i n e S e e l e " ( Op . 1 1 9 , No. 3 ; 1 8 9 9 ; Johann F r i e d r i c h Rader) * " Wa s k a n n s t Du, T y r a n n , e r s i n n e n ? " ( Op . 1 1 9 , N o . 4 ; 1 8 9 9 ; L a t i n , t r . Ho b e i n ) * " P a s s i o n s l i e d " ( Op . 1 1 9 , No. 5 ; 1 8 9 9 ; A s c h e n f e l d t ) :;:" K e i n S t L i n d l e i n g e h t d a h i n " ( Op . 1 2 1 , No. 1; 1 9 0 0 ) * " D e r H e r r i s t m e i n H i r t " ( Op . 1 2 1 , No. 2; 1 9 0 0 ; P s . 23) D r e i e r n s t e G e s a n g e ( Op . 1 2 2 ; 1 8 9 7 ) Z w e i g e i s t l i c h e G e s a n g e ( Op . 123; 1897) Osterwoche: V i e r g e i s t l i c h e L i e d e r ( Op . 1 2 5 ) * " N a c h t r liber. R e g e n t a g e n " ( Op . 1 3 1 ; 1 8 9 9 ; G e r o k ) * " T o d e s s e h n s u c h t " ( Op . 1 3 8 , No. 1; L l m e n h o r s t ) * " A u f e r s t e h u n g " ( Op . 1 3 8 , No. 2 ; G o t t f r i e d Ne u ma n n ) * " H e r r ! w i e du w i l l s t " ( Op . 1 3 9 , No. 1; B i e n e m a n n ) * " 0 J e s u l e i n si i B, o J e s u l e i n m i l d ! " ( Op . 1 3 9 , iso. z ) '::" De r d u , I i e r r J e s u , Ruh und R a s t " ( Op . 1 3 9 . No. 3; Bonaven t u r a , t r . Geor g We r n e r ) *"Die E i n s e t z u n g s w o r t e " " I n C h r i s t i Wu n d e r s c h l a f i c h e i n "
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
358
Winterstein,
S.
"Vater unser" (1852-59) " S e i mi r g n a d i g , G o t t " ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) " A c h , H e r r , s t r a f e mi c h n i c h t " ( 1 8 5 2 - 5 9 ) Witt,
Theodor Vier
de
(1823-1855)
geistliche
Lieder
( Op .
8;
1852-59)
* Wi 11 e n b e c h e r , O t t o "Trauungslied" *« o l f ,
(Karl
Gerok)
Hugo ( 1 8 6 0 - 1 9 0 3 ) " De r Koni g b e i d e r K r o n u n g " ( 1 8 8 6 ; M o r i k e ) " B i t e r o l f " (1886; S c h e f f e l ) "Wachter l i e d a u f d e r W a r t b e r g " (1887; S c h e f f e l ) "Wandrers N a c h t l i e d " (1887; Goethe) " F u s s r e i s e " (1888; Morike) " S e u f z e r " ( 1 8 8 8 ; Mo r i ice) " Au f e i n a l t e s B i l d " ( 1 8 8 8 ; M o r i k e ) " S c h l a f e n d e s J e s u s k i n d " (1888; Morike) "Karwoche" (1888; Mor i ke ) "Zurn n e u e n J a h r " ( 1 8 8 8 ; M o r i k e ) "Gebet" (1888; Morike) " Ne u e L i e b e " ( 1 6 8 8 ; M o r i k e ) "Wo f i n d ' i c h T r o s t " ( 1 8 8 8 ; M o r i k e ) " S t . Ne p o mu k s V o r a b e n d " ( 1 8 8 8 ; G o e t h e ) "E pipha nias" (1888; Goethe) " K o n i g li c h Gebet" (1889; Goethe) " E r s c h a f f e n und B e l e b e n " ( 1 8 8 9 ; G o e t h e ) "Nun w a n d r e , M a r i a " ( 1 8 b 9 ; O c a n a , t r . h e y s e ) " D i e du G o t t g e b a r s t " ( 1 8 8 9 ; N. N u n e z , t r . H e y s e ) " D i e i h r s c h w e b e t " ( 1 8 u 9 ; Lo p e de Ve g a , t r . E. G e i b e l ) " H e r r , was t r a g t d e r B o d e n h i e r " ( 1 8 8 9 ; S p a n i s h , t r . iieyse) "Fiihr m i c h , K i n d , n a c h B e t h l e h e m ! " ( 1 8 8 9 ; S p a n i s h , t r . Heyse) "Wi i nden t r a g s t d u , m e i n G e l i e b t e r " ( 1 8 8 9 ; J . de V a ld i v iv ie l s o , t r . GeiLel) " Ac h, wi e l a n g d i e S e e l e S c h l u m m e r t ! " ( 1 8 8 9 ; Spanish, tr. Geibel) " A c h , d e s Kn a b e n A u g e n " ( 1 8 9 9 ; L. de U b e d a , t r . ii e y s e )
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
3 59
" Mi i h v o l l lcomm i c h und b e l a d e n " ( 1 8 9 0 ; M. d e l R i o , t r . Geibel?) "Nun b i n i c h d e i n " ( 1 8 9 0 ; J . R u i z , t r . H e y s e ) " Wi e g l a n z t d e r h e l l e Mond" ( 1 8 9 0 ; K e l l e r ) " G e s e g n e t s e i , d u r c h den d i e We l t e n t s t u n d " ( 1 8 9 0 ; I t a l i a n , t r . Iieyse) " Wi e v i e l e Z e i t v e r l o r i c h , d i c h z u l i e b e n " ( 1 8 9 6 ; I t a l i a n , t r . Iieyse) "Wenn d u , me i n L i e b s t e r , s t e i g s t zum l i i mmel a u f " (1896; I t a l i a n , t r . Heyse) "Mor genst i mmung" ( 18 9 6; R e i n i c k ) * Wo 1 1 a n k , F r i e d r i c h
(1781-1831)
"An d i e H e i l ' g e Wi i r s t ,
Richard
(b.
Jungfrau"
1824)
"Auferstehungsklange" Wulffrath,
Zahn,
C.
(Friedlander)
A.,
Jr.
"Nun t a u t ( Op . 9,
der No.
( Op .
18,
heilge Friede 1; 1 9 0 0 )
No.
sacht
1;
1860-67)
hernieder"
Adolf Zwanzig g e i s t l i c h e
Zander , F r i e d r i c h "De r 23.
Lieder
(1896)
( b . 1811) Psalm"
( Op .
17;
1894)
* Z e h 1 e r , C. " De r He r r
ist
me i n H i r t "
( Op.
16;
Z e i d l e r , Z. "Ich
und me i n r i a u s , w i r
sind
bereit"
(1894)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
360
lj
L X L X L 1
j
d U S C l
"Vater
unser"
( Op .
12;
1897)
Zenker , Casimir " Ave M a r i a " M.
15;
18 8 5 )
Paul
Drei Zwe i
geistliche geistliche
Gesange Gesange
o o
Ziegler,
( Op .
Z i e r , Emi l " G e i s t l i c h e s L i e d " ( Op . S; 1 8 9 2 ) " I c h h e b e m e i n e Au ge n a u f zu d e n B e r g e n " ( Op . 1 2 1 ; 1 8 9 2 ) Zillmann,
Eduard
"Bringet
Zi mmers,
Ehre,
Z i n f i s c m,
und Ruhrn"
( Op .
80)
Theodor "Gottvertrauen"
Zingel,
Preis
Rudolf
Kwa l d
"Herr,
den i c h
(1845)
(1876-1944) tief
ini I l e r z e n
trage"
(1904-08)
Josef " Ave M a r i a " ( 1 8 9 1 ) " I c h h a b e d i r mi c h h i n g e g e b e n "
(1891)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Appendix B TEXTUAL SOURCES OF LIEDER DISCUSSED IN THI S STUDY
An o n y mo u s "Arie" " Ave M a r i a " "Die h e i l i g e E l i s a b e t h " "Die V e r k l a r e n d e " "Gott i s t unsre Z u v e r s i c h t " No a h " "Requiem" "Weihnachtslied"
und S t a r k e "
Chapter Chapter Chapter Chapter Chapter Chapter Chapter Chapter
17 21 28 8 11 13 20
Chapter Chapter Chapter Chapter Chapter Chapter
18 8 8 8 17 21
Chapter
15
Chapter Chapter
24 24
Chapter
28
Chapter
10
Th e B i b l e P s a l m 2 5 : 1 6 , 20 Psalm 3 2:11 Psalm 4 6 : 1 - 4 Psalm 1 3 7 : 1 - 2 L u k e 1 : 2 8 , 42 1 Corinthians 13:1-3, B irch-P feiffer, Charlotte
12-13
(1799-1868)
"Christkindlein"
Born,
W. vo n " He i mwe h " "Meeresstern"
Buonarroti,
Michelangelo
(1475-1564)
"Die V e r k l a r e n d e "
Claudius,
Matthias
(1740-1815)
"Abendlied" 361
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
362
Cornelius,
Peter
(1824-1874)
" E r l o s e u n s vom U b e l " "Di e Ko n i g e " Dreves,
Leberecht
Blticher
J.
G.
Joseph
Hinrich
Gerhardt,
Paul
h a b 1 i c h me i n L i e b "
Chapter
13
Chapter
23
Chapter
27
Chapter
18
Chapter
4
Chapter
4
Chapter
8
(1607-1676)
"Passionsgesang" Gellert,
Christian
Fiirchtegott
(1715-1769)
"Di e L i e b e d e s N a c h s t e n "
Heinrich "Abendlied unterm g e s t i r n t e n
Goethe,
12
Franz "Verlassen
Goeble,
Chapter
(1632-1704)
"Todessehnsucht"
Engel,
17
(1788-1857)
" De r f r o h e W a n d e r s m a n n " Elmenhorst,
Chapter
(1808-1884)
"Morgenlied" Eichendorff,
19 19
(1816-1870)
"Waldandacht" Droysen,
Chapter Chapter
Hi mme l "
J o h a n n Wo l f g a n g von ( 1 7 4 9 - 1 8 3 2 ) "Wandr er s
Nachtlied"
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
3 63
Gryphius,
Andreas
(1616-1664)
"Di e H e r r l i c h k e i t
der
Erde"
Chapter
15
Chapter
27
Chapter
20
Chapter
25
Chapter
12
Chapter
9
Chapter
22
Chapter
11
Chapter Chapter
5 5
H a r d e n b e r g , Georg F r i e d r i c h P h i l i p p von ( 1 7 7 2 - 1 8 0 1 ) See u n d e r H e r ma n ,
Nicolaus "Bitte
He y ,
Novalis (1500-1561)
um e i n e n
seligen
To d "
Wi l he l m ( 1 7 8 9 - 1 8 5 4 ) " De r l i e b e
Heyse,
Paul
Gott
im Hi mme l "
(1830-1914)
" D i e du G o t t
gebarst"
Hof f mann von F a l l e r s l e b e n , A u g u s t H einrich (1798-1874) "Trostung" Kleist,
Ewal d C h r i s t i a n "Gross i s t
Kohler,
von
(1715-1759)
der Herr"
Theodor "Weihnachtslied"
Kopisch,
August
(1799-1853)
" We i n a u s W a s s e r " Kr umma c he r ,
Friedrich
" Da s Wo r t " " Di e Ahnung"
Adolph
(1767-1845)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
364
Luther,
Martin
(1483-1546)
"Arie" "Wenn i c h m i t M e n s c h e n - u n d Engelszungen re d e te " Ma h l m a n n ,
August
Eduard
Heinrich "Kaiser
Muller,
21
Chapter Chapter
26 26
von
C h a p t e r 25
(1813-1874)
Otto's
Weihnachtsfeier"
Chapter
9
Joseph " Da s V e i l c h e n "
Nordheim,
C h a p t e r 14
H.
See S c h o r n ,
Henriette
N o v a l i s (Georg F r i e d r i c h Hardenberg, 1772-1801)
v on
Philipp
v on
" Da s h o c h s t e G u t " " Hymne " "Marienlied" "Wenn a l l e u n t r e u w e r d e n " "Wenn i n b a n g e n , t i i i ben S t u n d e n "
Nunez,
Chapter
(1804-1875)
"Zum n e u e n J a h r " Mi i hl er ,
17
(1771-1826)
" D e r du e w ' g e L i e b e b i s t " "Herr, unsre Zuversicht"
Morike,
Chapter
Chapter 6 Chapter 6 C h a p t e r 28 Chapter 7 Chapter 7
Nicolas " D i e du G o t t
gebarst"
Chapter
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
25
365
Oser,
Friedrich
Heinrich
(1820-1891) Chapter Chapter
"Kreuz-Lied" " H e r r , d e r du r u f s t " Sauter,
S a mu e l
Friedrich
(1766-1846) Chapter
"Der W a c h t e l s c h l a g " Schorn,
Henriette "Sei
Schulze,
von
(d.
Chapter
still"
Georg Wi l h e l m " Du ,
Silesius,
1869)
Herr,
Angelus
bist
(1829-1891) unser
Chapter
(1624-1677)
" Da s Wo r t G o t t e s " Spanisches
Vater"
Chapter
Liederbuch
" D i e du G o t t g e b a r s t "
Chapter
R eproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
25
BIBLIOGRAPHY
A.
PRIMARY SOURCES
[Abt, Franzj . Abt-Album : Ausgewahlte S i n g s t i m m e mi t K l a v i e r b e g l e i t u n g . Siegel, n.d.
L i e d e r f iir e i n e Leipzig: C . F . W.
__________ . A b t - A l b u m : A u s g e w a h l t e L i e d e r f iir e i n e Singstimme mit K l a v i e r b e g l e i t u n g . Leipzig: Aug. Cranz, n.d. __________ . A b t - A l b u m : Auswahl d e r b e l i e b t e s t e n L i e d e r f iir e i n e S i n g s t i mme m i t P i a n o f o r t e b e g l e i t u n g . Ed . Edmund P a r l o w . Leipzig: Johann Andre, n . d . __________ . Ave Mar i a Jos. Aibl, n.d.
( lied wi g am G n a d e n b i l d ) .
___________ . Dr e i I c o m i s c h e L i e d e r Ma i n : Johann Andre, n . d . __________ .
Drei
Lieder.
__________ . J u g e n d - A l b u m L i to lf f , n.d.
Leipzig: ( Op . 4 7 5 ) .
__________ . Lebensfriihling. Andre, n . d .
Mi i nc hen:
f iir B a s s .
Offenbach
Bertholf
Senff,
Braunschweig:
O f f e n b a c h a n Ma i n :
n.d. Henr y
Johann
__________ . Sechs Li ede r Johann Andre, n . d .
( Op . 6 7 ) .
O f f e n b a c h a n Ma i n :
__________ . Sechs Lieder Johann Andre, n . d .
( Op . 7 1 ) .
O f f e n b a c h a n Ma i n :
__________ . n.d.
Zwe i G e d i c h t e v on
W. F 1 o t o .
Wi e n :
C. A.
Spina,
Albert, Heinrich. Arien I , I I . Ed. Ed wa r d B e r n o u l l i . Denkmal er d e u t s c h e Tonlcunst. 1. F o l g e , Band 1 2 , 1 3 . Wiesbaden: B r e i t l c o p f & H a r t e l , 1958. A n s o r g e , Max. G eistliche Lieder J u l i u s H a i n a u e r , 1913.
( Op .
23).
an
Breslau:
366
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
3 67
Banck, C a r l . Dresden: __________ .
D i c h t u n g e n vo n N i c o l a u s Bernhard F r i e d e l , n.d. Drei Lieder
( Op .
67).
Lenau
Wi e n :
Becker, A lb e r t. Ausgewahlte g e i s t l i c h e Leipzig: Breitkopf & Hartel, n.d. __________ . Herz h i mme l wa r t s Sulzbach , n.d.
( Op .
11).
( Op .
C . A.
69).
Spina,
Lieder
n.d.
und G e s a n g e .
Berlin:
W.
j ~Be e t h o v e n , Ludwi g v a n ^ Lu d wi g v a n B e e t h o v e n ' s W e r k e : Vollstandige k r itis c h e durchgesehene iiberall berecht i g t e A u s g a b e , s e r i e s 23. Leipzig: Breitkopf & H a r te l , 1862-1865. B e r g e r , Ludwig. Fiinfzehn L i e d e r . Hof n i e i s t e r , n . d . __________ .Z w o l f L i e d e r . n.d.
Leipzig:
Leipzig:
Frederic
Frederic
Kofmeister,
Qirahms, J o h a n n e s ] . J o h a n n e s Br a h ms s a m t l i c h e W e r k e . Ed. E. handyczewski. L e i p z i g : B r e i t k o p f & H a r t e l , 19261927. __________ . 7_0 S o n g s . Ed. S e r g i u s I n t e r n a t i o n a l Music, n . d .
Kagen.
New
Yor k:
B r o n s a r t , I n g e b o r g von. Fi i nf G e d i c h t e v o n E r n s t v . Wi 1 d e n b r u c h ( Op . 1 6 ) . n.d.; rpt. H u n t s v i l l e , Texas: R e c i t a l P u b l i c a t i o n s , 1983. B r u c h , Max. F ii n f L i e d e r f iir Ba r y t o n ( Op . 5 9 ) . n . d . ; H u n t s v i l l e , Texas: R e c i t a l P u b l i c a t i o n s , 1983. __________ . V i e r L i e d e r ( Op . 1 5 ) . Texas: Recital Publications,
n.d.; 1983.
rpt.
rpt.
Huntsville,
j ~Br uckner , A n t o n J . An t o n B r u c k n e r S a m t l i c h e W e r k e . Ed. Ha ns B a u e r n f e i n d a n d L e o p o l d Nowa k. Wi e n : Musikwiss e n s c h a f t l i c h e r Verlag der I n t e r n a t i o n a l e n BrucknerG e s e l l s c h a f t , 1984. B r i i l l , 1‘g n a z . Leipzig:
Wi r s i n d d i e W e i h n a c h t s e n g e l . W. V o b a c h , 19C5.
Coi nmer, F r a n z . Drei g e i s t l i c h e T. T r a u t w e i n , n . d . __________ . Drei L i e d e r X. T r a u t w e i n , n . d .
Lieder
von F r . O s a r
( Op .
( Op . 65).
Berlin 76).
and
Berlin:
Berlin:
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
__________ . D r e i L i e d e r v on F r . O s e r T. T r a u t w e i n , n . d .
( Op .
67).
Berlin:
__________ . n.d.
D r e i L i e d e r ( Op .
71).
Berlin:
T. T r a u t w e i n ,
__________ . n.d.
Zwe i L i e d e r ( Op .
75).
Berlin:
T. T r a u t w e i n ,
^Cornelius, Peter]. Ed. M. i i a s s e . 1906. [j3urschmann, F r ] . n.d.
P e t e r C o r n e l i u s : M u s i k a l i s c h e We r k e . Leipzig: B r e i t k o p f & H a r t e l , 1905-
Cursehmann-Album.
Da s K i r c h e n j a h r i n L i e d e r n . C. F . P e t e r s , n.d. Da s L i e d : Geistliche Zurich: Pelican,
Ed .
Gesange. n.d.
Berlin:
Paul Losse. Ed .
Schlesinger, Leipzig:
I l a ns W i l l i
Haeusslein.
E g l i , Johann H e in ric h . J . II. E g l i s . M u s i k a l i s c h e n I. Abtheilung r Zurich: D. B u r k l i , 1 S 1 6 . F a i B t , Immanuel. De r 5 7 . He i n r i c h s h o f e n , 1 9 3 3 . jj.vr a n z , II.
Robert] . Leipzig:
Psalm.
Nachlasses
Magdeburg:
Franz-Album: Ausgewahlte C . F . W. S i e g e l , n . d .
L i e d e r , Band
I,
Fuchs, A lb e r t. () h e i l *ge M u t t e r , a l l e r Gn a d e n S c h r e i n ( Op . 3 9 , No. 4 ) . Leipzig: Kahnt , 1904. G e s a n g e v on F r a u e n l o b , R e i n m a r v . Z w e i t e r und A l e x a n d e r , D e n k m a l e r d e r T o n k u n s t i n O s t e r r e i c h , J a h r g a n g XX/ 2, Band 4 1 . Ed. H e i n r i c h T i e t s c h . Graz: Al c a d e mi s c h e D r u c k - und V e r l a g s a n s t a l t , 1 9 6 0 . Da s G l o g a u e r L i e d e r b u c h . 4, 8, 85, 86. Kassel Goldmark,
Carl.
Das E r b e d e u t s c h e r M u s i k , v o l s . a nd B a s e l : B a r e n r e i t e r , 1954.
Herzelied.
^ Gr a b e r i - H o f f mann , G u s t a v ] . Fr. K is tn e r, n.d.
Wi e n :
Lu d wi g D o b l i n g e r ,
Gr a b e n - H o f f m a n n A1 b u m .
G r o s s , J o h a n n B. De r 1 4 2 s t e B u s s p s a l m D a v i d s . B e e h t o l d und i i a r t j e , n . d . G u l b i n s , Max. Leuckart,
Das V a t e r u n s e r 1905.
( Op .
29).
n.d.
Leipzig
Berlin:
Leipzig:
F.E.C.
R eproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
369
H aller, Michael. der s e l i g s t e n P u s t e t , 1904.
Mariengarten: 34 L i e d e r z u r Jungfrau Maria. Regensburg:
H a n d e l , G.F. Two S a c r e d A r i a s . Ed . A l f r e d U n i v e r s i t y Document s of Mu s i c , no. 10. A le x a n d e r Broude, 1979.
Verehrung Friedrich
Ma nn. n.p.:
Rutgers
Harder, August. G e s a n g e und L i e d e r a u s dem C h r i s t f e s t e v on F . A. K r u m m a c h e r . D u i s b e r g and E s s e n : Baedeker und K u e r z e l , 1 8 1 1 . __________ . G e s a n g e und L i e d e r a u s dem S o n n t a g e vo n F . A. Krummacher. D u i s b e r g and E s s e n : B a e d e k e r und K u e r z e l , 1807 . H a r t m a n n v o n An d e r L a n - I I o c h b r u n n , P. A_n d e n r i e i l a n d . Leipzig: C. F. Kahnt N a c h f o l g e r , n . d . b a s e r , Wilhelm. XII d e u t s c h e B r e i t k o p f